superwholock36
superwholock36
Bitch-I'm-Fabulous
154 posts
Don't wanna be here? Send us removal request.
superwholock36 · 24 days ago
Text
Tumblr media Tumblr media
Lavenders Loaf (Bucky Barnes x Fem!Reader) (2/?)
Tumblr media Tumblr media
--------------------------------------------------------------------------- Summary: For the past week, neither Bucky nor [Name] has been able to shake the thought of each other. It lingers in quiet moments, sneaking into their minds when they least expect it. Bucky, usually precise and focused, finds himself distracted during training, his mind drifting to the warmth of the bakery, the way she smiled at him, how easy it felt being around her. Meanwhile, after another long, exhausting day, [Name] is tidying up the bakery, moving through the motions—but there’s an undercurrent of expectation, something unspoken, something she won’t admit she’s waiting for. Warnings: violence / banter / Sweetness / guilt/ ---------------------------------------------------------------------------
The training room was quiet, except for the rhythmic sounds of fists meeting gloves, footfalls shifting on the mat.
Steve was in front of him, steady, focused, fluid in his movements. Bucky, however, was off, just slightly. His stance was solid, his reactions quick, but there was something missing—a fraction of hesitation, a moment of distraction.
It had been a week.
A week since he’d landed in that bakery, rattled and exhausted. A week since he’d sat in that warm kitchen, that mug of tea in his hands, Beth throwing threats like they meant something, and [Name] standing between him and everything too loud.
That thought lingered too long.
Steve moved fast—too fast, and Bucky’s guard slipped.
A rough hit to the ribs, enough to knock him back a step.
Steve narrowed his eyes. "You with me?"
Bucky exhaled sharply, resetting his stance. "Yeah."
Steve didn’t look convinced, but he didn’t press—not yet.
From the side-lines, Sam was thoroughly entertained.
"Man, if you keep zoning out like that," Sam called, arms crossed as he watched, "Steve’s gonna start thinking he’s got the edge over you, and that’s not good for anybody."
Steve threw him a look. "I already have the edge."
Sam smirked. "Yeah, yeah, sure. But I meant in life, not just sparring."
Bucky exhaled through his nose, shaking off the distraction, shifting forward, getting back into the rhythm.
Steve swung—Bucky dodged, barely.
Still off.
Still not fully here.
And Steve saw it.
The air shifted.
Bucky barely dodged the incoming swing, his metal arm snapping up in a tight guard just in time. The force of Steve’s punch echoed against vibranium, the impact reverberating through his arm, but it didn’t faze him.
A low growl slipped past his lips—frustration curling at the edges of his control.
He had been off this whole sparring session, distracted, but now?
Now, he was locked in.
Steve caught the change immediately—the slight tightening in Bucky’s stance, the subtle roll of his shoulders, the way his breathing evened out. This wasn’t a casual spar anymore.
Sam noticed too, letting out an exaggerated whistle from the side-lines. "Oh, damn. Stevie, you’ve got a problem. Buck’s actually paying attention now."
Steve huffed a small chuckle but didn’t let his guard drop.
Then Bucky struck.
His movements were calculated, lightning-fast—an instinct honed through decades of battle, muscle memory buried deep in his bones. His first hit went for the ribs, his second a feint toward Steve’s jaw, testing his defense.
Steve deflected, twisting to the side, moving with the same effortless control.
For every strike Bucky threw, Steve had an answer—redirecting, blocking, shifting just enough to keep ahead.
But Bucky wasn’t faltering anymore.
Metal and flesh moved in sync, every step sharp, every reaction precise. The fight turned into something fluid, practiced—two soldiers with too much history, too much understanding of each other’s strengths and weaknesses.
Steve tried for an opening—cutting low for Bucky’s legs. Bucky saw it coming.
He pivoted, shifting weight onto his metal arm, twisting into a counterstrike aimed at Steve’s ribs.
Steve barely dodged, the hit skimming past him, close enough to feel.
Sam leaned in, grinning. "I mean, y’all could tone it down for the rest of us mere mortals watching—"
Neither of them listened.
Bucky’s movements were relentless now—sharpened, focused. Controlled.
For the first time in this session, Steve knew if he slipped for even a second, Bucky would win.
And that made him grin.
The fight had shifted—Bucky was winning now.
He caught Steve’s incoming punch clean, metal fingers wrapping around his friend’s wrist with effortless precision.
Steve barely had a second to react before Bucky smirked, just slightly, the corner of his mouth twitching.
"Sloppy, Rogers," Bucky muttered, shaking his head like he was disappointed.
Steve let out a low laugh, shaking his own head. "Yeah, yeah."
From the side-lines, Sam was already chuckling. "You gonna let the old man style on you like that, Cap?"
Steve huffed another laugh, but his stance didn’t break—not yet.
They reset—Bucky fully in control now, his strikes sharper, more precise, his focus locked in. He had Steve on the defensive, almost cornered, and victory was seconds away—
Until the training room doors swung open.
"Hey, guys!"
Peter Parker walked in, bright-eyed and completely unaware of what he had just interrupted, swinging a pastry bag in one hand.
Bucky barely glanced at him—just for a second, just long enough to register the Lavender’s Loaf logo on the bag.
Sam immediately took notice, eyes locked onto the treats.
"Damn, kid, what you got in there?" Sam called, already taking a step forward, fully prepared to rob Peter if necessary.
That’s when Bucky saw it.
The exact same bag from a week ago. The same bakery. The same place.
And for one second, one stupid, barely-there second, his mind slipped.
That’s all Steve needed.
Before Bucky could reset, Steve struck, knocking him clean onto his back with a practiced maneuver, pinning him down in one swift move.
Sam lost it.
Full, deep laughter, hands on his knees, shaking his head. "A bag of pastries took you out, Barnes. That’s a new one."
Peter immediately rushed over, alarm plastered on his face. "Oh my gosh, are you okay? I—wait, did I do that?"
Bucky exhaled from the floor, staring at the ceiling, debating all his life choices.
Steve grinned down at him. "You were close, Buck. Almost had me."
Bucky let out a low groan, running a hand down his face.
"Shut up."
The aftermath settled, the sharp edges of combat fading into something lighter.
Bucky sat up, one leg stretched out, the other bent, his metal arm bracing against the mat while his flesh hand rested on his knee. He let out a slow exhale, rolling his shoulders as if shaking off the fact that he’d just been knocked flat because of a pastry bag.
Peter, still hovering nervously, fidgeted slightly.
"Uh—sorry, Mr. Barnes!" he blurted, voice too eager, too apologetic. "I didn’t mean to, you know, ruin the fight or anything—"
Bucky waved him off, shaking his head. "Don’t be. It’s not your fault I got distracted."
Steve and Sam exchanged a knowing look.
Peter hesitated, shifting awkwardly on his feet before scratching the back of his neck.
"So…uh…what exactly distracted you?"
Sam’s grin spread, mischief curling at the edges as he turned to Bucky.
"A certain baker," he sing-songed, dragging out the words like they were the most important piece of intel in the world.
Peter blinked, so confused, eyes flicking between them before looking down at the pastry bag still clutched in his hands.
And then—realization.
"Oh—oh!" His eyes widened, mouth opening like he had just cracked some secret code.
Steve let out a warm laugh, shaking his head.
Bucky huffed out a small chuckle, running a hand through his hair, watching the kid piece it together with peak awkward energy.
Sam nudged Peter’s shoulder, still grinning. "Welcome to the gossip circle, kid. You walked in at the exact right moment."
Peter flushed slightly. "I—I mean, pastries are really distracting," he tried, like that would help him recover.
Steve snorted. "Yeah, that’s definitely the reason."
Bucky sighed, shaking his head, but he wasn’t annoyed. The room had shifted from intensity to warmth, and maybe—for the first time in days—it felt good.
-------------------------------------------------------------------
The bakery smelled like vanilla and cooling bread, the warmth lingering even as the evening settled in.
It had been a week.
A week since James had crashed into her life unexpectedly, since she had stood between him and his own ghosts, since she had given him pastries like that could somehow make things lighter.
And now—she was thinking about him again.
[Name] let out a quiet sigh, shaking her head as she swept flour from the tiles, forcing herself to focus, to shake off the thoughts before they spiralled into something unnecessary.
Beth, drying the last of the mugs, glanced up just in time to catch the slight pause—the way [Name]’s hand lingered on the broom handle, the way her expression drifted for just a second.
Beth smirked, leaning against the counter.
"Thinking about him again?" she teased, laughter curling into her voice.
[Name] scoffed, shaking her head instantly. "No."
Beth raised an eyebrow.
A beat.
Then—[Name] sighed, pinching the bridge of her nose.
"Fine. Yeah."
Beth grinned, setting down the mug she had been drying. "Can’t blame you. If tall, dark, and traumatized is your type, then you really hit the jackpot."
[Name] laughed, shaking her head as she went back to sweeping. "Hey, he checks the boxes."
Beth snorted, wiping down the counter. "So what’s the deal? Just intrigued, or are we deep in overthinking territory?"
[Name] exhaled, pushing the last bit of flour into the dustpan before standing upright.
"I don’t know," she admitted, setting the broom aside. "There’s just something about him. You can see it—the weight he carries, how much he holds back. It’s like there’s always something sitting heavy on his shoulders, no matter where he is."
Beth nodded slowly, tossing the towel onto the rack before giving [Name] a pointed look.
"You don’t have to fix everyone," she said, voice softer now, not teasing—just knowing.
[Name] sighed, rubbing the back of her neck.
"I know that."
Beth watched her for a second, then shrugged. "But you wanna try anyway?"
[Name] let out a quiet laugh, shaking her head. "I just feel like…maybe he needs someone outside of his friends to talk to."
Beth huffed, picking up the last tray and sliding it onto the shelf.
"Well," she said, grinning, "you already gave him free pastries, which is basically step one to breaking down a man’s emotional barriers."
[Name] laughed, rolling her eyes. "Glad to know I’m using advanced techniques."
Beth winked. "Always gotta play the long game."
The shop was nearly spotless now, the day finally winding down, the scent of sugar and spices lingering in the air.
The bakery was spotless in record time, both of them working in sync, moving through the familiar motions of closing up for the night.
[Name] counted the cash in the register while Beth lounged by the counter, idly tapping her fingers against the wood.
Once everything was squared away, [Name] took the register to the small safe in the back, locking it up before returning with an envelope in hand.
"Here you go, Beth," she said, handing it over with a small smile. "There’s a bit extra in there too—get some treats for the furbabies."
Beth sat up immediately, eyeing the envelope suspiciously.
"Oh, no. No freebies," she said, firm, shaking her head.
[Name] rolled her eyes. "Beth, we’re friends, and you work hard. Of course I wanted to give you some extra."
Beth narrowed her eyes, still debating it, but after a moment, she huffed a sigh, taking the envelope with reluctant acceptance.
"Fine," she muttered, sending a half hearted glare [Names] way.
[Name] grinned, pretending to whistle and look away like she was completely uninvolved in this exchange.
"I didn’t see that," she said casually.
Beth let out a small laugh, shaking her head.
With everything done, [Name] grabbed her coat, glancing over as Beth started gathering her things.
"You safe getting home?"
Beth snorted. "Oh, totally. I have pepper spray, my keys between my fingers, and enough pent-up rage to ruin someone’s night. Good luck to anyone that tries anything."
[Name] laughed, shaking her head. "Okay, fine. Just—text me when you get in, please?"
Beth shot her a playful salute. "Yes, Mom."
[Name] rolled her eyes but smiled.
And with that, the night officially ended.
Beth stepped out into the evening air, throwing a casual wave over her shoulder as she disappeared down the sidewalk.
[Name] locked the door behind her, pulling the shutters down before exhaling softly, letting the quiet settle for a moment.
And then, James came to mind.
His piercing blue eyes. The way they held too much, like a storm trapped behind glass. Like that one painting—the fallen angel, weary but enduring.
She let out a breath, shaking her head, tucking a strand of hair behind her ear like that could somehow shake him loose from her thoughts.
Instead, she turned toward the kitchen, rolling up her sleeves, finishing the last bit of the dishes.
The radio hummed to life, static fading into a familiar tune—Elvis Presley’s You’re the Devil in Disguise.
A slow grin pulled at her lips.
She swayed just a little, hips moving with the rhythm, humming under her breath as she turned up the volume, the sound filling the warm kitchen.
Drying her hands, she moved to empty the trash, pushing open the back door, propping it ajar as she stepped into the alleyway toward the bins.
The music drifted out behind her, the guitar solo hitting, Elvis’s voice curling through the evening air—"You look like an angel…"
She tossed the trash into the bins, dusted off her hands, and turned back toward the door.
And then, without thinking—shimmy.
A small, playful step, moving with the beat, just because.
She barely made it back inside before Hound Dog came on.
Her grin widened.
The music swelled, golden and familiar, wrapping itself around the quiet kitchen like an old friend.
[Name] laughed softly, the sound spilling out as she twirled, because who would see her? Who would care?
She spun with the beat, clapping lightly, feet shifting in time with the rhythm. For fun, for no reason at all, she added a twist—the same one her granny had taught her once, full of nostalgia and simple joy.
Her hair fanned out around her like a halo, catching the soft glow of the hanging lights, the world spinning with her, just for a moment.
Because life was short.
Because these quiet, silly moments were hers to have.
She shimmied, pivoting with a step—effortless, weightless, lost in it—until she heard it.
A small chuckle.
The sound threw her off beat, cutting through the music, jolting her back to reality too fast.
She nearly slipped, a startled gasp escaping—"Wow!"—her balance tipping just slightly—
Before she felt it.
A hand at her waist, steady, grounding.
A voice, low, smooth, lined with genuine concern.
"You okay?"
She froze, warmth spreading where fingertips touched fabric, heartbeat suddenly very present in her ears.
The radio hummed on behind her, oblivious.
She exhaled—slowly—before finally looking up.
And there he was.
----------------------------------------------------------- The engine rumbled beneath him, a steady growl against the city’s evening hum.
Bucky rode fast—not reckless, but purposeful, weaving through traffic with effortless precision, the matte black frame of his Indian Scout Bobber cutting through the shifting glow of New York’s streetlights.
The sky deepened into navy, the last embers of sunlight clinging to glass towers, casting elongated shadows over the streets.
Brooklyn was ahead—home, or something close to it—but his mind wasn’t tethered to the destination. It drifted, unfocused, lost somewhere between the asphalt and the ghosts he could never seem to outrun.
He should go back.
Get to his apartment, shut everything out, let the silence press in like it always did.
But as he passed through Queens, something in his chest pulled, subtle but undeniable.
His fingers tightened on the handlebars, his breath evened out—but instead of keeping straight, instead of following the route ingrained in his muscle memory, he found himself cutting the turn too early.
The bike curved, a clean U-turn, the tires gripping the road effortlessly, and suddenly, he wasn’t heading home anymore.
Queens loomed ahead again.
And he knew exactly where he was going.
The city pulsed around him—headlights cutting through the dark, the scent of asphalt and late-night takeout filling the streets.
Bucky pulled up in front of the bakery, the rumble of his Indian Scout Bobber fading as he eased to a stop.
He swung his leg over, boots hitting pavement, and that’s when he really saw it—the soft, floral touches that had always been there but hadn’t registered before.
The delicate vines creeping up the painted sign. The faint scent of lavender that lingered in the air, subtle, but there.
The shutters were down.
He cursed under his breath.
Figures—he hadn’t checked the time, hadn’t even thought about whether the place would still be open.
It was late. Too late.
He huffed out a sigh, running a hand through his hair, already half-prepared to get back on the bike and leave.
But then—hesitation.
A fleeting thought.
The back door.
Curiosity tugged at him, quiet but insistent, just enough to pull his steps toward the alley.
So he went.
The hum of the city faded slightly as he rounded the corner, slipping into the dim stretch of space behind the building.
And that’s when he heard it—
The faint, warm sound of a radio still playing inside.
Elvis.
The alley was quiet, save for the lingering hum of the radio spilling out through the propped door.
Bucky stepped forward, his movements silent, ingrained instinct guiding his steps. Years of stealth made it effortless—the way he moved, the way his presence barely registered against the backdrop of the city.
He saw her then.
[Name] tossed the trash into the bin, barely hesitating before shimmying back toward the door, the music still curling through the air.
And for a moment—just a fleeting second—he thought she was cute.
Carefree. Unaware of anything beyond the warmth of the song, the rhythm pulling her along.
She slipped back inside, twisting and twirling, her hair catching the light like something out of a painting, and something stirred in his chest—familiar, foreign all at once.
Flashes of an old life flickered through his mind.
A different time, a different world.
Someone else’s laughter.
A dance from a distant past.
The memory lingered, threading through him so seamlessly that before he could stop himself—a quiet chuckle escaped.
Soft. Unintentional.
[Name] caught it instantly.
Then—"Wow!"
She mis stepped, nearly tipping off balance, the motion abrupt, unsteady.
Bucky didn’t think.
Didn’t hesitate.
Before she could fall, his hand caught her, warm and firm against her waist, grounding her before gravity could win.
Her breath hitched.
His grip steadied.
And the music played on.
Time stretched, the music humming softly between them, as [Name] steadied herself against his grip.
Her eyes flicked up, locking onto his, and in the dim glow of the kitchen light, he saw it—the soft flush dusting her cheeks, the faint flutter of her lashes as she caught her breath.
His lips parted, just slightly.
Something familiar stirred in his mind.
A memory.
His younger self, laughing in some bar in Brooklyn, easy charm slipping off his tongue, Steve shaking his head at him but grinning all the same.
Steve had always called him a ladies' man—before the war, before everything shifted.
And for the first time in a long time, Bucky felt it.
The instinctive rhythm of something playful, something light, something that belonged to the man he used to be but hadn’t reached for in years.
So before he could stop himself, it slipped out—smooth, natural, edged with a hint of amusement.
"Didn’t think you’d actually fall for me."
[Name] stared for a beat, caught between surprise and laughter—then snorted, shaking her head.
"That," she said, voice huffed with amusement, "was ridiculous."
He grinned, a real one, crooked and boyish, and something settled in his chest.
She laughed softly, shaking her head as she finally steadied herself, warmth lingering between them for just a beat longer than expected.
Then, with a curious tilt of her head, she asked, "What are you doing here?"
Bucky exhaled through his nose, his hand slipping away as he helped her upright, taking a step back to create space.
He felt the shift immediately—the absence of contact, the way the air cooled just slightly.
"I don’t really know," he admitted, glancing toward the open door, toward the dim alleyway behind him. "I was going home."
A pause.
"But—I wanted to check in."
As soon as the words left his mouth, his shoulders tensed slightly. He looked away, jaw flexing, like the admission had peeled back something raw, something too open, too unguarded.
It wasn’t like him—to just show up, to let whatever had pulled him back to Queens dictate his actions.
He wasn’t sure if it was a mistake.
[Name] noticed immediately.
Instead of brushing past it, she stepped forward, shifting into his line of sight again—gentle, intentional, but not forceful.
"You’re always welcome here," she said, her voice soft, sincere, the corners of her lips lifting in a small smile.
Bucky swallowed, nervous now in a way that wasn’t sharp or jarring, but quiet.
Something in his chest pulled tight, something foreign and safe all at once.
He nodded, barely, like he wasn’t sure what to do with the reassurance.
————————————————————————
"You’re always welcome here," she said, the words slipping past her lips before she had time to overthink them.
Bucky glanced at her, his expression unreadable for a beat, but she saw it—the way his shoulders relaxed slightly, like the reassurance meant something.
She let out a slow breath, grounding herself, but that’s when she really looked at him.
Dark jeans, fitting just right, worn but sharp in the way that made them effortless. The black leather jacket, slightly unzipped, the soft stretch of a white shirt peeking out beneath it.
He looked good. Too good.
The kind of good that wasn’t intentional, wasn’t trying, and that made it worse.
Her gaze flickered back to his face—sharp angles, strong jaw, mouth parted just slightly, lips far too distracting for someone she had only just met.
She swallowed, tucking a stray strand of hair behind her ear, a small habit when nerves crept in.
Attraction curled low in her stomach, uninvited but unmistakable.
She cleared her throat, willing the feeling away before it could settle too deeply.
"So," she said, voice light, "how’ve you been?"
Bucky shifted, his gaze flickering away, settling somewhere near the doorway rather than on her.
"I’m managing," he replied, tone even, but the avoidance was clear.
She exhaled softly, not pressing, not prying—just acknowledging the weight in his words without making it heavier.
Instead, she turned, moving toward the kettle. "Tea?"
He let out a low grunt, a rough sound that was less an answer and more an agreement.
She smirked a little, taking it as a yes, setting the kettle on the stove.
The quiet stretched for a beat, but it wasn’t uncomfortable—it was just there, lingering like steam in the air.
The kettle hummed softly, filling the kitchen with warmth, the steady bubbling underscoring the quiet rhythm of the night.
[Name] hummed along with the radio, absentmindedly following the melody, the sound effortless, soothing.
Bucky, meanwhile, had shifted his attention to the bakery itself, his gaze flickering across shelves stacked with ingredients, the neat displays of equipment, the soft floral touches tucked into the space. He wasn’t lingering on anything in particular, just taking it in, observing.
"You hungry?" she asked, glancing over her shoulder as she grabbed the mugs.
He shook his head with a small shrug. "I’m okay. Not that hungry."
She didn’t press, just nodded, keeping the space easy.
"Sugar?"
"No," he replied, voice even. "Just plain. Splash of milk."
She made it that way without hesitation, stirring briefly before fixing hers—two sugars, a bit of milk, the familiar ritual settling her hands into motion.
"Come on," she said, balancing both mugs onto a tray before turning to him. "Hold this."
He blinked, caught off guard for a second. "Okay," he muttered, reaching for the tray.
His left hand moved first.
She saw it immediately—the leather glove covering his fingers, the material dark, fitted, a stark contrast against his bare right hand.
It wasn’t obvious at first, but when he caught her glance—when he saw her noticing—he subtly switched hands, shifting the tray into his right grip instead.
A small, nearly imperceptible shift in posture followed, tension curling ever so slightly into his shoulders.
She didn’t say anything.
Instead, she simply turned, walking toward the door, letting him follow.
And the space remained comfortable.
She pushed open the door to the front of the bakery, the soft glow from the streetlights filtering in through the windows. With a flick of the switch, a single light flickered on, casting a warm hue over the quiet space.
"Sit," she said, nodding toward a booth near the corner, ushering him forward before picking up the tray.
Bucky slid into the seat, his gaze wandering across the front of the bakery. It was different at night—still warm, still inviting, but quieter, softer.
He nodded slightly, a small observation slipping past his lips. "This place… seems very you."
She tilted her head as she set the tray down. "What do you mean?"
He hesitated for a beat, scratching his jaw, clearly a little awkward about the thought now that he had voiced it aloud.
"It’s warm," he said simply. "Inviting." He glanced at her, just briefly. "That… tracks."
Something in her chest tightened—not in discomfort, but in a unexpected way, a blush dusted her cheeks.
"I hope I live up to that," she murmured, running a finger along the edge of her mug.
Bucky’s lips quirked up into a faint smile—that dashingly handsome, quiet kind of smile, but the sad one, the one she was beginning to recognize.
They fell into a comfortable silence, sipping their tea, the space filling only with the occasional clink of ceramic and the steady hum of the radio.
She noticed it then—the small twitch of his foot, tapping against the floor. A restless motion, something he maybe didn’t even realize he was doing.
She didn’t push, didn’t prod.
She waited.
And when he finally spoke, his voice was quiet but steady. "I wanted to thank you."
Her eyes flicked up, watching the way his grip tightened slightly around the mug.
"For that day," he continued. "I’m… sorry if I scared you."
She exhaled through her nose, shaking her head lightly. "You scared me for all of two minutes."
She took another sip of her tea, setting it down with a soft clink.
"Then I was worried."
Bucky's fingers tightened around the ceramic, the warmth of the tea pressing into his palm as he opened his mouth—
"I'm so—"
But [Name] cut in before he could get the words out.
"There’s no need to apologize. Not one bit."
He blinked, thrown off course, his lips pressing together slightly as she continued, voice steady, warm, certain.
"What happened was going to happen. Whether it was here, or at someone else’s place." She gave a small shrug, stirring the last remnants of sugar in her tea. "I’m just glad I could be a safe space for you in that moment."
The words hit harder than they should have.
Bucky stared at her, stunned, trying to piece together how she could say something like that—so easily, so genuinely, without an ounce of hesitation or unease.
No fear.
None.
Didn’t she know?
Didn’t she realize what he was?
He could snap her neck in less than a second. Could take her down before she had time to process it. He was a trained assassin—a weapon long before he ever tried to be a person again. The Winter Soldier still lived in his bones, no matter how much he tried to drown it out.
And yet—
She smiled.
Soft. Unbothered. Sweet.
Like she had already decided who he was, and it had nothing to do with his past.
A quiet beat stretched between them, something settling, something shifting.
And for the first time in a long time, Bucky didn’t feel like someone people ran from.
The last sip of tea was gone, warmth lingering only in the ceramic.
And then—her stomach grumbled.
Not softly. Not discreetly. Loud enough that Bucky heard it immediately.
She winced slightly, then laughed, shaking her head. "To think I work in a bakery—you’d assume I eat all the time, but honestly? You get kind of sick of it."
Her chuckle was light, meant to brush it off, and Bucky smirked a little, huffing out a quiet laugh.
But then, something shifted in his expression—consideration, maybe even a bit of guilt.
She had just finished work, probably exhausted, and here he was, taking up her time.
He straightened slightly. "I’ll take you out for a bite," he said, voice even, casual, like it wasn’t a big deal. "My way of saying thank you."
She blinked, immediately shaking her head. "Oh, you don’t have to do that—"
"There’s this small Italian place in Brooklyn," he interrupted, leaning back into the booth, the faintest bit of nostalgia slipping into his tone. "Best spaghetti and meatballs. Been around forever."
She was stunned, caught off guard—not by the offer itself, but by the way he looked when he said it.
The shift was subtle, but unmistakable—his eyes lit up, just slightly, something lively, something so different from the quiet intensity he usually carried.
And then—damn it.
The attraction hit her again, out of nowhere, sharp and terribly inconvenient.
'Bad [Name]. Bad. Behave yourself.'
She tried to push it away, tried to be normal, but then Bucky cleared his throat, licking his lips in that nervous way, his voice faltering slightly when she didn’t respond right away.
Shit—she was staring.
Snapping out of it, she shook her head quickly, waving a hand. "No, no—I’d love to go!"
A beat.
Bucky raised an eyebrow, clearly amused now.
"You sure?"
She exhaled, feeling ridiculous, but smiled anyway. "Yes, I’m sure."
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
And I'm back with part 2! Sorry works been a bit mental atm! I've started working on part 3 hopefully this lives up to the first part!
22 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 1 month ago
Text
Tumblr media
Lavenders Loaf Master list
Part 1 Part 2
7 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 1 month ago
Text
Tumblr media Tumblr media
Lavenders Loaf (Bucky x Fem!Reader) (1/?)
Tumblr media Tumblr media Tumblr media
---------------------------------------------------------------------
Summary : Bucky, overwhelmed by his past, finds himself spiralling into an anxiety attack outside a small bakery. Instead of turning away, [Name] offers him warmth and patience, giving him space to breathe. Warnings: Panic attacks? / Sweetness / Guilt / Vulnerability
---------------------------------------------------------------------
Morning settled softly over Queens, filtering through the sheer curtains of the apartment above the bakery, casting muted streaks of warmth against the wooden floorboards. [Name] stirred awake with the quiet familiarity of routine, stretching before pulling her hair up—messy but secure, a careless elegance born of necessity rather than vanity.
Downstairs, the scent of flour and sugar still lingered from yesterday’s baking, mixing with the first tendrils of fresh-brewed tea. The kitchen hummed with quiet efficiency as she preheated the ovens, sliding trays of pre-prepared pastries inside—croissants, brioche, and the delicate fruit tarts she always worried over just a little too much.
With a practiced ease, she wiped down the counters, humming under her breath. The quiet rhythm of her morning was soothing, predictable. It was a kind of peace she hadn’t dared to expect when she first came here.
A tea kettle whistled, piercing the tranquil atmosphere. She poured the steaming liquid into a cup, fingers curling around the warmth as she leaned against the counter, exhaling softly.
The bakery would open soon.
And outside—just beyond the window—the day was beginning.
The gentle hum of the bakery filled the space as [Name] leaned against the counter, cradling her tea in both hands. She took slow, deliberate sips, letting the warmth seep into her bones as she mentally checked off the day's tasks—supplies to restock, new pastries to test, the small repairs to the shop sign she kept forgetting to call about.
She glanced at the clock. 7:03 a.m. Fifty-seven minutes until opening. More than enough time to catch up on things before Beth showed up, full of energy and ready to tackle the morning rush. Beth had been there since day one—a firecracker of a woman with a sharp wit and a heart big enough to rival her mouth.
She was mid-thought when the sudden crash shattered the quiet.
A loud, jarring bang echoed from the alley behind the shop, metal clattering against pavement like a stack of trash cans knocked over by brute force. The sound punched through the stillness, making her jump so hard she almost spilled her tea.
Her heart hammered against her ribs. "What the fuck was that?!" she gasped, a hand flying to her chest as though she could physically calm the shock that jolted through her.
For a second, she stayed frozen, listening.
Silence.
Then, movement—soft, deliberate.
[Name] grabbed the broom from where it rested against the wall, tightening her grip around the wooden handle. It wasn’t much, but it was something. Just in case.
With cautious steps, she made her way toward the back door, pulse thrumming beneath her skin.
She gripped the broom tighter as she nudged the door open, expecting to find some petty thief rummaging through the back alley. But instead, she froze.
He was huge.
The man in front of her was built like he’d been carved straight out of stone—broad shoulders, towering stature, the kind of presence that made space around him feel smaller. Even hunched forward, leaning heavily against the brick wall, he looked powerful.
Black pants, a worn-out black jacket with a faded brown lining—his hoodie pulled up underneath, masking him even further. A baseball cap dragged low over his face, shielding his features like he knew exactly how to disappear into a crowd.
Her stomach twisted. Fuck. This is when I get robbed.
But something about him wasn’t right.
The way his left hand gripped the wall, fingers digging in as though he was trying—and failing—to steady himself. The tremor in his frame, barely visible, but undeniable. His breaths—shallow, strained. Like every inhale was a battle.
Shit. He was shaking.
Before she could second-guess herself, the words left her lips. "Are you okay?"
His reaction was immediate—his head snapped up, fast enough that she nearly flinched.
Even with the cap shadowing his face, she caught a glimpse of his features—sharp, exhausted, guarded. Blue eyes flicked to her, scanning, assessing, like a man hardwired to expect danger in every corner.
She tightened her grip on the broom. Because yeah, compared to her, this guy was massive.
The alley smelled of damp concrete and faint traces of old coffee grounds—remnants of discarded cups from the café a few doors down. The chill of early morning clung to the air, seeping through her sweater, raising goosebumps along her skin as she stepped forward.
She could hear it now—the uneven cadence of his breath, quick and shallow, like his lungs refused to pull in enough air. His body trembled, knees visibly weakening, his grip on the brick wall slipping just slightly.
She tossed the broom back into the kitchen—it landed with a sharp clatter, but he didn’t even flinch.
"Uh—hi," she stammered, voice barely steady. "Please don’t pass out. I—um—I’m not strong enough to drag you inside."
A nervous laugh bubbled up, forced but genuine. She wasn’t even sure if he had heard her.
His gaze cut through her, vacant but sharp, like some part of him was still analyzing, still bracing for something unseen.
She hesitated. Then, softer this time—careful, measured.
"My bakery’s right there," she murmured, tilting her head toward the open door, the scent of warm bread drifting into the alley, mingling with the cold. "Please—let me get you inside. You look like you’re having a panic attack."
The words felt too small for the weight of his struggle.
His breath hitched, shallow and rapid, like he was trying to wrestle control back from his own body. She could hear it—the fragility of it, the strain of every inhale.
She curled her fingers inward, resisting the urge to reach out.
She exhaled slowly, forcing the nerves from her voice. "I don’t want you collapsing out here," she said, glancing toward the bakery. "That wouldn’t be right."
The open door stood just feet away, the golden glow from inside spilling into the cool alleyway, carrying the scent of baked bread and faint traces of cinnamon.
"Please," she tried again, gentler this time. "It’s warm. I’ve got some tea ready."
For a beat, there was nothing—just the strained sound of his breathing, the way his fingers twitched slightly against the brick. Then, barely audible, a whisper:
"Okay."
She didn’t react too quickly, didn’t want to spook him. She turned toward the door, listening as he moved behind her, his steps uneven, deliberate—each one an effort.
Inside, the bakery was quiet, the early morning still settling in, soft and safe.
"Come in," she murmured, but before she could say more, the sharp thud of impact met her ears—his shoulder knocking into the wall by the door, then again against the edge of the counter.
She spun, already moving toward him.
He was on the ground now, legs sprawled, head hung low between his knees, breath ragged and fast—too fast. Each inhale was desperate, dragging in air like it might never be enough.
The sight sent a flicker of something sharp through her chest.
Slowly—deliberately—she lowered herself down, close enough to be near but not too much.
"I’m coming closer," she said, voice quiet, measured, so he’d hear her before he felt her movement.
She shuffled forward just slightly, no sudden motions, no reaching—not yet. Just presence.
The vulnerability in the space thickened, tangible now.
This was not fear. Not danger.
Just raw, unguarded exhaustion.
The sudden bang from the alleyway shattered the fragile silence.
Bucky flinched hard, shoulders tensing, head snapping up in immediate response—trained reflexes overriding exhaustion.
And just like that, she forgot how to breathe.
His eyes. God, his eyes.
Even shadowed by exhaustion, even clouded by struggle, they were a piercing kind of blue—sharp, striking, holding a depth that made her chest tighten without permission.
A tiny gasp slipped past her lips before she could stop it.
Get it together, [Name]. This man is clearly on the verge of passing out—focus!
She swallowed, grounding herself, forcing the heat creeping into her face to cool. Help first. Be completely useless over how stupidly attractive he is later.
She inhaled slowly, steadied herself, and shifted closer.
His voice was barely more than a whisper—fragile, fractured, slipping through shallow breaths.
"Steve..."
It wasn’t spoken to her. It wasn’t spoken to anyone here.
He wasn’t here.
She kept her movements slow, careful, voice soft enough to slip between the cracks of whatever memory was holding him hostage.
"What’s your name?"
His breathing hitched—ragged, uneven—but between sharp inhales, his voice surfaced, fragile and strained.
"James."
"Okay, James," she murmured. "I’m gonna need you to trust me, okay?"
His gaze wavered, unfocused, barely tracking her—but he heard her.
"Steve?" His voice was rough, instinctual, a lost tether reaching for something familiar.
Her heart clenched, but she kept steady. "I’m [Name]." The words were gentle, measured. "I need you to copy me."
She pressed her palm against her chest, right above her heart, taking a slow, deliberate breath—deep enough that he could see the rise and fall of her body.
"Breathe with me," she urged. "Count the beats. Just listen to it."
For a moment, he didn’t move, didn’t react. But then—hesitant, uncertain—he mirrored her. Shaking fingers pressed against his chest. His breath wavered, struggling to slow.
She waited.
When his inhales deepened, just slightly, when the erratic rhythm of his chest found some consistency, she exhaled, voice softer now, anchoring him.
"Good, James."
Her hand never left her chest. Her presence never wavered.
"You’re safe."
The words settled between them, steady, resolute, something firm enough for him to hold onto.
"You’re safe here."
A pause. Then, gentler still—
"I’ll help you find Steve."
The sharp ring of a phone cut through the quiet.
She flinched, instinctively looking at her own device—but it wasn’t hers.
Bucky tensed beside her, muscles locking, his breath hitching again. The sound had startled him, dragging him from the fragile calm they had built. Slowly, stiffly, he reached for the phone, his fingers unsteady, trembling too much to hold it properly.
She hesitated, then spoke gently, "Do you want me to answer it for you?"
His jaw clenched. A beat passed. Then, without a word, he slid the phone over to her.
She exhaled, grounding herself, and pressed the answer button, lifting the device to her ear.
"Hello?"
A voice, urgent and sharp, cut through the line.
"Buck?"
Then, confusion.
"You're not Bucky. Who are you? Why do you have this phone?"
In the background, multiple voices spoke over one another—quick, worried. Someone said something about a location. Someone else cursed under their breath.
She glanced at Bucky.
He looked like a deer caught in headlights, his breathing picking up again, his body on edge, his pulse visible where his hand was still pressed to his chest.
"It's okay," she said immediately, shifting closer, keeping her voice steady for him, not for the person on the phone. "You're still safe. Remember to breathe—like this."
She pressed her hand against her chest again, inhaling slow and deep, exaggerating the rhythm for him to follow.
His shoulders moved, mirroring her—still unsteady, but trying.
The voice on the phone was talking again, muttered discussions in the background. She swallowed, then asked gently, "Is this Steve?"
Silence for half a beat.
Then, "Yeah. Yeah, it’s Steve."
Relief slid through her, but she kept her tone calm.
"Good. He’s been asking for you," she said, glancing at Bucky again. "He’s a little dazed—he’s having a panic attack."
Steve cursed under his breath, the voices behind him shifting—plans being made, movement happening.
"I’m coming to get him," he said firmly.
She nodded, even though he couldn’t see it. "Okay. I’m at my bakery in Queens— It's the Lavender Loaf."
Bucky’s breathing had evened just slightly. His shoulders weren’t as rigid. The weight of exhaustion hadn’t left him, but there was something steadier now—something grounded.
"You’re safe," she repeated, softer now. "Steve’s coming."
The phone was still warm in her hand as she exhaled softly, glancing toward Bucky. His breathing had steadied, the sharp edges of panic smoothing out into something quieter, something more present.
On the other end of the line, Steve’s voice carried a flicker of recognition. "The Lavender Loaf?"
Before she could respond, another voice—younger, full of excitement—piped up in the background. "Oh, I know that place! Opened a few months ago—sweet treats are to die for."
A small laugh slipped past her lips, light and amused.
Steve sighed. "Okay, kid."
She shifted, softening her tone. "I’m putting the phone down now."
"Alright," Steve replied, steady, resolute. A beat later, the call ended.
She lowered the phone, letting the quiet settle before turning to Bucky. He was still sitting on the floor but looked better—less strung tight, his breath more controlled, his frame not as rigid.
"You okay?" she asked gently.
He blinked once, then murmured, "I’m fine."
She didn’t quite believe him, but it was enough for now.
"You want that tea?"
A slow nod.
She got up, moving toward the counter, reaching for a fresh mug and the kettle—but before she could pour the water, her timers went off.
The sharp, rhythmic beeping shattered the moment of calm.
"Shit."
She rushed to the ovens, pulling out golden pastries, the scent of butter and warm sugar immediately flooding the kitchen. She worked quickly, sliding trays onto the cooling racks, the soft, flaky layers gleaming under the light.
Bucky stayed quiet, watching her move, absorbing the scent, the familiarity of the moment—something real, something normal.
Tea forgotten for just a moment, she sighed, wiping her forehead before finally turning back to the kettle.
"Alright," she murmured, pouring the water carefully. "Tea, as promised."
She glanced at him as she reached for the sugar. "Milk, sugar?"
His voice was quieter now, steadier than before. "Two sugars. Milk. Thank you."
She stirred it in, watching the rich swirl of cream fold into the dark liquid, and slid the mug toward him.
He inhaled deeply, like the scent alone might help ground him further.
"Come on, big guy," she murmured, nodding toward one of the stools near the counter. "Sit here."
For a moment, he hesitated, like the simple act of standing was another battle to fight. But then, slowly, carefully, he pushed himself up.
And she really should not have been watching how his shoulders flexed with the movement.
She forced her gaze elsewhere, busying herself with clearing the counter, wiping at a spot that did not need wiping. Get it together, [Name].
Bucky exhaled as he settled onto the stool, lifting a hand and dragging off the cap. His hair, messy from being shoved under the hat for God knows how long, fell into his face before he pushed some of it back.
And, okay. He was so unfairly attractive.
Rugged, haunted, and 100% traumatized.
She felt warmth flood her face, swallowing hard as she quickly turned back to the trays of pastries cooling beside her.
"Uh—are you hungry?" she asked, voice absolutely normal, not at all affected by the man currently sitting in her kitchen like some exhausted, brooding Greek statue come to life.
Bucky looked at the pastries—the golden layers, the delicate sheen of sugar—but didn’t answer right away.
Bucky shook his head, barely lifting his gaze, and took a slow sip of his tea.
She watched him, debating whether to insist—because honestly, the man looked like he hadn’t eaten properly in a long time—but before she could say anything, a voice rang out from the front.
"[Name]! The place smells amazing—how are you this morning?"
Beth.
A flicker of tension shot through Bucky’s frame—his shoulders straightened, muscles coiled tight, his entire body primed for something.
The swinging door pushed open, and Beth strode inside, mid-step, mid-sentence—then stopped.
Hard.
"Who the fuck is this?"
The warmth in her expression vanished in an instant, blue eyes narrowing with sharp scrutiny. Her blonde curls were tucked under a black beanie, her deep green shirt creasing slightly under her black jacket. Without hesitation, her bag hit the floor, her fingers adjusting around her keys—held just enough between them to be used if necessary.
Beth was ready to throw down.
[Name] jumped up, hands lifting instinctively. "It’s okay! Beth—this is James. Bucky!"
She turned to him as she spoke, realizing she hadn’t even asked which he preferred.
Beth wasn’t having it.
"You let a strange, giant man into the bakery?" Her tone was sharp, incredulous. "Do you know how dangerous this is?!"
[Name] squared her shoulders, firm but calm. "I know, Beth. I had a broom."
Beth blinked. "A—A broom?!"
"He was having a panic attack—I couldn’t just leave him out there!"
Beth exhaled sharply, pressing her fingers against the bridge of her nose like she physically needed to recalibrate.
"This," Beth said, voice tight, "is how you end up DEAD. Have you NOT seen murder documentaries?!"
Bucky sat there—quiet, awkward, completely aware that this entire conversation was revolving around how he was potentially a serial killer, and yet utterly refusing to engage in it.
"I should go," he muttered.
[Name] shook her head quickly. "You don’t need to! Steve’s coming for you."
Beth did not look convinced.
"We’ll talk more about this," [Name] said, voice steady, "but right now, I need to keep this environment calm."
Beth stared at her for half a second—then sighed deeply, shaking her head before laughing.
"Okay, mush. Sorry for getting a bit angry." She waved a hand, turning toward the counter. "Listen, I’ll sort out the front—get it ready."
[Name] exhaled, tension slipping just slightly from her frame.
"Thanks, Beth."
She glanced toward the kettle, still warm, still waiting.
"Kettle’s boiled—you want me to make you a coffee and bring it out?"
Beth grinned. "Would you ever have to ask?"
Beth turned back to Bucky, narrowing her eyes like she was sizing him up one last time. She lifted two fingers, pointing at her own eyes, then at him, slow and deliberate.
"You harm a single hair on her head, and we’ll have beef," she warned, voice low and dead serious.
[Name] laughed, shaking her head, half-exasperated and half-amused.
And then—unexpectedly, deeply—Bucky chuckled.
It was low, rough, almost like it surprised him, too. Like the sound had just slipped out before he could stop it.
Beth blinked.
[Name] blinked.
Bucky—who had been teetering on the edge of falling apart minutes ago—was laughing.
Beth huffed, shaking her head, satisfied enough for now, and pushed through the kitchen door.
Bucky ran a hand down his face, fingers dragging along the scruff of his jaw. Then, quieter, almost hesitant—
"Sorry for causing so much trouble."
"Nonsense!" [Name] shot back immediately, waving off the apology. "We all have demons. You shouldn’t feel sorry for having a moment."
Bucky looked at her, eyes flickering with something unreadable.
A beat passed.
He hadn’t expected that.
--------------------------------------------------------------------
Bucky chuckled, low and deep, as Beth threw out her threat, glaring at him like she actually had a chance against the man who had been engineered for war. The amusement was unexpected—rare.
He was the Winter Soldier. The man feared across decades, a specter in history. And yet—
Beth reminded him of Steve.
Not the Steve who had taken the serum. Not the icon, not the leader. No—Steve before. The kid from Brooklyn, all bones and stubbornness, picking fights he had no chance of winning but refusing to back down anyway.
That thought lingered as he turned back to [Name], still seated at the kitchen counter, still absorbing everything that had just happened.
"Sorry for causing so much trouble," he muttered, dragging a hand through his hair.
"Nonsense," she said, dismissing it without hesitation. "We all have demons. You shouldn’t feel sorry for having a moment."
That caught him off guard.
He looked at her—really looked at her—and for a moment, his mind stalled.
Demons. The weight of them. The familiarity in her voice, like she understood without prying, without pressing, just letting it be.
It sent him spiralling.
The memory bled in, unbidden.
The sharp inhale as he jerked awake—lungs tight, fingers curled into fists before he even knew why.
The ceiling of Steve’s apartment stared down at him. The walls were solid. Safe. But his skin crawled, adrenaline still surging, the ghosts of the past clinging like shadows that refused to loosen their grip.
He had sat up, pushing damp hair from his forehead, breath uneven.
Steve was still asleep—thank god—and Bucky had needed to move.
Running had been his answer. It had always been his answer. So, he slipped out the door and ran.
Fast. Hard. Like he could outrun it, like the burn in his muscles might somehow tear the memories loose.
It didn’t work.
His therapist had given him coping techniques—grounding exercises, breathing patterns, ways to center himself when reality blurred into something else.
None of it worked.
Every step felt more like a retreat, pushing him deeper into something he couldn’t escape.
When he stopped, finally stopped, his hands were pressed against a brick wall—some nameless alley, cold and empty. His breath was too shallow, his pulse erratic. His grip trembled against the rough stone.
And then—
Soft. Gentle.
"Are you okay?"
The voice was light. Careful. Unafraid.
And for the first time since he started running—since he woke up in a panic—Bucky stopped sinking.
His head snapped up at the voice—soft, unsure, cutting through the static of his mind.
But he didn’t see her.
Not really.
The alley blurred at the edges, darkening too much, narrowing into something smaller, colder. The scent of damp pavement was replaced with sterile metal, blood, the sharp bite of chemicals he could never forget.
The past gripped him like a vice.
Breathing hitched—too shallow, too fast. His chest was caving inward, muscles locking, throat tightening. His body knew where this memory led, where it always led.
Then—
"Uh—hi," the voice came again, a little shaky, but there.
It didn’t belong to Hydra.
"Please don’t pass out. I—um—I’m not strong enough to drag you inside."
The words flickered through the haze, real, present, curling around him like a thread of warmth against the ice of the past.
But his mind fought back.
Chains. Commands. Pain.
His vision swam, the alley bending wrong, pulling him back, back, back—
Until—
"Please."
Softer this time. Gentler. A hand reaching without touching, an anchor without force.
"It’s warm. I’ve got some tea ready."
Warm. Not cold steel. Not dark cells. Not the suffocating grip of control.
He latched onto the words before he could think about it—before the memory swallowed him whole.
And when she turned, stepping toward the open door, toward light, toward warmth, he followed.
Unsteady. But moving.
The voice cut through everything.
"Bucky? You here?"
Familiar. Grounding.
His breath hitched, the past splintering away as reality shoved its way back in. He blinked, hands tightening around the warm ceramic of the mug in front of him, trying to steady himself, trying to pull himself together before Steve saw—before any of them saw.
But it was too late.
[Name] was already opening the door. "Through here!"
Steve stepped inside first, broad frame tense, blue eyes sharp with concern, scanning the space, locking onto Bucky immediately.
Sam followed right after, his expression softer, brows pulling together like he knew exactly what had just happened.
And just like that, Bucky felt even worse.
He had hoped—stupidly, selfishly—that he could push this down, that maybe Steve wouldn’t notice this time, that maybe it wouldn’t be a thing.
But it was.
Again.
Always.
Steve looked at him, the same way he always did when Bucky wasn’t okay, the way that made Bucky want to shrink, want to disappear before he had to see that worry again.
Sam exhaled quietly, running a hand down his face. "You good, man?"
Bucky swallowed hard.
"I’m fine."
The words felt wrong, tasted bitter, because they weren’t true, and everyone in this room knew it.
But what else was he supposed to say?
Sam was already watching him too closely—seeing too much, reading too much.
"You’re good, man," Sam said gently, eyes steady, voice meant to console, to soften the weight pressing down on Bucky’s chest. "You just had a moment. It happens."
But before Bucky could even try to grasp onto the reassurance, Steve stepped forward, tense, his jaw tight.
"A moment?" Steve's voice wasn’t sharp, wasn’t angry—not exactly. But it carried that tone. The one that curled with worry disguised as frustration. The one that made Bucky want to disappear before it spiralled into something worse.
"Why’d you disappear?" Steve pressed, arms crossing, eyes locked onto him like he needed an answer that made sense—like he was already frustrated with whatever Bucky could say.
And just like that, everything inside Bucky shrunk.
His shoulders curled inward—small, instinctive, his body closing off without thought.
Because he didn’t have an answer that made sense.
Because the real answer was just awful.
Because this kept happening, and no matter what he did, no matter how hard he tried, Steve always ended up worried, always looking at him like this—like Bucky was still slipping, still drowning.
Like it was his fault.
Sam exhaled loudly, shifting beside him.
"Okay, hold up."
His tone carried steel, not frustration but something firmer, something protective—but not in the way Steve was being protective.
Sam stepped forward, just slightly, voice edged with something sharp.
"He didn’t disappear on purpose, man," Sam said, looking at Steve now instead of Bucky. "You think he wanted to end up in an alley having a full-on panic attack?"
Steve’s jaw locked.
"No, I don’t—"
"But you’re coming at him like he did," Sam cut in. "Like he wasn’t already trying to fix it before anyone even got here."
Bucky exhaled slowly, trying so hard to just breathe, trying so hard to keep himself from completely collapsing inward.
He felt all of it sitting heavy in his ribs, curling deep into his bones—the frustration, the worry, the weight of being someone’s problem again.
Sam and Steve weren’t shouting, but the edge between them was thick, lingering just enough to turn the kitchen into something small.
And Bucky hated that.
---------------------------------------------------------------------
She had been quiet up until now. Listening. Watching. Letting them talk.
But then she saw it—saw the way Bucky shrunk, the way his shoulders drew inward, the way he looked smaller despite being anything but.
Like he was two feet away from them, right there, but still somehow forgotten.
Like his voice didn’t matter.
And that was it. That was the moment she snapped.
"Enough," she barked, stepping forward, standing right in front of Bucky like a damn guard dog, like she was ready to go to war over this.
Both Steve and Sam stilled, caught off guard.
"You both need to stop talking about him like he’s not right here!" Her voice shook, but not with fear—with anger, frustration, something deeply protective.
"Do you even hear yourselves? He just had a panic attack, and instead of checking in, you two are standing here debating his existence like he’s some problem that needs to be fixed!"
Steve opened his mouth, but she didn’t let him get a word in.
"You’re being shitty friends," she snapped, arms crossing, stance firm. "And if you keep this up, Steve, I will kick you out of my bakery."
Her shoulders trembled slightly, a leftover rush of adrenaline, an urge to hold the line, to make sure Bucky stayed seen—that this didn’t turn into another moment where he felt like nothing again.
Silence followed.
Sam rubbed a hand down his face, exhaling heavily, looking a little like he wanted to shake Steve by the shoulders.
Steve blinked, lips parting slightly, thrown by the sudden onslaught of anger.
And behind her—still, quiet, watching—Bucky sat, slightly stunned.
Because no one ever did this for him.
Sam exhaled, shaking his head slightly before turning to Bucky.
"My bad, man," he said, even though he had been on Bucky’s side the whole time.
Bucky gave a small nod, still a little tense but managing, "It’s okay."
Steve dragged a hand down his face, exhaling like he was re-evaluating all his life choices before meeting [Name]’s gaze.
"I apologize, ma’am," he said with sincerity, posture straightening slightly. "My ma raised me better than this."
[Name] squinted at him, crossing her arms.
"Ma’am?" she echoed, like she had just been personally offended by the word choice. Then she jerked her chin toward Bucky, unimpressed. "You need to apologize to James."
Steve blinked, lips pressing together in slight amusement before shifting his gaze back to Bucky.
Another sigh, then—"I’m sorry, Buck."
Bucky nodded, fingers curling around his cooling mug of tea, still absorbing everything.
[Name] softened just slightly, giving Bucky a small, quiet smile.
Sam looked over at her, eyebrows raising. "I like her."
Steve huffed a small chuckle, shaking his head. "Yeah. He definitely found a safe place."
A slow grin pulled at [Name]’s lips.
"Damn straight he did."
The moment was warm—familiar, settled. A quiet understanding lingered between them, something unspoken but deeply felt.
Then, the soft chime of the shop’s bell rang out, signalling customers had arrived.
The guys glanced toward the front, instinctively aware that their time here was coming to an end.
Steve turned to Bucky, smirking just slightly. "Ya ready, Buck?"
Bucky exhaled, rolling his shoulders as if shaking off the last remnants of the weight he carried.
"Yeah, punk."
Sam snorted, shaking his head. "You two and your dramatic little soap opera."
Bucky huffed out a small chuckle, pushing himself to his feet, steadier now, more present. He turned to [Name], nodding once, genuine, quiet but meant.
"Thank you."
She smiled—bright, unwavering, like she had never expected gratitude but fully welcomed it. "You’re very welcome."
Steve glanced at her as well, exhaling softly. "Thank you."
She waved it off, like it was nothing. Like it wasn’t a huge thing to offer someone a space to breathe.
They turned toward the alley, ready to leave, but before they could step away, she jumped forward.
"Wait!"
They paused, looking back as she darted toward the counter.
She grabbed a small bag, quickly packing a few pastries, carefully selecting the best ones before handing it over.
"For you guys," she said, holding it out. "Enjoy."
Sam and Steve instinctively reached for their wallets, but she shook her head firmly, waving them off.
"On the house."
Steve huffed a small chuckle, shaking his head. "You’re gonna lose money that way."
She grinned, leaning against the doorframe as she watched them step into the alley.
"Yeah, yeah," she teased. "Go on, take the goodies and scram."
Sam grinned. "I like her."
Steve chuckled, glancing back at her one last time before heading down the alley with Bucky.
The soft click of the back door shutting echoed through the quiet kitchen.
For a brief moment, she stood still, listening to the faint hum of the city outside, the lingering scent of warm tea and sugar in the air. The space felt different—lighter, somehow.
But then—back to work.
She moved quickly, slipping into the rhythm of the morning, muscle memory guiding her as she prepped the next batch of dough, hands dusted in flour, timers ticking down, the oven already humming with heat.
The rush took over, swallowing up everything else—the past hour, the unexpected visitors, the weight of it all.
It became knead, shape, bake, repeat—the familiar cadence of her world, where everything made sense, where the only thing she needed to focus on was the rise and fall of the bread, the golden crisp of pastries, the scent of cinnamon curling into the air.
And just like that, she was lost in it.
The way she always was.
The way she always would be.
---------------------------------------------------------------------
The car doors shut, the muffled hum of the city still lingering beyond the alleyway as they settled in.
Sam wasted zero time.
The second he was buckled in, he ripped open the bag of treats like a man who had been starved for years.
"Mmm mmm! Look at all that goodness!" he said, grinning, holding up the bag like it was full of treasure.
Steve huffed a chuckle, shaking his head as he peeked inside. "Which one you want, Buck?"
Bucky looked down, scanning the bag for a moment before reaching for a shortbread cookie—simple, classic, golden at the edges.
Sam smirked. "Going for the old-school pick, huh? Respect."
Bucky huffed—not quite a laugh, but the corner of his mouth twitched, just barely.
As Steve started the car, he glanced at Bucky briefly. "You know you can always talk to me, right?"
Something tight settled in Bucky’s chest for a second.
He nodded, eyes flicking toward the window. "Yeah. I know."
Sam broke the moment instantly, shoving half a pastry into his mouth.
"That baker," he said around a mouthful, "is a firecracker."
Steve snorted. "Yeah, she is."
Bucky didn’t say anything, but he knew Sam was right.
He glanced at the cookie in his hand, at the thoughtfulness behind it, at the warmth of everything that had just happened.
A safe place.
And as the car rolled forward, weaving through the streets toward Steve’s apartment, Bucky took a slow bite of the cookie.
It was perfect.
-----------------------------------------------------------------
Hi!!! I'm back! Sorry I've been a bit MIA but!!!! I have been writing my own novel! 😍 but I am working on fics to post for you guys and girls as well!
30 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 2 months ago
Text
Bucky Barnes Master List
Tumblr media
Lavenders Loaf Masterlist
6 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 2 months ago
Text
Tumblr media Tumblr media
~ A Little Taste of Heaven ~ (Peter Parker x Fem!Reader) (10/10)
Tumblr media
---------------------------------------------------------------
Warning: Angst / Sad / Nightmare / Mature / Happy ending?
Summary: After a high-stakes showdown with Blackout, the aftermath sees Peter surrounded by concerned friends, heartfelt confessions, and Tony Stark’s trademark banter. Meanwhile, [Name] grapples with her boyfriend’s double life as Spider-Man and an Avenger, while recovery downtime is filled with surprise visits from MJ and Ned, plenty of humour, and strict doctor’s orders to rest—no web-slinging allowed.
---------------------------------------------------------------
🎵🎶 I Like You Best - Ella Red 🎶🎵
---------------------------------------------------------------
[Name] knelt beside Peter’s lifeless form, her hands trembling as they pressed against his chest, desperately trying to will him back to life. Her tears fell steadily, soaking into his suit and mixing with the blood that still seeped from his wounds. Every shaky breath she took felt like it was tearing her apart, the grief consuming her. “Please,” she whispered, her voice raw and breaking. “Please, Peter… don’t do this. Don’t leave me.”
Her shoulders shook as a fresh wave of sobs wracked her body, her forehead resting against his as she clung to him. Every second that passed without a sign of life from him felt like an eternity, her heart splintering further. He’s gone, the thought whispered cruelly in her mind. You lost him.
Her head snapped up suddenly when the faint hum of engines filled the air. Her body tensed, her grief momentarily giving way to fear as she clambered to her feet, her tear-streaked face hardening into anger. Blackout. Her blood boiled at the thought of him returning to finish what he’d started. She grabbed a nearby pipe, her fingers tightening around the cold metal as she held it in front of her, ready to fight, ready to protect what little she had left.
The hum grew louder, the sound cutting through the night as the glow of repulsors came into view. Her heart pounded, fury surging through her veins as she raised the pipe, her hands trembling but her stance unwavering. “Come on,” she muttered under her breath, her voice shaking with equal parts rage and determination. “I’m not afraid of you.”
But as the figure drew closer, she realized something was off. The silhouette wasn’t Blackout’s. The armour was different—sleeker, brighter, more familiar. And then it clicked.
Iron Man.
The pipe clattered to the ground as her fingers went slack, her legs threatening to give out beneath her. Tony Stark landed with practiced ease, his suit gleaming even in the dim light of the rooftop. The helmet retracted with a hiss, revealing his face, his expression tense and alarmed. “Where is he?” Tony demanded, his voice sharp as his eyes scanned the scene. “Where’s Peter?”
She didn’t need to answer. His gaze landed on Peter’s body, and his face fell, the sharpness replaced by something softer—concern, fear, and a determination she’d seen before, in Peter. “F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” Tony barked, rushing to Peter’s side and dropping to his knees beside him. “Vitals. Now.”
As Tony worked frantically, [Name] crumbled again, her sobs breaking through the silence. She hated this—hated that Peter had fought so hard, had given so much, and might still be taken from her. “Please, help him,” she cried, her voice desperate and pleading. “He… he saved me. Please, don’t let him—”
Tony’s jaw tightened as he glanced up at her, his eyes flickering with emotion. “We’re going to fix this,” he said, his tone firm but carrying an edge of vulnerability. “I’m not losing him. Not today.”
“Vitals, F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” Tony barked, his fingers trembling slightly as he worked to stabilize Peter’s head. His usual sarcasm was absent, replaced by a tone of barely restrained panic. [Name] sat beside Peter, her hands clinging to his unresponsive form, her sobs breaking through the tense silence.
F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice came through the suit, calm yet firm: “Peter’s vitals are weak. Significant blood loss from abdominal wounds. Respiratory function is shallow but present. Immediate medical attention is required.”
Tony exhaled sharply, muttering under his breath, “Come on, kid. Hold on.”
F.R.I.D.A.Y. continued without missing a beat. “And [Name]—her injuries include multiple lacerations, possible bruised ribs, and mild shock. Superficial cuts along her arms and legs are consistent with rolling through glass. I recommend she receives medical attention as well.”
“I’m fine,” [Name] rasped, her voice barely audible through the tears. She glanced at Tony, her expression both defiant and desperate. “Just… help him. Please.”
Tony’s eyes softened for a split second as he glanced at her, but his focus quickly returned to Peter. “We’re getting him out of here. F.R.I.D.A.Y., notify the team. I need the Quinjet here yesterday.”
“Already en route, sir,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. replied smoothly.
Minutes felt like hours as they waited, the rooftop a surreal blend of chaos and silence. [Name] refused to leave Peter’s side, her hands trembling as she smoothed back his hair, her tears dripping onto his battered face. “Please, Peter,” she whispered. “Don’t leave me.”
The sound of the Quinjet’s engines roared in the distance, the hum growing louder as it approached. [Name] turned her head toward the sky, relief flickering in her chest as the jet descended. The landing gear unfolded with a practiced precision, and the hatch opened with a sharp hiss.
Steve Rogers emerged first, his tall, broad frame commanding as always. His shield was slung across his back, his expression stern as he took in the scene. Close behind him was Bucky Barnes, his metal arm glinting under the firelight as he scanned the area with a sharp, assessing gaze.
Steve’s pace quickened as he approached Tony and Peter, his brows furrowing in concern. “How bad is it?” he asked, his tone steady but tinged with urgency.
“Bad,” Tony admitted, his voice tight. “We need to get him to Bruce and Doctor Cho—like, now.”
Steve nodded, turning back to Bucky. “Let’s get him on the jet.”
The two moved swiftly, with the precision of soldiers used to working together under pressure. Bucky crouched down, his metal arm steady as he helped lift Peter’s limp form, while Steve carefully supported his legs. Tony hovered nearby, his armour clinking softly as he kept a close eye on the situation.
[Name] stumbled to her feet, her entire body protesting the movement. “I’m coming too,” she said, her voice shaky but determined as she hobbled after them. As they moved toward the jet, she glanced back toward the side of the building. “Blackout,” she muttered, her tone bitter. “He’s webbed to the side of the building.”
Steve followed her gaze, his eyes narrowing as he spotted the villain tangled in a mass of webbing. “That’s no joke,” he said, a hint of admiration in his voice. “What a dame.”
A ghost of a smirk crossed Bucky’s face as he helped secure Peter in the jet. “You staying to deal with it?”
Steve nodded. “Yeah. You get them to the clinic. I’ll handle this.” He gave Tony a firm look. “Keep me updated.”
“Always do, Cap,” Tony replied, his tone quieter but still resolute.
As the hatch of the Quinjet closed, Steve turned his attention back to Blackout, his shield sliding off his back with a practiced motion. The urgency of the moment remained, but for now, their priority was clear: Peter and [Name] needed help—and fast.
The Quinjet hummed softly as it cut through the air, the rhythmic vibration doing little to ease the tension in the cabin. [Name] sat beside Peter, her hands trembling as she reached out to brush his hair away from his face. His skin was pale, his breathing shallow, and the sight of him lying so still tore at her chest. The shock was settling in now, creeping up on her like a slow, cold wave. Her movements were mechanical, her mind too overwhelmed to process the chaos she had just escaped.
She let out a shaky breath, her fingers ghosting over his forehead. “Come on,” she whispered quietly, almost to herself. “Hold on.”
Bucky’s boots echoed softly against the metal floor as he approached, his expression calm but his posture deliberate, careful. He crouched beside her, his voice low and gentle. “Hey,” he said, his tone carrying a quiet kindness. “I need to take care of those cuts, okay? Just… let me help.”
[Name] blinked up at him, her tear-streaked face reflecting exhaustion and grief. She nodded silently, her throat too tight to speak. Her hands didn’t leave Peter, not entirely—her fingers still hovered near his cheek, as if letting go would make her lose him forever.
Tony moved closer, his hand resting firmly on her shoulder. The weight of it was grounding, steadying. “We’re getting him to the best docs there are,” he said, his voice steady but touched with an edge of optimism. He gestured briefly toward Peter’s unmoving form. “Bruce, Cho—they’ve got this. He’s in good hands.”
[Name] nodded again, her tears falling faster as she glanced at Peter’s face. “Thank you,” she managed, her voice trembling.
Bucky, ever patient, pulled out a first aid kit and began cleaning her wounds with practiced precision. He worked quietly, his movements careful and deliberate, his metal arm as steady as his flesh one. “You’ve got some nasty cuts here,” he said softly, dabbing at her arm with an antiseptic-soaked cloth. “A few of these are going to need stitches, but for now, I’m wrapping them up.”
She didn’t say much, her focus split between Peter and the sharp stings of Bucky’s work. She winced as he tightened a bandage around her ribs, but she didn’t pull away. The grief in her chest outweighed the physical pain, and she barely felt the needle-sharp sting of the antiseptic anymore.
“Sorry about the sting,” Bucky murmured, his tone apologetic. “Almost done. Just hang in there.”
Tony’s voice broke the silence again, softer this time. “Kid’s a fighter,” he said, glancing at Peter. “He’s got a habit of proving everyone wrong. You watch—he’ll bounce back.”
[Name] swallowed hard, her lip trembling as she nodded, her tears still flowing. She didn’t have the strength to reply, but she clung to Tony’s words like a lifeline, even if they felt impossibly distant.
The Quinjet continued forward, the hum of its engines the only constant in the chaos surrounding them. Every moment felt heavy, but the quiet assurances from Tony and the steady care from Bucky worked to keep her grounded, even as the grief pressed down like a crushing weight.
The hum of the Quinjet was the only constant sound, a faint backdrop to the heavy silence that hung between them. [Name] barely registered the passing time, her sense of it lost amidst the overwhelming grief gnawing at her chest. She hadn’t moved from Peter’s side, her fingers brushing his hair away from his pale face, her touch trembling. Her breaths came in short, shaky gasps, her chest tightening with every shallow rise and fall of his.
Her voice broke the silence, barely a whisper, as though speaking the truth aloud might shatter her entirely. “He took the blade for me,” she murmured, her tears dripping onto her hands as she stared down at him. “We had one shot to get the destabilizer—and I ran for it. Blackout was flying toward me, and I thought... I thought I could lay my life down to stop him. I was ready for it.” Her lip trembled, her voice faltering as she continued. “But I wasn’t ready for Peter to. I didn’t even know he was Spider-Man until Blackout ripped the mask off…”
The words lingered in the air, raw and heartbreaking, her grief palpable in every syllable. Bucky knelt beside her, his metal arm gleaming faintly in the dim cabin light. His voice was quiet, soft but steady. “He did what he thought he had to,” Bucky said gently, his eyes meeting hers with an understanding that came from his own history of sacrifices. “It doesn’t make it any easier, but Peter’s... Peter’s built like that. He protects the people he cares about. Even at his own expense.”
Tony’s hand rested firmly on her shoulder, grounding her in the midst of the chaos. “Kid’s a hero. Always has been,” he said, his voice carrying an edge of emotion but still threaded with determination. He gestured slightly toward Peter. “Bruce and Cho—they’ll fix him up. And we’ll keep him in one piece.”
She nodded weakly, her tear-streaked face betraying the turmoil running through her. The Quinjet shifted slightly, its engines softening as Friday’s calm voice came through Tony’s suit. “We’ve arrived at the compound, sir. Doctor Cho and Dr. Banner are waiting in the theater.”
The urgency returned like a slap, and Bucky moved to help her stand, steadying her carefully despite her wobbling legs. The hatch opened with a sharp hiss, revealing the Avengers compound bathed in lights, the medical team already prepared. Tony gestured toward Peter as the stretcher arrived. “Move him fast. I want Banner and Cho on this immediately.”
A swarm of activity followed, their movements quick and efficient as Peter was carefully transferred onto the stretcher. [Name] stumbled after them, her breathing uneven as she struggled to keep up. Her gaze stayed locked on Peter, her heart hammering in her chest as panic gripped her again. I can’t leave him. I can’t.
Doctor Cho approached her as they wheeled Peter toward the operating theatre, her tone firm but compassionate. “We need to tend to your injuries,” Cho said, gesturing toward the cuts and bruises covering her arms and legs. “You’ve taken some serious hits yourself.”
“No,” [Name] said sharply, her voice trembling as she tried to push past Cho. “I can’t leave him. Please—I have to stay with him.”
Tony stepped in, his voice steady but gentle. “Go with Cho,” he said, his hand briefly resting against her arm. “Get patched up. Bucky’s going with you. I’ll stay with Peter, and I’ll keep you in the loop. I promise.”
Her legs felt like they might give out as she stared at him, her heart pounding harder as the weight of his words sank in. She slumped slightly, nodding weakly as tears continued to fall. “Okay,” she whispered, her voice barely audible.
She watched helplessly as Peter was rushed down the corridor, his bloodied form disappearing behind the swinging doors of the theatre. Her chest tightened, the ache deepening with every step that took her further from him.
[Name] barely registered the soft hum of the compound as she was escorted through its hallways, her feet moving automatically but her mind far away. Every corner of her mind was consumed with Peter—his pale face, his shallow breaths, the blood staining her hands and clothes. The grief sat heavy in her chest, dulling everything else around her.
Doctor Cho’s calm voice broke through the fog as they reached a small medical room. “Alright, let’s get you cleaned up and patched,” she said gently, guiding [Name] to sit on the padded table in the center of the room. “You’ve been through a lot. This is going to sting a little, but you’ve held up pretty well so far.”
Cho crouched beside her, inspecting the makeshift bandages Bucky had applied earlier. She tilted her head in approval, her tone light and steady. “He did good work,” she said, glancing toward Bucky, who leaned casually against the wall with his arms crossed, his demeanor quiet but watchful. “Clean bandaging, solid pressure. You’re lucky.”
Bucky shrugged, the corner of his mouth twitching upward. “I’ve had some practice,” he said simply, keeping his voice low. He didn’t want to disturb [Name] more than she already was, her vacant stare fixed on a spot far beyond the walls of the room.
Cho’s gaze softened as she turned back to [Name]. “I’ll need to numb some of these areas before I stitch them up, okay?” she said, her voice gentle but professional. “Let me know if anything feels off.”
[Name] nodded faintly, her movements stiff and automatic. She didn’t flinch when the needle pricked her skin, nor did she react as Cho began her precise work. The antiseptic stung, the stitches pulled at the raw edges of her cuts, but none of it seemed to register. She was numb to it all, her thoughts spiralling back to Peter over and over again. Was he still alive? Had they reached him in time? What if they hadn’t?
Bucky stepped forward after a few minutes, holding a glass of water in his flesh hand. He crouched slightly to meet her gaze, his voice quiet and steady. “You need to drink this,” he said, his tone firm but kind. “You’ve lost blood, you’ve been through hell… if you’re not taking care of yourself, you’re not going to do him any good.”
She blinked slowly, her tear-streaked face turning toward him. For a moment, she looked like she might protest, but instead, she took the glass with trembling fingers. “Thank you,” she murmured, her voice hoarse and barely audible as she sipped. Her eyes didn’t meet his again, her focus drifting back inward as Cho finished the last of her stitching.
“Done,” Cho said softly, standing and patting [Name] lightly on the shoulder. “You’re a tough one. These stitches will hold until we can do a more thorough check. For now, I’ll get you set up in a room where you can shower. You’ll feel better once some of this grime is off.”
[Name] nodded wordlessly, her movements mechanical as she allowed them to guide her to a private room in the compound. Bucky lingered near the door, his metal hand resting lightly against the frame as she stepped inside.
“I’ll wait out here,” he said, his voice low. “Take your time.”
The door closed behind her, and she stood in the center of the room for a moment, the reality of the past hours crashing down on her. Her body felt foreign, heavy, like she didn’t recognize it anymore. Blood streaked her arms and legs, dirt clinging to her skin, glass embedded in the fabric of her torn clothes. She moved toward the bathroom like a sleepwalker, her hands trembling as she turned on the water.
The sound of the shower filled the room, the steam rising almost instantly and fogging the mirror. She undressed slowly, peeling the layers of ruined clothing away from her aching body. The air was cool against her skin, the faint sting of her cuts and bruises growing sharper without the fabric to muffle it.
When she stepped under the stream of hot water, it hit her like a wave. The heat seeped into her muscles, loosening the tension she hadn’t realized she was holding, but the water stung where it met open cuts. She bit her lip, the pain grounding her as she watched the water run red and brown, carrying away blood and dirt. Her fingers traced over her arms, scrubbing lightly as she tried to wash away the grime—and the memories.
Her chest tightened as she thought of Peter again, the sight of him pale and motionless burning into her mind. Her breath hitched, a sob escaping her lips as she pressed her hands to her face, the water mingling with her tears. The grief felt endless, swallowing her whole, but she forced herself to keep moving. She scrubbed harder, her movements almost frantic as if she could scrub away the guilt, the pain, the hopelessness.
When she finally stepped out of the shower, her legs felt like jelly, her arms shaking as she wrapped herself in a towel. She stared at her reflection in the fogged mirror, her eyes red and swollen, her skin clean but pale and marked with bruises and fresh stitches. She didn’t recognize herself.
A soft knock on the door broke her trance. “You doing okay in there?” Bucky’s voice called through gently.
She took a shaky breath, steadying herself as she opened the door. Bucky stood just outside, his expression calm but observant, his gaze flicking briefly to her freshly cleaned arms. “You’ll feel better once you rest,” he said simply, stepping aside to let her into the main room.
[Name] stepped out of the medical room, her movements slow and unsteady as she leaned against the wall for support. Her freshly stitched wounds throbbed faintly, but the physical pain was nothing compared to the ache in her chest. She had barely registered Bucky's reassurances, her mind too consumed with thoughts of Peter. The image of him lying on the rooftop, bleeding and broken, was burned into her memory, and the weight of it pressed heavily on her.
Bucky was waiting just outside, his posture relaxed but his gaze sharp as he watched her approach. “You okay?” he asked gently, his voice low and steady.
She nodded faintly, her eyes distant as she glanced toward the hallway leading to the operating theatre. “Can you take me to Peter?” she asked, her voice trembling with desperation.
Bucky’s expression softened, and he shook his head slightly. “Not yet,” he said, his tone careful but firm. “He’s still in the theatre. They’re working on him— Once he’s out, I’ll take you to him. I promise.”
Her shoulders slumped, the exhaustion weighing her down as she let out a shaky breath. She followed him to a nearby lounge, her legs barely carrying her as she sank into the sofa. The cushions felt too soft, too comforting, and she leaned back, her body heavy with fatigue.
“You hungry?” Bucky asked, crouching slightly to meet her gaze. “You should eat something.”
She shook her head, her voice barely audible. “I don’t feel hungry.”
Bucky didn’t push, but his lips pressed into a thin line as he stood. “I’ll make you something light,” he said, his tone leaving no room for argument. “A fruit plate or something. You don’t have to eat it all, but it’ll be here if you need it.”
She didn’t respond, her gaze drifting off into the distance as her thoughts spiraled back to Peter. The hum of the compound was faint, almost soothing, but it did little to ease the turmoil in her mind. Her eyes grew heavier with each passing moment, the exhaustion finally taking hold. Her body sank deeper into the sofa, her head tilting slightly as sleep began to claim her.
When Bucky returned, a small plate of neatly arranged fruit in his hand, he paused in the doorway. She was asleep, her face still streaked with dried tears, her body curled slightly under the weight of her grief. Setting the plate down on the nearby table, Bucky grabbed a throw blanket from the back of the sofa. He unfolded it carefully, draping it over her with a gentleness that belied his rough exterior.
“F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” he said quietly, his voice low to avoid waking her. “What’s the update on Peter?”
The AI’s calm voice filled the room. “They’re stitching him up now. The blade missed a vital organ by millimeters. He’s stable but critical. A transfusion is underway to address the blood loss.”
Bucky let out a slow breath, his jaw tightening as he processed the news. “Come on, kid,” he muttered under his breath, his voice carrying a mix of frustration and hope. “You’ve got this. Don’t make us wait too long.”
He glanced back at [Name], her chest rising and falling steadily as she slept. The exhaustion etched into her features mirrored his own, but he knew she needed this rest more than anything. For now, all he could do was wait—and hope.
-------------------------------------------------------------------
The world was shrouded in shadows, the skyline warped and unfamiliar as [Name] sprinted across the rooftop. Her breaths came in sharp, ragged gasps, her legs burning as she pushed herself harder, faster, desperate to reach Peter. The flames from the surrounding buildings roared louder, casting a hellish glow that seemed to devour the night. But the rooftop stretched endlessly ahead, her destination always just out of reach.
“Peter!” she screamed, her voice cracking as she stumbled forward. The only answer was the howling wind, carrying with it the acrid scent of smoke and ash. Panic clawed at her chest, her heart hammering against her ribs as she scanned the desolate rooftop. He wasn’t there. He should be there. “Peter, where are you? Please!”
She turned wildly, her eyes darting through the haze, but the rooftop was empty. No Quinjet. No Avengers. Just the suffocating weight of the silence and the oppressive heat of the flames closing in around her.
Her foot caught on something, and she fell hard to her knees. Pain shot through her, but she barely noticed as her hands scrambled over the rough surface. Her fingers touched something warm and wet, and when she looked down, her heart stopped.
Blood. A trail of it.
Her stomach churned as she followed it, crawling forward with trembling hands and legs that felt too weak to carry her weight. Each smear of crimson was a dagger to her chest, the fear twisting into something unbearable. Her vision blurred with tears as she reached the end of the trail, her breath catching in her throat.
Peter.
He lay face down, motionless, his suit torn and bloodied. The sight was like a punch to the gut, her entire body freezing as she stared at him, unable to believe what she was seeing. “No,” she whispered, her voice trembling. “No, no, no…”
She lunged forward, her hands gripping his shoulders as she rolled him over. His face was pale, his lips slightly parted, but his chest—his chest wasn’t moving. Her heart dropped, the world tilting violently as she pressed her hands against his wounds. “Peter, wake up!” she begged, her voice rising in desperation. “Please, please wake up. Don’t do this. Don’t leave me!”
Her fingers trembled as she searched for a pulse, her hands sliding across his neck and wrist with frantic movements. Nothing. She pressed her ear to his chest, hoping, praying for the faintest hint of a heartbeat. The silence was deafening.
“No!” she screamed, her voice shattering under the weight of her grief. Her tears fell in heavy streams, mixing with the blood that stained his suit. She shook him, her hands clutching at him as though sheer force could bring him back. “You can’t leave me! You can’t!”
The flames crept closer, the heat licking at her skin, but she didn’t care. She couldn’t care. Her entire world had come crashing down in that one moment, and the loss was too vast, too suffocating to comprehend. The air felt thick, choking her as she cried harder, her forehead pressing against his. “Please,” she whispered, her voice broken. “Please come back. I need you. I can’t do this without you.”
Her sobs echoed into the emptiness, the world around her darkening as the flames consumed everything. She felt like she was being swallowed whole, the despair pressing down on her until she couldn’t breathe. Every second stretched unbearably, the weight of his absence threatening to crush her completely.
And then, like a cruel twist of fate, the rooftop crumbled beneath her. She fell, the air rushing past her as she screamed his name, the darkness rising up to claim her.
[Name] jolted awake, her body shooting upright as a panicked cry tore from her lips. “Peter!” she shouted, her voice raw and trembling, the name echoing off the walls of the room. Her hands clenched the throw blanket draped over her, her eyes darting wildly as her breath came in rapid, shallow gasps.
Bucky was at her side in an instant, his hands raised in a calming gesture, his movements steady and deliberate. “You’re safe, [Name],” he said, his voice low and soothing, as though trying to calm a wild animal. “Peter’s safe. We’ve got you. You’re at the compound.”
Her chest heaved as she stared at him, her eyes wide and frantic, the dream lingering in her mind like a shadow. “Wha-what time is it?” she stammered, her voice shaky as she glanced around the room, her gaze flitting like a deer caught in headlights.
“It’s the next day,” Bucky said, his tone calm but tinged with concern.
Her eyes widened further, her jaw dropping as she clutched the blanket closer to her chest. “What? You let me sleep that long?” she asked, disbelief and faint anger creeping into her voice.
Bucky nodded, his lips pressing into a thin line as he crouched slightly to meet her gaze. “You needed the rest,” he said simply. “Your body’s been through hell.”
She moved slightly, trying to push herself upright, but a sharp pain shot through her side, and she winced, her hand instinctively flying to her ribs. “Ugh,” she muttered under her breath, the soreness making even small movements difficult.
“Take it easy,” Bucky said gently, moving to the nearby table and returning with a glass of water and a small bottle of painkillers. “These are from Doctor Cho—for the pain.” He handed them to her, his flesh hand steady as he held the glass.
She hesitated for a moment before taking them, her fingers trembling as she swallowed the pills with a small sip of water. Her eyes stayed locked on him, her expression pleading. “Take me to Peter,” she whispered, her voice cracking slightly.
Bucky’s expression softened further, and he sat back slightly, his tone steady but firm. “I will,” he promised. “But first, you’ve gotta eat something. I’m serious—just a little something to keep you going.”
Her shoulders slumped, exhaustion and pain making her feel heavier with every passing second. “Fine,” she murmured, her voice barely audible.
Bucky stood, his movements slow and deliberate, and headed toward the small kitchenette tucked into the corner of the room. A few moments later, he returned with a light breakfast—a simple plate of sliced fruit and toast arranged neatly. He set it down in front of her, his tone quiet but insistent. “Take your time,” he said, gesturing slightly toward the plate. “You eat, and then I’ll take you to Peter. Deal?”
She nodded faintly, her movements mechanical as she reached for the food, her thoughts still consumed by him.
[Name] picked at the fruit on the plate, taking small, hesitant bites. Her stomach twisted uncomfortably as she forced herself to eat, the soreness a reminder of how long it had been since she’d had a proper meal. The sweetness of the fruit lingered on her tongue, but the heaviness in her chest made it hard to fully focus on the taste. She chewed slowly, her gaze fixed on the plate, though her thoughts were far away—back with Peter, back in the theater where his life hung in the balance.
Across the room, Bucky stood near the small kitchenette, his posture casual but his movements betraying a hint of unease. His metal arm, glinting faintly under the soft light, stayed tucked behind him, hidden almost instinctively. He fiddled with the edge of the counter for a moment before clearing his throat, drawing [Name]’s attention.
“You’re doing good,” he said softly, his voice a little awkward but kind. “Eating’s a good start.”
She glanced up at him, noticing the way he shifted slightly, his gaze flickering between her and the plate. For a moment, she didn’t say anything, but then her lips curved into the faintest of smiles. “You don’t have to hide it, you know,” she said quietly, her gaze dropping to his metal arm before meeting his eyes again. “It doesn’t bother me. And neither does who you are.”
Bucky blinked, clearly caught off guard by her words. His shoulders relaxed almost imperceptibly, and the corner of his mouth twitched in what might have been a relieved smile. “Not everyone says that,” he admitted, his tone lighter now. “Guess I should’ve figured you’d be different.”
[Name] shrugged faintly, her fingers idly brushing the edge of the plate. “I don’t really have time to judge people,” she murmured. “Not when everything’s so... messy.”
The moment was interrupted by a knock on the doorframe, and both of them turned to see Steve standing there, his presence as commanding as ever but softened by the concern in his expression. “Hey,” he said, stepping into the room. “I just came from the theater.”
[Name] straightened slightly, her breath hitching as she gripped the plate tighter. “Is he—?”
Steve’s lips quirked into a small, reassuring smile. “He’s stable,” he said, his voice steady. “The transfusion’s doing its job. His vitals are holding, and Bruce says he’s strong—he’s fighting.”
A shaky breath escaped her, and she sagged back against the cushions, relief washing over her like a wave. “Thank God,” she whispered, her hands trembling as she set the plate aside.
Steve moved closer, his expression still warm but carrying a hint of curiosity. “You did good out there,” he said, his tone genuine. “Taking on Blackout the way you did, holding your own—that’s impressive.”
She shook her head quickly, her cheeks coloring slightly as she looked down at her hands. “I didn’t do anything,” she said softly. “It was the web bomb. I just... found it. I didn’t even know what it was. My gut told me to press the button, and... well, you saw what happened.”
“You trusted your instincts,” Steve replied, his voice steady and calm. “That counts for a lot.”
Bucky, who had moved to sit on the arm of the chair across from her, chimed in with a faint smirk. “Yeah, not everyone would’ve kept their cool like that. Blackout’s no small-time villain.”
[Name] exhaled softly, her gaze dropping as she fiddled with the edge of her sleeve. “I didn’t feel calm,” she admitted. “I felt like everything was falling apart.”
“And you still did what needed to be done,” Steve said, his tone firm but kind. “Don’t sell yourself short.”
Her eyes flicked back up to meet his, her lips pressing into a thin line as she nodded faintly. The weight in her chest felt a little lighter, though the ache for Peter remained.
Steve leaned against the doorframe, his blue eyes meeting [Name]’s. There was no judgment in his gaze—only calm understanding. “You know,” he began, his tone steady and thoughtful, “what you did out there… that took a lot of courage. Facing someone like Blackout, holding your own, making that split-second decision—it’s not easy. But you did it.”
[Name] shifted slightly, her fingers brushing the edge of the throw blanket draped over her lap. “I don’t know if it was courage,” she murmured, her voice soft. “It felt like I was just… desperate. I didn’t even know what the web bomb would do. My gut told me to press the button, and I did. Everything else was just… chaos.”
Steve smiled faintly, stepping further into the room. “Sometimes courage is just acting despite the chaos,” he said quietly. “Trusting your instincts, even when everything’s falling apart around you. I know a little something about that.” He paused briefly, his expression turning nostalgic. “When I was just a kid, before all of this,” he gestured vaguely toward himself, “we were in training. They threw out what we thought was a live grenade, told us to hit the deck. But me? I jumped on it.”
Her brows furrowed, a mixture of curiosity and disbelief flickering across her face. “You jumped on it?” she asked, tilting her head.
Steve nodded, the faintest hint of a smirk pulling at his lips. “Turns out it was a dud. But at the time, I didn’t know that. I just… acted. Not because I wanted to be brave, but because it felt like the only thing I could do to protect everyone else.”
From his spot near the kitchenette, Bucky let out a low chuckle, the sound warm and familiar. “He’s always been a punk,” he said, his tone laced with fondness. “Never could resist showing off.”
[Name] blinked at him, her lips curving into a small, hesitant smile. “You know,” she said, her voice gaining a little strength, “you two aren’t exactly what I thought you’d be like.”
Bucky raised a brow, crossing his arms as he leaned against the counter. “Oh yeah?” he asked, his tone light. “What’d you expect?”
She shrugged, a trace of humour slipping into her voice. “I don’t know—less… human? More untouchable, I guess. But you’re just… people. You care about each other, you care about Peter, you care about me—and I wasn’t expecting that.”
Steve chuckled softly, his blue eyes warm as he glanced at Bucky. “Guess we’re full of surprises,” he said lightly. His gaze shifted back to [Name], softening further. “Come on then. Let’s go see Peter.”
Her breath hitched slightly, but then she nodded, her lips curving into a genuine smile for the first time since she’d woken up. Steve moved to her side, offering his hand to help her up, while Bucky grabbed the plate of fruit she’d been picking at.
They walked slowly, Steve and Bucky matching her pace as she hobbled forward, her movements stiff and sore but resolute. The corridor stretched ahead, but with each step, the anticipation built, the hope flickering brighter in her chest.
The corridor leading to Peter’s room felt impossibly long, each step heavy with anticipation and fear. [Name] walked slowly, her pace uneven as soreness tugged at her every move, but she refused to stop. Steve and Bucky flanked her on either side, their presence steady and quiet, an unspoken promise of support. The air was thick with tension, every inch of her growing heavier as they reached the door.
Steve pushed it open gently, stepping aside to let her through first. [Name] paused for a moment, her breath hitching in her throat as she took in the sight of the room. Peter lay in the hospital bed, surrounded by machines that beeped softly, their rhythmic sounds the only indication of life. A blood bag hung next to him, the crimson liquid flowing steadily through a line into his arm. His face was pale, his body looking so small and fragile amidst the wires and tubes.
Her eyes welled with tears, the weight of seeing him like this crashing over her. She hobbled toward the bed, her legs shaking but steady enough to carry her to his side. Her fingers brushed against his pale skin, the touch so gentle it was barely perceptible. Leaning down, she pressed a faint kiss to his forehead, her lips trembling as she whispered, “You stayed. Thank you.”
The words were meant only for him, a quiet acknowledgment of his fight, his sacrifice, and the hope she clung to. She stayed like that for a moment, her forehead hovering just above his, her tears falling silently onto the blanket.
Steve’s voice broke the stillness, soft but resolute. “We’ll wait outside for you,” he said, his tone leaving room for her to stay as long as she needed.
She shook her head, her throat tight as she looked back at him. “I want to stay,” she said, her voice cracking. “I won’t leave until he wakes up.”
Steve nodded, his gaze steady, and Bucky offered a faint smile before turning to follow Steve out of the room.
A few minutes passed in silence before Bruce entered, his movements careful and deliberate, his expression lined with concern. “Hey,” he said softly, his tone measured but carrying a trace of hesitation. “You’re holding up well. Just so you know, there isn’t a guarantee he’ll wake up today. He’s stable, but his body’s been through a lot.”
Her chest tightened, guilt flaring in her gut as she looked down at Peter’s pale face. “I shouldn’t have…” she started, her voice trailing off as she struggled to find the words. “I should’ve—”
Bruce shook his head gently, cutting her off with a reassuring tone. “You did what you could. Sometimes, the hardest choices don’t leave room for perfect outcomes. What matters now is that he’s here—and he’s fighting.”
Before she could respond, Tony appeared in the doorway, his expression a mix of concern and forced levity. “Man, it’s too quiet in here,” he quipped lightly, striding into the room. “Not exactly the lively hangout I imagined for the kid. But hey, at least he’s getting some beauty sleep.”
His gaze softened as he looked at Peter, and then at [Name]. “You know,” he said, his tone dropping slightly, “this isn’t on you. The kid—he’s got guts. More guts than most of us combined. And whatever happens, you can bet he’d do it all over again.”
Bruce nodded in agreement, his arms crossed as he leaned against the nearby counter. “Tony’s right. Peter’s resilient. It’s not easy, but he’s got a lot working in his favor. And it’s okay to take some of the weight off your shoulders. You’re not alone in this.”
[Name] let out a shaky breath, her fingers still brushing Peter’s arm as her tears fell silently. The room grew quieter, the sound of the machines steady and rhythmic, a faint reminder of life continuing despite everything.
The room fell quiet after Bruce and Tony stepped out, leaving [Name] alone with Peter. She stared at his pale face, her fingers gently brushing over the blanket that covered him, feeling the faint texture under her trembling touch. Her tears had dried, though the ache in her chest hadn’t lessened. She exhaled softly, leaning forward as she rested her head beside his arm on the bed. The steady rhythm of the machines was almost soothing now, each beep a quiet reassurance that he was still here.
“You’re still fighting,” she whispered, her voice barely audible. “I’m going to stay right here until you wake up, Peter. I promise.”
Her fingers grazed his arm, as if the smallest touch might give him strength. The exhaustion tugged at her, her body heavy and worn from the events of the past days. She resisted it at first, unwilling to leave him even in sleep. But as she sat there, the hum of the machines and the faint warmth of his presence began to lull her.
Her eyelids grew heavier, her breathing slowing as she surrendered to the pull of rest. Her head tilted slightly against the edge of the bed, her posture softening as her body relaxed for the first time in what felt like forever. This time, sleep didn’t bring chaos or nightmares. There were no flames, no blood, no desperate cries. Instead, it was quiet—a deep, comforting quiet that wrapped around her like a soft blanket.
Her dreams were scattered and light. She wasn’t running or fighting; she was simply… existing. The weight of grief lifted slightly in this space, the turmoil quieted. The steady rhythm of Peter’s monitors seemed to carry into her subconscious, anchoring her amidst the calm. For the first time in days, she didn’t feel like the world was crumbling beneath her feet.
The faint light of the room reflected off the machines, casting gentle shadows that danced softly against the walls. Her breathing matched Peter’s in rhythm now, steady and peaceful. She shifted slightly in her sleep, her hand resting near his as if reaching out even unconsciously.
Outside, the compound moved forward—Tony and Bruce continued their quiet coordination of Peter’s care, Steve and Bucky exchanged updates about Blackout’s status. But inside the room, time seemed to still, allowing [Name] a moment of pure tranquility beside him.
Though her heart was still heavy, her exhaustion had given her a reprieve—a peaceful moment in a storm she wasn’t ready to face alone. And for now, that was enough. She would wait for him, no matter how long it took.
The room fell quiet after Bruce and Tony stepped out, leaving [Name] alone with Peter. She stared at his pale face, her fingers gently brushing over the blanket that covered him, feeling the faint texture under her trembling touch. Her tears had dried, though the ache in her chest hadn’t lessened. She exhaled softly, leaning forward as she rested her head beside his arm on the bed. The steady rhythm of the machines was almost soothing now, each beep a quiet reassurance that he was still here.
“You’re still fighting,” she whispered, her voice barely audible. “I’m going to stay right here until you wake up, Peter. I promise.”
Her fingers grazed his arm, as if the smallest touch might give him strength. The exhaustion tugged at her, her body heavy and worn from the events of the past days. She resisted it at first, unwilling to leave him even in sleep. But as she sat there, the hum of the machines and the faint warmth of his presence began to lull her.
Her eyelids grew heavier, her breathing slowing as she surrendered to the pull of rest. Her head tilted slightly against the edge of the bed, her posture softening as her body relaxed for the first time in what felt like forever. This time, sleep didn’t bring chaos or nightmares. There were no flames, no blood, no desperate cries. Instead, it was quiet—a deep, comforting quiet that wrapped around her like a soft blanket.
Her dreams were scattered and light. She wasn’t running or fighting; she was simply… existing. The weight of grief lifted slightly in this space, the turmoil quieted. The steady rhythm of Peter’s monitors seemed to carry into her subconscious, anchoring her amidst the calm. For the first time in days, she didn’t feel like the world was crumbling beneath her feet.
The faint light of the room reflected off the machines, casting gentle shadows that danced softly against the walls. Her breathing matched Peter’s in rhythm now, steady and peaceful. She shifted slightly in her sleep, her hand resting near his as if reaching out even unconsciously.
Outside, the compound moved forward—Tony and Bruce continued their quiet coordination of Peter’s care, Steve and Bucky exchanged updates about Blackout’s status. But inside the room, time seemed to still, allowing [Name] a moment of pure tranquility beside him.
Though her heart was still heavy, her exhaustion had given her a reprieve—a peaceful moment in a storm she wasn’t ready to face alone. And for now, that was enough. She would wait for him, no matter how long it took.
-------------------------------------------------------------
Everything was dark. The kind of all-consuming darkness that pressed in from every direction, heavy and suffocating. Peter’s senses felt distant, muted, like they were locked behind a thick layer of fog. His body wouldn’t move—wouldn’t even respond when he willed it to. It was as though gravity itself had doubled, pinning him down with an unforgiving force.
There were voices, muffled and indistinct, weaving through the haze. He couldn’t make sense of them; the words tangled together in a meaningless blur. Every time he tried to focus on the sound, it slipped away, leaving him with only the oppressive silence and the weight of the darkness. His head felt heavy, his eyelids leaden, as if opening his eyes required a strength he didn’t have.
And then, like a sharp, unforgiving blade, memory struck.
[Name].
The image flashed in his mind, vivid and raw. Her body tipping backward, her cry ringing out over the chaos, the way her arms reached out to pull Blackout with her as she fell. It hit him like a punch to the gut, the grief so strong it stole the breath he didn’t even realize he’d been holding. I couldn’t stop her, he thought, the guilt slicing through him like jagged glass. I didn’t save her.
The heaviness pressed down harder, the suffocating weight of failure closing around him. He tried again to move, his fingers twitching faintly, but it felt like his body was fighting against him. He wanted to scream, to cry out for her, but the darkness swallowed his voice.
A sensation broke through the void—a touch, light and familiar, brushing against his cheek. It was so faint at first that he thought he might have imagined it, but then it came again. A warmth spread from that single point of contact, grounding him in a way he couldn’t explain. The fog in his mind shifted slightly, the weight lifting just enough for clarity to flicker at the edges.
Her hand.
He knew it, instinctively, without needing to see it. That touch—it was hers. It had to be. The grief faltered, replaced by something softer, something that carried with it a fragile hope. He focused on the sensation, letting it anchor him amidst the darkness.
His eyelids twitched. The heaviness was still there, pulling at him, but the faint warmth from her touch gave him the strength to push back. Slowly—painfully slowly—he willed his eyes to open.
Light pierced the void, sharp and overwhelming as his lashes fluttered. His vision blurred, shapes and shadows blending together in a chaotic mess. The voices grew clearer, no longer lost in the haze, though he still couldn’t place them. He blinked again, each movement feeling monumental, and the room around him began to take shape.
Machines beeped softly, their rhythmic sounds steady and reassuring. The faint glow of monitors illuminated the space, casting gentle shadows on the walls. And beside him, her figure came into focus.
It was [Name].
Her head rested against the bed, her hand lightly brushing his cheek, her breathing steady as she slept. Tears streaked her face, and though she looked worn and fragile, there was a quiet strength in the way she stayed close to him. His chest tightened, the guilt and relief clashing in a whirlwind of emotion.
His lips parted, the faintest whisper escaping into the quiet. “… [Name.]”
Peter’s hand trembled as he slowly reached out, his fingers brushing gently against her hair. The strands were soft, familiar, and the sensation grounded him like nothing else could. Relief washed over him in an overwhelming wave, his breath hitching before he let out a deep, shaky sigh. She’s alive. The weight in his chest eased slightly, the suffocating guilt and fear shifting just enough for him to breathe.
Her movement was subtle at first—a faint stir against the bed—but it sent a ripple of anticipation through him. He blinked slowly, willing his vision to focus, and then her eyes opened. She blinked, disoriented for a moment, before her gaze locked onto his. Her lips parted, her voice breaking the quiet like sunlight cutting through a storm. “Peter! You’re awake!”
Peter swallowed hard, his voice trembling as he spoke, barely above a whisper. “You’re alive,” he said, the relief palpable in his tone. “I thought… I thought I lost you.”
“No,” she said firmly, her voice cracking with emotion. Tears welled in her eyes as she leaned closer, her forehead gently touching his. “I almost lost you. Don’t ever do that to me again.”
Peter’s lips curved into a faint smile despite the heaviness in his chest. His thumb brushed against her cheek, wiping away the tear that slipped down. He tilted his head slightly, his gaze soft and full of unspoken words. Then, with a tenderness that belied the chaos of the past days, he leaned forward and placed a gentle kiss on her lips. The warmth of the moment wrapped around them like a shield, fragile but strong enough to hold them together.
“I love you,” he whispered, his voice carrying all the weight of his emotions—his relief, his gratitude, his unwavering affection.
Her lip trembled, and she whispered back without hesitation, “I love you too.”
The moment lingered, quiet and intimate, until the sound of someone clearing their throat shattered the stillness. They both looked up sharply, and there stood Tony in the doorway, his arms crossed casually but his expression carrying a mix of amusement and warmth.
“Hate to interrupt,” Tony said, his tone laced with his usual sarcasm, “but I’m glad you’re okay, kid. Really glad. You had me worried there for a minute—and I don’t do worried well.”
Peter let out a breathless chuckle, his voice still weak but filled with gratitude. “Thanks… Mr. Stark.”
Tony’s eyes softened as he stepped into the room, his typical bravado tempered by the relief that Peter was awake. He gave them space, but his presence carried a quiet reassurance, the kind that only came from someone who cared deeply but hid it behind humour.
Peter let out a soft exhale, his head sinking slightly into the pillow as his energy waned again. Relief filled his chest at the sight of [Name] alive and beside him, but exhaustion tugged heavily at him. Tony, ever the commanding presence, leaned against the side of the bed, arms crossed and smirking faintly.
“You’re gonna be bed-ridden for a bit, kid,” Tony said, his tone straddling the line between teasing and serious. “Lost a lot of blood back there. Between the transfusion and your energy levels, we’re keeping you horizontal until Banner gives the all-clear.”
Peter groaned softly, his voice raspy and weak. “I’ll be fine…”
Tony raised a hand, cutting him off with mock sternness. “Yeah, and I’m Iron Man,” he quipped. “Oh, wait. I am. So maybe listen to me, kid. No running around rooftops or getting into fights for a while. Doctor’s orders—and Tony’s. You don’t want to see me enforce it.”
Peter chuckled faintly, his lips twitching into a weak grin. “Got it… Mr. Stark.”
Just then, Steve stepped into the room, his presence as steadying as ever. “Tony, you’re lecturing already?” he teased, raising a brow. “Give the kid a chance to catch his breath.”
Tony turned, pointing at Steve with a smirk. “Lecturing? No. Educating. Big difference, Cap.”
Steve shook his head, walking over to Peter’s side. “Good to see you awake, Peter,” he said warmly. “You had us all worried.”
Peter gave a slight nod, his voice soft but earnest. “Thanks… for everything.”
“Alright,” Tony interjected, clapping his hands together. “As much as I’d love to hang out, we’ve got stuff to do. Bruce wants updates, Cap’s got debriefs, and I—well, I just have a million things to handle.”
Steve chuckled as he followed Tony toward the door, glancing back briefly. “Take it easy, Peter. Rest up, [Name].”
Once they were gone, the room fell silent, the faint beeping of the machines the only sound. [Name] turned to Peter, her expression shifting as she struggled to keep her emotions in check. Finally, she exhaled sharply, her voice trembling. “I can’t believe it,” she said, her eyes glistening. “I can’t believe you’re Spider-Man. How… why didn’t you tell me?!”
Peter’s face fell, guilt flashing across his pale features. “I’m sorry,” he murmured, his voice barely above a whisper. “I wanted to, but I didn’t know how. I didn’t want to put you in danger.”
Her shoulders slumped, her frustration ebbing as she looked at him—really looked at him. “I get it,” she said softly, her tone losing its edge. “I do. I just… I wish I could’ve been there for you, you know? I hate that you’ve been carrying this alone.”
Peter reached out weakly, his hand brushing against hers. “You’re here now,” he said, his voice cracking with emotion. “And that’s all that matters to me.”
She nodded, tears spilling down her cheeks as she held his hand tightly. “You scared me,” she whispered. “Don’t ever scare me like that again.”
“I promise,” he replied, his voice laced with sincerity.
------------------------------------------------------------------
The living room was a mess of takeout boxes, tangled charging cords, and scattered blankets, but it felt alive. After days of tension and recovery at the Avengers compound, [Name] could finally breathe again, surrounded by familiar faces and a comforting lack of life-threatening chaos. Peter was sprawled out on the couch, his legs stretched across the cushions as he leaned against [Name], her head resting on his shoulder. MJ sat cross-legged in the armchair, her usual deadpan expression softened by a faint smile, while Ned dug into a carton of lo mein like it was the most important task of his life.
“So,” MJ began, her tone carrying its signature dryness as she glanced at [Name]. “I guess it’s time for us to apologize for… you know, not mentioning the whole ‘Peter is Spider-Man’ thing.”
Ned froze mid-bite, his eyes darting between MJ and [Name]. “Yeah,” he said quickly, nodding in agreement. “We, uh… definitely should’ve told you. I mean, you kinda had a right to know.”
[Name] raised an eyebrow, her lips curving into a faint smirk. “A right to know? That’s what you’re going with?”
Peter groaned softly, tilting his head back against the couch. “Guys, stop making it sound worse.”
“No, no,” MJ said, holding up a hand to stop him. “Let her talk. She has a right to be mad at you, Peter. And at us.” She turned back to [Name], gesturing slightly. “Go ahead. Get it all out.”
[Name] snorted, shaking her head as she looked between the three of them. “Honestly? I’m not mad. I mean, I was, for like… a second. But I get it. You were just trying to protect me.”
Peter’s hand slipped into hers, his thumb brushing against her knuckles. “I didn’t want you to get hurt,” he said softly, his gaze searching hers. “I didn’t want you caught up in all of this.”
“Too late for that,” she quipped, her tone lighter now. “But seriously, I understand why you didn’t tell me. And for what it’s worth, I’m glad you all had his back.”
Ned perked up slightly, his grin widening. “Does this mean we’re forgiven?”
[Name] rolled her eyes, but her smile betrayed her. “Yeah, you’re forgiven. But don’t expect me to let you off the hook so easily next time.”
MJ nodded sagely. “Fair. That’s fair.”
Peter chuckled softly, shaking his head. “You guys are lucky she’s nicer than me.”
“Oh, please,” MJ shot back, leaning forward. “You’re the softest one here. Don’t even try to act tough.”
“I don’t know,” [Name] said, glancing at Peter with a smirk. “He did throw himself in front of a blade to save me. That’s pretty badass.”
Peter’s face flushed slightly, and he cleared his throat, trying to play it cool. “It was nothing.”
“Nothing,” Ned repeated, his eyes wide. “Dude, you literally fought Blackout and took a blade for her. That’s not ‘nothing.’ That’s, like, superhero-level romance. You’re basically living a comic book.”
“Oh my god,” Peter muttered, covering his face with his free hand.
MJ smirked, her eyes glinting with mischief. “Careful, Parker. Next thing you know, you’ll have fanfiction written about you.”
Peter groaned louder, while [Name] dissolved into laughter, her hand squeezing his reassuringly. “Don’t worry, Spider-Man,” she teased, leaning in close. “Your secret’s safe with me.”
The room burst into laughter, the light-hearted banter a welcome contrast to the heaviness that had weighed on them all just days ago. For the first time in what felt like forever, they could just exist—messy, imperfect, and entirely themselves.
------------------------------------------------------------------
The door clicked shut behind Ned and MJ as they left, their laughter still echoing faintly in the hallway. The apartment fell quiet, the kind of peaceful silence that felt almost surreal after everything they’d been through. Peter leaned back against the couch, his arm draped lazily over the backrest as he glanced at [Name]. She was sitting cross-legged on the floor, fiddling with the edge of a blanket that had been tossed haphazardly onto the coffee table.
“So,” she said, breaking the silence, her voice light but curious. “What do we do now?”
Peter tilted his head, a mischievous grin spreading across his face. “I have an idea,” he said, his tone carrying a playful edge as he leaned forward.
Before she could respond, he reached out and scooped her up, his arms wrapping around her as he stood. She let out a startled laugh, her hands instinctively grabbing onto his shoulders. “Peter!” she exclaimed, her voice half-laughing, half-scolding. “What are you doing?”
He smirked, his grip steady despite the faint wince that flickered across his face. “What does it look like I’m doing?” he teased. “I’m carrying you to bed.”
Her eyes widened, and she shook her head quickly, her hands pressing against his chest. “No, no, no,” she said firmly. “We can’t—your stitches, Peter! You’re still healing!”
“It’s fine,” he said, his grin widening as he tried to play it cool. “I’m Spider-Man. I heal fast.”
She raised an eyebrow, her expression shifting into something between amusement and exasperation. “Banner said no,” she countered, her tone sharp but laced with humour. “And I’m pretty sure he’d kill me if I let you mess up his work.”
Peter groaned dramatically, his head tilting back as he sighed. “Banner’s not here,” he muttered, his voice carrying a faint whine. “He doesn’t have to know.”
“Oh, he’ll know,” she shot back, her lips curving into a smirk. “You think you can hide anything from him? He’s like a medical ninja.”
Peter chuckled, finally setting her down gently onto the couch. “Fine,” he said, throwing his hands up in mock surrender. “You win. No funny business.”
She grinned, leaning back against the cushions as she crossed her arms. “That’s right,” she said smugly. “And don’t you forget it.”
He rolled his eyes, but the smile on his face betrayed his amusement. “You’re impossible,” he said, shaking his head.
“And you love it,” she replied, her tone teasing but warm.
Peter leaned closer, his hand brushing against hers as his grin softened into something more genuine. “Yeah,” he said quietly. “I really do.”
The moment lingered, the playful banter giving way to something softer, more intimate. The chaos of the past days felt distant now, replaced by the quiet comfort of being together.
Peter leaned in closer, his hand still resting lightly on hers, his gaze soft and unwavering. The faintest smile tugged at the corners of his lips as he tilted his head, closing the small distance between them. His lips brushed against hers, gentle and warm, carrying all the unspoken emotions that had built up over the past days—the relief, the gratitude, the love.
[Name] didn’t hesitate. She leaned into him, her hand slipping up to rest against his cheek as she kissed him back. The moment was quiet, tender, and unhurried, as if the world outside their little bubble had ceased to exist. It wasn’t about passion or urgency—it was about connection, about grounding themselves in each other after everything they’d endured.
As the kiss deepened, their breaths mingled, and the air between them grew charged with electricity. Peter's hand moved to her waist, pulling her closer, his touch sending shivers down her spine. She moaned softly into his mouth, her fingers tangling in his hair, holding him to her. The sound of their combined moans filled the air, and the temperature under the covers began to rise.
Peter's lips left hers, trailing a path of kisses down her neck, his tongue flicking out to taste her skin. She gasped, her head falling back, giving him better access. He continued his exploration, his lips and tongue moving lower, tracing a path down her collarbone, her chest, her stomach. She could feel the heat of his breath through the thin fabric of her clothes, and it sent a wave of desire crashing through her.
She reached down, her hands gripping his shoulders, her nails digging into his skin. "Peter," she whispered, her voice breathy and desperate. "You need to heal."
He looked up at her, his eyes dark with lust. "My mouth is pretty fine," he murmured, his voice low and husky.
She bit her lip, her body trembling with anticipation. She knew she should protest, but the desire that coursed through her veins was too strong to resist. She gave in, her body surrendering to his touch.
Peter's lips continued their journey down her body, his tongue and teeth teasing and tantalizing her skin. He reached her legs, his hands gently parting them, his breath hot against her most intimate place. She moaned, her hips bucking slightly, her body begging for more.
He teased her, his tongue flicking out to taste her, his fingers gently parting her folds. She cried out, her body convulsing with pleasure, her hands gripping the sheets beneath her. He continued his assault, his tongue and lips working in perfect sync, his fingers teasing and exploring.
As the waves of pleasure washed over her, she couldn't help but laugh softly, her voice filled with a mix of amusement and ecstasy. "I still don't forgive you for webbing me to that wall," she gasped, her body shaking with laughter and pleasure.
Peter looked up at her, a satisfied smile on his lips. "I know," he murmured, his voice low and teasing. "But I think you'll forgive me eventually."
--------------------------------------------------------------
And with that! A little Taste of Heaven is Done! I hope you all enjoyed the ride! I'm sorry for the cliff hanger! but all is good! thank you to everyone of my readers! those with me from the start! and those that have joined me on the way! Much love!
Tumblr media
Tag list: @never-stop-dreaming30
17 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 2 months ago
Text
Tumblr media Tumblr media
~ A Little Taste of Heaven ~ (Peter Parker x Fem!Reader) (9/10)
Tumblr media
------------------------------------------------------------------
Warnings: Angst / Sad / Violence / Suspense / Action / Grief / Cliffhanger
Summary: Peter’s unwavering determination as he fights to protect [Name] from Blackout’s relentless pursuit. Despite being injured and weak, Peter pushes himself beyond his limits to rescue her, battling through immense pain and fatigue. As chaos erupts around them, [Name] struggles to stay safe while Peter continues to fight, refusing to give up on her.
-----------------------------------------------------------------
🎵🎶 Losing You • Aquilo 🎶🎵
------------------------------------------------------------------
The first thing [Name] noticed as she began to wake was the sound of water dripping. The rhythmic plink of droplets hitting the floor reverberated faintly in her ears, steady and unrelenting. Her body shivered involuntarily—cold seeped into her skin, chilling her to the bone. As awareness returned, the ache in her shoulders became undeniable. Her arms were pulled taut behind her back, her wrists bound, and every shift of her position sent sharp jolts of discomfort through her stiff muscles.
Her heart started racing as the realization of her predicament set in. She was restrained—unable to move. Her breathing quickened, the air feeling heavier as panic clawed its way through her chest. She blinked rapidly but saw nothing—the darkness wasn’t just disorienting, it was absolute. She swallowed hard and realized she wasn’t just blind; she’d been blindfolded. The scratchy fabric against her skin only heightened her growing sense of vulnerability.
The pounding at the back of her head intensified as she tried to piece together the fragments of her memory. The last thing she remembered was being in Blackout’s hideout, the photograph with the red X marking her face, and then… his voice. And now, here she was, restrained, helpless, and trapped in his twisted game.
Suddenly, the silence was shattered. A voice broke through the darkness—low, smooth, and chillingly familiar.
“Finally awake, princess.”
[Name] stiffened, her breath catching in her throat. Blackout. His voice was unmistakable, laced with the kind of menace that sent her pulse spiking. Her mouth felt dry as she tried to respond, her words slurred slightly from the disorientation. “W-what… what do you want from me?” she stammered, the question stumbling out in fragments.
He didn’t answer her directly. Instead, a soft chuckle echoed through the room—a dark, low laugh that crawled under her skin, setting every nerve on edge. “You’re a clever little thing, aren’t you?” he said, his tone calm yet dripping with condescension. “How did you find me?”
The question hung in the air like a challenge. Her lips parted, the words struggling to form as her mind raced. “I followed… the trail,” she managed, though her voice trembled with fear.
Another laugh, sharper this time. It felt like he was toying with her, savouring the moment. “I made sure there wasn’t a trail,” he said darkly, his voice steady but biting. The confidence in his words sent a chill down her spine.
She felt movement near her—his presence looming closer. Then, the sudden sharpness of his hand gripping her hair made her cry out softly in pain. Her head tilted back involuntarily, the sting forcing her to focus entirely on him.
“Try again,” he said, his voice lower now, almost a growl. The words carried an unspoken threat, and she knew he wouldn’t accept anything less than an explanation.
Her breaths came faster as she fought to suppress the pain, forcing the words out before her fear overtook her. “The energy readings… from the core,” she said shakily, her voice breaking slightly. “They pinged twice in this area. And all of your previous attacks—they criss-crossed here.”
For a moment, there was no response. His grip on her hair slackened, and she felt him let go entirely. She bit her lip, the silence pressing heavily against her as she waited for him to speak. Instead, she heard the faint sound of him muttering to himself—low, indecipherable words she couldn’t make out.
Her heart raced faster, her panic building again as the tension grew unbearable. Then, she heard it—the sound of footsteps receding. He was leaving. But the oppressive fear he’d planted in her stayed firmly rooted in her chest.
Alone in the darkness, she swallowed hard, her breathing shaky as she tried to gather herself. But the threat of his return loomed over her, and the knowledge of his twisted game settled deep into her bones.
--------------------------------------------------------------
Time became meaningless in the darkness. [Name] didn’t know how long she’d been kept in this suffocating, unchanging void. Days blurred together, marked only by the intermittent sounds of Blackout working—metallic clanks and the low hum of machinery drifting through the room. She was kept blindfolded at all times, the absence of sight amplifying her other senses. Her body felt weak, her shoulders aching from the constant strain of her bound hands. She was hungry, exhausted, barely kept alive by the occasional scraps of food and water Blackout provided. It wasn’t enough to nourish her—just enough to ensure she lingered in this state of painful limbo.
Sometimes he came into the room, and she could feel his presence hovering near her. He didn’t always speak, but she could feel him staring, his silence heavier than words. Other times, he antagonized her, his voice laced with mockery and amusement, feeding her fear like it was part of the game he was playing.
Her body jolted when she heard the sound of the door creaking open. His footsteps echoed faintly against the cold floor as he entered, the familiarity of his movements sending a shiver down her spine. She heard him stop, felt his presence looming closer, and her heart rate spiked.
“Why are you doing this to me?” Her voice cracked, weak and trembling. She hated how small it sounded, but exhaustion had robbed her of strength.
A chuckle came in response—low and dark, a sound that seemed to reverberate through the room and settle uncomfortably in her chest. “The Spider will come for you,” Blackout said, his tone smooth, almost casual. “He cares for you.”
Her stomach twisted, fear clawing its way up her throat. “He doesn’t,” she protested weakly, her words trembling as they spilled from her lips.
The laugh that followed sent chills down her spine—sharp and biting, like the edge of a knife cutting through her defences. “Oh, but he does,” Blackout replied, his voice tinged with amusement. “I saw the way he cared for you. You don’t know, do you?”
The question made her freeze, her mind whirling. “Know what?” she asked, her voice barely above a whisper. Her heart raced, her thoughts tangled as she tried to grasp what he was implying.
Blackout leaned closer, and though she couldn’t see him, she felt the suffocating weight of his presence. “The Spider,” he said slowly, deliberately, “is someone close to you, princess. He will come.”
The room fell silent again, his words lingering like a heavy fog, suffocating her with their implications. She heard the faint sound of his footsteps receding, the creak of the door as he walked away, leaving her alone with nothing but the darkness and her spiralling thoughts.
Someone close to me? Her mind buzzed, replaying his words again and again, searching desperately for answers. Who?
Her mind felt like sludge, slow and uncooperative as she tried to grasp onto Blackout’s cryptic words. Someone close to me, he had said. The thought spun in circles, jabbing at her raw nerves. She tried to force herself to think, to put the pieces together, but her exhaustion was too overwhelming. Her thoughts drifted to the people in her life: Ned, MJ, Megan… Peter. She cycled through each name, but her foggy brain couldn’t make any sense of it. The connections were there, just out of reach, taunting her from the shadows of her mind.
Her body betrayed her, the weight of hunger, exhaustion, and fear dragging her into a restless, uneasy sleep. The darkness around her remained unyielding, her dreams a fractured blur of faces, memories, and Blackout’s haunting laugh echoing in the distance.
She didn’t know how much time had passed when she was wrenched awake, the sudden jolt making her gasp in pain. Blackout’s hand gripped her arm tightly, yanking her upright with no regard for her weakened state. Her head swam, her body protesting the sudden movement as pins and needles shot through her arms and legs from being bound for so long. She let out a strained groan, her voice hoarse. “What’s… happening? Wait—where are you taking me?”
His presence loomed over her, cold and unrelenting. She couldn’t see him, but she felt the menace in his silence, the way his grip dug into her arm like a vice. When he finally spoke, his voice was calm, almost casual, but it carried a weight that sent a chill down her spine.
“It’s showtime.”
Her breath hitched, the two words reverberating through her like a death knell. Panic surged, but she was too weak to fight back. The sound of her own pulse thundered in her ears as he dragged her forward, her blindfold still robbing her of sight. Each step felt like a march toward doom, the dread in her chest growing with every shift of her weight. She could hear faint echoes—the distant hum of machinery, the metallic clang of something being prepared. It all built into a symphony of terror.
Her mind raced, trying to make sense of his cryptic statement. Showtime? What did he mean? What was he planning? The fear of the unknown was worse than any threat he could’ve voiced. She stumbled as he tugged her along, her body nearly giving out beneath her. But he didn’t stop, his strength unyielding as he pulled her through the darkness.
The sound of a door creaking open made her heart drop, the air around her shifting as they entered a new space. The faint scent of oil and burning metal filled her nose, and the hum of energy grew louder. She was acutely aware of how exposed she felt—blindfolded, restrained, and at the mercy of someone who seemed to thrive on her fear.
Blackout stopped abruptly, his grip loosening just enough to leave her standing, trembling, on unsteady legs. The silence stretched unbearably, her own ragged breathing the only sound she could hear. She strained to pick up any clue, any hint of what was happening, but all she could do was wait.
The tension was suffocating, the air thick with dread as the unknown loomed ahead. She clenched her teeth, her mind screaming for an answer, for any glimmer of understanding. But all she could hear was his voice echoing in her mind: It’s showtime.
--------------------------------------------------------------
The lab was quiet except for the faint hum of machinery and the occasional flicker of holograms floating in the air around Peter. He sat hunched over his workstation, the glow from the display casting shadows across his tired face. His hoodie hung loosely on his frame, the sleeves shoved up to his elbows, and his messy hair stuck out in all directions—a telltale sign that he’d been pulling yet another all-nighter. Empty coffee cups littered the desk, their faint aroma mingling with the sterile smell of electronics.
In front of him hovered a holographic diagram of the quantum-stabilized energy core. Peter’s fingers moved rapidly through the interface, swiping through iterations of his destabilizer prototype. Each model looked promising, but the bright red error messages flashing across the screen told the real story. Another failed design.
“C’mon, c’mon, there’s got to be a way to make this work,” he muttered under his breath, his voice tight with frustration. His leg bounced anxiously under the desk, the thrum of his nervous energy palpable.
“Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s calm, measured voice interrupted his thoughts, cutting through the silence. “You’ve been working for over ten hours straight. Perhaps it’s time to take a break.”
“I can’t take a break!” Peter snapped, his voice sharper than he intended. He immediately winced, running a hand through his hair. “Sorry, sorry. I just… I can’t, okay? I need to figure this out.” He gestured to the diagram in front of him, his tone softening but still edged with urgency. “If I don’t figure out how to destabilize this core, we’ve got nothing. The city has nothing.”
F.R.I.D.A.Y. didn’t respond, but Peter felt the weight of her unspoken concern. He sighed heavily, leaning back in his chair and rubbing his eyes. The fluorescent lights overhead felt too bright, his head pounding from lack of sleep and too much caffeine. He glanced over at the couch on the far side of the lab where he’d been crashing for the past few days, the blankets still rumpled from his restless attempts at sleep.
His phone buzzed on the table, and he picked it up, seeing a string of messages from MJ and Ned.
MJ: “Any progress?” Ned: “Let me know if you need me to run simulations on my end. Got my laptop ready!” MJ: “You’ve got this, Parker. Don’t forget to eat something.”
He felt a pang of guilt as he read their words. They’d been helping him work through the bugs in his designs, offering their own insights and encouragement even as he holed up in the lab. And then there was [Name]. The thought of her made his chest tighten. He hadn’t spoken to her properly in days, barely sending her a few brief texts to let her know he was still alive and working. He hated that he was neglecting her, but he didn’t know how to balance it all. Not when the stakes were this high.
“Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. interjected again, this time with a softer tone. “You cannot save the city if you collapse before finding a solution.”
“I know,” Peter said quietly, his voice carrying a note of defeat. He stared at the hologram, his jaw tightening as he swiped through another failed design. “But what else can I do? Every prototype fails. It’s either too unstable, doesn’t disrupt the quantum field enough, or outright explodes in simulations. I can’t keep spinning my wheels like this, but—” He stopped, frustration boiling over as he pushed himself back from the desk. “I don’t have a choice.”
He stood up, pacing in tight circles around the lab, running both hands through his hair. His mind raced with calculations, formulas, and the looming image of Blackout with the core in his possession. The weight of responsibility felt crushing. If he couldn’t figure this out, people would die. The city would fall.
“Maybe… maybe if I recalibrate the dampening frequency,” he muttered to himself, his fingers twitching like they were already running through the adjustments. “Or—no, I’ve already tried that. Dammit.”
He returned to the workstation, staring at the mess of data in front of him. His eyes burned from the strain, his body screaming for rest, but he shook his head, refusing to give in. “One more design,” he whispered to himself, his voice barely audible. “Just one more.”
Even as he worked, the guilt gnawed at him. He could barely remember the sound of [Name]’s voice—it felt like ages since they’d last spoken. He wanted to call her, to apologize for being distant, but the thought of stepping away from the lab for even a moment felt impossible.
Instead, he buried himself deeper in his work, the endless cycle of trial and error consuming him. The city needed him. [Name] needed him. And he wouldn’t stop until he found a way to save them.
Peter stretched his arms over his head, feeling the stiffness in his muscles protest. He had been hunched over the hologram for hours now, his focus razor-sharp as he tried to find a solution to the quantum-stabilized energy core. His thoughts had been racing nonstop, the pressure mounting with each failed prototype, but even he knew he couldn’t go on like this without a brief pause. The couch was calling his name, but instead, he picked up his phone and checked for messages.
His chest tightened as he scrolled down to his last text to [Name], sent hours ago: How’s your day going?
No reply.
Peter frowned, his thumb hovering over the screen. It wasn’t like her to leave him hanging—not after everything they’d been through. He tapped on her contact and hit the call button, pacing the length of the lab as the phone rang. Once. Twice. Three times. No answer.
“Where are you?” he murmured under his breath, his nerves creeping in. He contemplated trying again but shook his head, slipping the phone back into his pocket. Maybe she was busy—or sleeping. He didn’t want to jump to conclusions, but something about the silence unsettled him. With a sigh, he turned back to the holographic diagram floating in front of him. Right now, the city needed him, and he had to trust that she’d reach out soon.
Peter’s eyes narrowed as he stared at the glowing blue core and his latest prototype. Each attempt to create a destabilizer had been met with failure—either the quantum field wasn’t disrupted enough, or the device itself proved too unstable to even simulate safely. He dragged his hand down his face, muttering under his breath, “Think, Peter. You’re missing something.”
It hit him all at once—a small adjustment, one he hadn’t considered before. Peter’s fingers darted to the interface, recalibrating the frequency of the destabilizer’s emitter. His movements were swift but deliberate, his mind firing on all cylinders as the blueprint took shape. “F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” he called out, his voice steady despite the excitement bubbling inside him. “Run a diagnostic on this new configuration. Let me know if it’s viable.”
The AI’s voice responded immediately, calm and efficient. “Running diagnostic now. One moment.”
Peter’s heart raced as he waited, watching the glowing diagram shift and pulse with every calculation. The hum of machinery filled the silence, and his eyes remained fixed on the hologram, willing it to succeed.
“The diagnostic is complete,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. said finally. “This model has an 80% chance of destabilizing the core effectively.”
Peter let out a breath he hadn’t realized he was holding, relief washing over him. “Eighty percent,” he murmured, a small smile tugging at the corners of his lips. “I’ll take it.”
Hope surged through him as he launched into the next phase—testing and refining the model. He recreated the blueprint in physical form, his hands steady but quick as he pieced the components together. Each part of the device had to be precise, the smallest misstep potentially catastrophic. The hours ticked by, and though his body screamed for rest, his mind was alive with determination.
The first trial ended with a fizzle—literally. The emitter failed to activate, sparking briefly before the device shut down entirely. Peter groaned, his frustration mounting but his resolve unshaken. He adjusted the design again, tweaking the quantum disruptor to amplify its output without compromising stability. The next trial resulted in a minor burst of energy, but the destabilization field was still too weak to do any real damage.
“Not enough,” Peter muttered, pacing again as his mind ran through every possible adjustment. “C’mon, Peter, think.”
Every fail drove him forward, the glimpses of progress fueling his hope like small sparks in the darkness. He could feel it in his gut—he was close. Closer than he’d ever been. The third trial showed promise, the field maintaining its stability for several seconds before faltering. “Okay,” he said, his voice sharper now. “We’re getting somewhere.”
As the hours stretched on, Peter pushed himself harder, each adjustment building on the last. His phone sat untouched on the desk, the unanswered call lingering in the back of his mind. But right now, his focus was unyielding, his hope rekindled as the prototype began to show real promise. He was on the brink of something, and he wouldn’t stop until he got it right.
Peter leaned back in his chair, staring at the glowing, hand-held device on the desk before him. The soft hum of the destabilizer’s energy field filled the lab, steady and strong—a sign that it was working. Finally, it was working. His eyes widened, disbelief giving way to sheer exhilaration as he snatched the device up, turning it over in his hands. Small, sleek, and efficient—everything he needed to shut down Blackout’s energy core. I did it.
He shot to his feet, adrenaline coursing through him as a wide grin broke across his face. “It works! It actually works!” His voice echoed through the otherwise empty lab, and he couldn’t contain the laugh of triumph that followed. He couldn’t wait to tell someone—anyone. But most of all, he couldn’t wait to tell [Name]. She’d been there through so much of this, and he wanted to see the look on her face when he told her they finally had a chance.
Without missing a beat, Peter grabbed his jacket, pocketed the destabilizer, and bolted out of the lab. The stairs echoed beneath him as he practically flew down them, his excitement propelling him forward. The city blurred around him as he made his way to her apartment, the cool air biting at his skin but doing nothing to temper his joy. Every step brought him closer to sharing the good news, the thrill of victory beating in his chest.
By the time he reached her building, he was breathless but undeterred. He fished the key she’d given him out of his pocket, fumbling with it in his eagerness. The lock clicked, and he pushed the door open, taking the stairs two at a time. His heart raced—not from exhaustion, but from the anticipation of seeing her.
He burst into her apartment, his voice bright and buoyant as he called out, “[Name]! You’re not gonna believe this—I figured it out!” His words hung in the air, unanswered.
Peter’s steps slowed as he stepped further inside, his smile fading slightly. The room was eerily quiet, her absence weighing heavily on the space. “Hello?” he called out again, this time softer. He walked through the apartment, checking the kitchen, the living room, anywhere she might be. Nothing. No sign of her.
Confusion turned to unease as Peter wandered toward her bedroom. He froze when he heard the door creak open behind him.
“[Name], is that you?” a voice called out. Peter turned sharply, his shoulders relaxing slightly when he saw Ned stepping inside. “Oh—Peter. It’s you,” Ned said, though his expression didn’t match the relief Peter would’ve expected.
“Yeah, it’s me,” Peter replied cautiously. “Why did you think it was [Name]?”
“I… I haven’t seen her in days,” Ned admitted, his voice lowering. “She hasn’t answered her door when I’ve checked on her. Megan said she went to follow a lead and hasn’t been back since.”
Peter’s stomach dropped, terror clawing its way into his chest. “[Name] went to follow a lead? What lead?”
“It’s… it’s whatever she was working on,” Ned said, his own worry growing. “She didn’t say much, just that it was important.”
Peter’s breath hitched as the pieces clicked into place. “She was working on Blackout,” he whispered, the words barely audible. His legs felt like lead as he turned toward her office, a knot of dread twisting tighter with every step.
The door to her office was ajar, and Peter pushed it open slowly, his eyes scanning the chaotic mess of notes, photos, and pins strewn across the board. His gaze zeroed in on the center of the map, where two red pins were circled in bold marker. A post-it note sat nearby, scrawled in her handwriting: Blackout hideout?
“No,” Peter muttered, his voice cracking as panic took hold. “No, no, no.” His heart pounded in his chest, his mind racing as he replayed all the moments he’d missed her calls, her texts, her presence. How long had she been working on this? How long had she been missing?
Beside him, Ned stared at the board, his own face pale as the realization settled in. “Peter,” he said, his voice trembling. “She went there. Alone.”
Peter turned to him, his breath coming in quick, shallow bursts. “We have to find her. Now.”
Peter’s chest felt tight, the gravity of the situation sinking in with every passing second. His heart raced as he turned to Ned, his voice shaking with raw emotion. “I’m going after her,” he said, the words more a declaration than a plan. He could feel the edges of panic creeping in, threatening to take over, but he forced himself to push it down. There’s no time for fear. She needs me.
Ned’s face was pale, his own worry evident in the way his hands fidgeted nervously. “Be careful, Peter,” he said, his tone soft but weighted. “Please. Just… be safe.”
Peter nodded quickly, already moving toward the door. “I will,” he said, though the words felt hollow even as they left his lips. How could he promise safety when he didn’t know what he was walking into? His mind was already racing ahead, envisioning every terrible scenario she could be in, each one worse than the last.
The streets outside blurred as Peter dashed toward the hidden alley where he’d stashed his Spider-Man suit. His breaths came fast and shallow, his thoughts spiraling as the panic threatened to overtake him. What if I’m too late? What if Blackout’s already— He shook his head violently, refusing to let himself finish the thought. He couldn’t afford to spiral. He had to focus. She was counting on him.
Reaching the alley, Peter yanked open the hidden compartment and pulled out the suit. The familiarity of the material in his hands grounded him, even as fear still clawed at his chest. He suited up quickly, his movements practiced but jittery, his fingers trembling slightly as he adjusted the mask. The moment the suit’s sensors came to life, his breathing slowed just enough for him to regain a shred of control. I can do this. I have to do this.
The city stretched out before him, its twinkling lights a stark contrast to the storm brewing inside him. Peter shot out a web, his body snapping into motion as he swung into the air. The wind rushed past his ears, but even the familiar rhythm of swinging through the city couldn’t calm the dread knotting in his stomach. Every swing brought him closer to the location on her map, and every second felt like an eternity.
His thoughts churned, the fear growing heavier with each moment. What if I’m already too late? What if I can’t save her? The memory of her laugh, her smile, flashed through his mind, making his chest ache. He couldn’t lose her. Not her. And now she was in danger, and he hadn’t been there to stop it.
The neon signs and shadowed streets blurred below him as he picked up speed, his body fueled by a relentless drive. The image of her office board burned in his mind, the circled pins at the center of the map seared into his vision. He clung to the hope that he wasn’t too late, that she was still alive, that he’d reach her before Blackout did something irreversible.
Peter swung higher, faster, his muscles straining as he pushed himself to the limit. The weight of responsibility pressed heavily on his shoulders, the city below oblivious to the silent battle raging inside him. Hold on, he thought desperately, as if she could hear him across the distance. I’m coming.
The closer he got to the marked location, the darker and quieter the city seemed to become. The bustling noise of the streets faded, replaced by an eerie stillness that made his nerves tingle. He couldn’t shake the feeling that time was slipping through his fingers like sand, and with it, her safety. But he couldn’t stop. Not until he found her. Not until he brought her home.
Peter landed softly on the cracked pavement a safe distance away from the desolate building, his knees bending to absorb the impact as his suit adjusted to the low light around him. He crouched behind a rusted pile of debris, staying low and quiet as he took in the sight of the structure looming ahead. The building was just as [Name] had described on her map—crumbling, forgotten, its brickwork faded and jagged as nature slowly reclaimed it.
The area was eerily silent, the absence of city noise unsettling. No cars honked in the distance, no pedestrians bustled down the streets. It was as if the world had held its breath, waiting for him to make his move.
“F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” Peter whispered, his voice barely audible as he tapped his mask. “Give me a status report on the building.”
The AI’s voice replied promptly, steady and efficient. “There are no active cameras in the vicinity, nor are there recorded sightings of comings or goings within the area. Security is minimal, but visual surveillance is unavailable. You are proceeding blind, Peter. You should exercise extreme caution.”
He exhaled sharply, his brows knitting together under the mask. Blind. The word left a heavy weight in his chest, but he nodded slightly, his resolve sharpening. “Got it. Thanks, F.R.I.D.A.Y.”
Peter pressed closer to the shadows, his movements deliberate and quiet as he tried to glean anything from the outside of the building. The broken windows, the faint rustle of wind against the tattered vines—it all felt wrong, like it was hiding something far more sinister. He flexed his fingers, his palms tingling as he prepared to shoot a web, his senses alert and on edge. Every nerve in his body screamed at him to be vigilant, to be ready for anything.
“Hang on, [Name],” he murmured under his breath, his determination carrying an edge of fear. His stomach churned at the thought of what she might be enduring, what Blackout might have already done. He couldn’t stop the flash of worst-case scenarios from entering his mind, but he shoved them down, focusing on the present. You’re not too late. You can still save her.
The building loomed larger as he moved closer, his breath steady despite the chaos in his mind. Peter was acutely aware of the risks—Blackout was unpredictable, dangerous, and more powerful than ever. But none of it mattered. Not the danger, not the odds, not the fear clawing at his chest. All that mattered was finding her. And he wouldn’t stop until he did.
----------------------------------------------------------------
Peter clung to the ceiling, his fingers pressing firmly into the cracked surface as he crawled deeper into the building. The world was muted here—just the faint creak of the dilapidated structure and the soft rustle of his suit as he moved, each sound amplified in his ears. His senses were on overdrive, every shadow and flicker of movement pulling his attention. The cold air clung to him, and with every passing second, the weight of the unknown bore down heavier on his chest.
“F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” he whispered, barely audible. “Anything?”
For a moment, there was only silence, save for the faint hum of his suit’s systems. Then her voice came through, calm but edged with a warning. “Peter, I’ve intercepted a sound on the lower floors. Amplifying now.”
He froze in place, his breath hitching as the faint noise filled his mask’s audio receptors. At first, it was garbled—indistinct murmurs bleeding into the static. But then, a voice broke through clearly, and his blood ran cold.
“Why are you doing this?” It was [Name]. Her voice wavered, fraught with exhaustion and fear. “What do you want?”
Peter’s heart slammed against his ribcage as the sound cut out abruptly, leaving only silence in its wake. “[Name],” he whispered, his voice trembling. A wave of terror surged through him, his thoughts spiralling as dread clawed at his chest. What has he done to her? What’s happening down there?
“Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. interjected, her tone measured but firm. “Proceed with caution. You are still operating blind, and Blackout is highly unpredictable.”
“I can’t—” Peter’s voice cracked as he forced himself to move, crawling faster now, his movements urgent and unsteady. “I can’t take my time, F.R.I.D.A.Y. I can’t just wait. She needs me.”
He pushed forward, his breaths shallow and quick as he navigated through the crumbling structure. Every creak of the ceiling felt deafening, each moment stretching unbearably long. His hands and feet moved in near-perfect synchronization, his body pressed tightly to the surface as he descended toward the lower levels. His senses buzzed with adrenaline, his mind racing with worst-case scenarios. Please be okay. Please hold on.
As he neared the source of the sound, his body tensed, every muscle coiled tightly with anticipation. With a swift and practiced motion, he flipped down from the ceiling, landing silently on the ground below. He stayed low, crouched in the shadows, his sharp eyes scanning the dimly lit corridor. The air was thick, heavy with a palpable sense of dread. His spider-sense prickled faintly, a warning he couldn’t ignore.
The silence was oppressive, each second dragging on as Peter crept forward. His footfalls were near-silent, his movements slow and deliberate. Every sound seemed to echo—the faint crack of peeling paint, the whisper of wind through broken windows. He felt exposed despite the darkness, the vulnerability gnawing at him as he moved closer to where he’d heard her voice.
“Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. whispered in his ear again. “I’m detecting faint energy readings ahead. Exercise extreme caution.”
Her words only heightened the tension thrumming through him. His grip on the wall tightened as he edged closer, his jaw clenched so tightly that it ached. Fear twisted in his gut, sharper than any physical pain he’d ever endured. But he couldn’t let it stop him. Not now. Not when she was so close.
Peter moved quickly but quietly, his steps cautious as he descended toward the lower floor. Each creak of the building and each faint sound made his spider-sense tingle, the tension in his chest tightening with every second. As he got closer, his pulse surged—he could hear her. Her voice was clear as day, echoing softly through the corridor.
“Why are you doing this? What do you want?”
Peter froze, his breath hitching. Relief mixed with dread; she sounded so close. But something about her voice—repeating the same phrases again—made unease creep up his spine. He quickened his pace, crawling along the ceiling toward the source. The corridor stretched ahead, dim and unforgiving, and he could feel the urgency hammering in his chest.
His fingers curled tighter against the cracked surface as he reached a door. He paused, taking a deep, shaky breath, his heart racing like it was ready to burst. Focus. Get ready. He braced himself, then swooped down, landing swiftly and silently. His body was coiled with tension, ready to spring into action.
But the room was empty.
Peter’s breath caught in his throat as his eyes darted around the space. It was barren except for a table with a cassette player sitting atop it. The faint hum of machinery filled the silence, her voice repeating from the tape. “Why are you doing this? What do you want?” It played on a loop, taunting him, each repetition twisting the knot of fear in his gut tighter.
He slumped against the wall, his legs threatening to give out beneath him. “She’s not here,” he whispered to himself, his voice cracking. The crushing realization hit like a freight train. I’m too late.
“Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. spoke softly, her voice cutting through his thoughts. “This room is empty, but there’s another tape on the desk.”
Peter’s head snapped up, his gaze darting to the table. Slowly, he moved toward it, his hands trembling slightly as he reached for the second cassette. His breathing quickened as he slotted it into the player and pressed play. The tape crackled to life, and Blackout’s voice filled the room, smooth and mocking.
“Predictable as ever, Spider. Or should I say Peter Parker.”
Peter froze. The world seemed to tilt beneath him, the air sucked from his lungs. How did he know? How could he possibly—?
The recording continued as Peter stood rooted in place, his mind racing. “You have until 7 p.m. to reach Times Square… or the girl dies.” The finality of Blackout’s words echoed in Peter’s ears, sending a cold shiver down his spine.
“Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. interjected again, her voice firm. “This is clearly a trap.”
“I know,” Peter replied, his voice strained, his fists clenching tightly at his sides. “But what else am I supposed to do? If I don’t go—” He cut himself off, unable to finish the sentence. The fear gripping him was sharper than ever, but it was outweighed by the determination surging through his chest. He wouldn’t let her die. He couldn’t.
Steeling himself, Peter straightened up, the weight of the situation pressing heavily on his shoulders as he prepared to face whatever Blackout had in store.
Peter felt his pulse race as Blackout’s tape continued to echo in his mind. The threat was clear, the stakes unimaginably high. He clenched his fists, the urgency of the situation making every second feel like an eternity.
“Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. interrupted, her tone calm yet edged with urgency. “There is limited time remaining until 7 p.m. You need to move quickly. But take extra precautions—this is undoubtedly a trap.”
“I know,” Peter replied, his voice strained but resolute. “But I don’t have a choice. If there’s even a chance I can save her…” He let the thought linger, unwilling to consider the alternative.
Without wasting another second, Peter shot out a web and launched himself into the air, swinging hard and fast away from the building. The wind rushed past him as he navigated the city, his movements sharp and precise, but the knot of fear in his chest only tightened as the minutes ticked down. His mind raced as he weighed every option, searching desperately for a way to minimize the danger.
“F.R.I.D.A.Y., send out a PSA to the police,” he said, his voice cutting through the wind. “Tell them there might be an attack in Times Square. They need to evacuate people, now.”
“Already done,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. responded instantly. “The message has been sent.”
Peter’s relief was fleeting—he knew the PSA would help, but it didn’t ease the overwhelming sense of dread that gripped him. Blackout’s voice haunted him, the cold certainty of his words replaying over and over in his mind. You have until 7 p.m. or the girl dies.
“F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” Peter said quickly, urgency sharpening his tone. “See if you can access the city’s cameras. I need eyes on Times Square and its surrounding area. If you can find her—if she’s anywhere nearby—I need to know.”
There was a brief pause before F.R.I.D.A.Y. spoke again. “Scanning now. Accessing traffic and building surveillance. Stand by.”
Peter swung higher, his speed increasing as he pushed himself harder, his focus unyielding. Every streetlight, every rooftop blurred past him, the city transforming into a chaotic canvas of shadows and light. His muscles burned, his heart thundered in his ears, but none of it mattered. All that mattered was finding [Name] before it was too late.
“Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. said finally, breaking the tension. “I’ve identified a match to her description. She’s located on one of the roofs near Times Square.”
Peter’s breath caught, his heart lurching as he processed the information. Relief surged through him, tempered by the lingering dread of what he might find. “Got it,” he said quickly. “Keep me updated. I’m heading there now.”
The urgency in his movements intensified, his swinging becoming almost reckless as he raced toward her location. The towering buildings of Times Square loomed closer, their neon lights casting harsh glows across the city. The air felt heavier now, charged with the gravity of what was about to unfold.
Peter’s mind was a storm, his thoughts tangled between hope and fear. Please hold on. Please be okay. He pushed himself harder, desperate to reach her before the clock struck seven—and before Blackout’s plan reached its devastating finale.
The skyline blurred as Peter swung forward with relentless urgency, his body taut with determination. He spotted her—blindfolded and bound—on the rooftop, her figure illuminated faintly by the neon glow spilling over from Times Square. His heart clenched as he heard her voice trembling, repeating over and over like a plea for escape.
“Who’s there?” she called out, desperation ringing in her tone. “Please, please stop this.”
Peter felt the knot of fear in his chest tighten further as he soared toward her, releasing his web in a perfectly timed slingshot that propelled him over the edge of the building. His feet landed softly against the rooftop, and he crouched low, swallowing hard as he rushed toward her. “You’re safe,” he said quickly, his voice steady but laced with urgency. “You’re safe. I’m here.”
She turned her head instinctively toward the sound of his voice, but her blindfold prevented her from seeing him. Her breaths were uneven, ragged, and her hands trembled slightly as he worked on unbinding her. Peter’s fingers moved swiftly, his fear driving him forward as he tugged at the knots, freeing her wrists and ankles. Finally, he reached for the blindfold, pulling it gently away from her eyes.
Her wide, bewildered gaze met his mask, and she gasped audibly. “Spider-Man?” she said, her voice breaking with disbelief. Panic flashed across her face, her expression crumpling as dread overtook her. “No, no, this is bad—you need to leave!”
Peter froze, his brows furrowing under the mask. Her reaction was far from the relief he’d expected, and confusion gnawed at the edges of his mind. “What? No, you’re safe—I’ve got you,” he reassured her, his tone softening as he tried to calm her.
Her voice cracked as she sobbed, her body trembling. “He wanted you to come,” she whispered, her words heavy with despair.
Peter’s chest tightened, the weight of her statement sinking in. He wanted me to come? His gut churned, but he kept his focus on her, freeing the last knot that bound her ankle. When she was finally free, he pulled her into a fierce, protective hug, his arms wrapping tightly around her as if he could shield her from the world. She stiffened slightly in surprise, but didn’t pull away, her breath shaky as she clung to him.
The moment felt fragile, hopeful even, until Peter’s spider-sense flared violently. His breath hitched, every hair on the back of his neck standing on edge. Danger. The warning screamed through his mind, sending adrenaline surging through his veins.
“Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice cut through the tension, quieter than usual. “You need to move. Something’s wrong.”
Before Peter could react, a voice rang out, smooth and laced with mockery. “Touching. So very touching.”
Peter spun around instinctively, his body lowering into a defensive stance as his eyes darted across the rooftop. But no one was there. He clenched his fists, his heart pounding. “Stop hiding like a coward!” he shouted, his voice echoing across the rooftop.
A few feet away, a faint shimmer rippled through the air, like heat waves dancing off a surface. Then, the cloaking device deactivated, revealing Blackout standing tall and composed, his armour gleaming under the faint light. Peter’s eyes widened beneath the mask, his breath catching as shock gripped him. How?
Blackout’s smirk widened as he spoke, his tone dripping with confidence. “I’ve never hidden, Spider-Man. I’ve been watching you. From the very beginning.”
Peter’s mind reeled, flashes of every encounter with Blackout racing through his thoughts. He remembered the moments when Blackout disappeared, seeming to vanish into thin air—the battles where his movements were impossible to track. He’s always been there. The realization hit like a punch to the gut, the weight of Blackout’s words settling heavily in his chest.
Blackout stepped forward, his presence commanding and predatory. “You’ve danced right into my game,” he said, his voice low and deliberate. “And now, it’s time for the show to begin.”
Peter clenched the destabilizer tightly in his hand, his muscles coiled with resolve as he stared Blackout down. His voice was steady but brimming with defiance as he said, “Not a chance.”
With precision, he raised the device, his finger hovering over the activation button. This was it—he’d spent countless hours perfecting this, fighting through every failure to ensure he’d be ready for this exact moment. His pulse raced as he prepared to shut down Blackout’s quantum energy core and finally turn the tide.
But before he could press the button, the power in the surrounding area cut out abruptly. The streetlights flickered and died, plunging the rooftop and the city below into darkness. Peter’s head snapped up, his heart skipping a beat as his spider-sense prickled faintly. Then, the explosion hit.
The neighbouring building erupted into flames, the blast sending heat and smoke surging into the air. The force of it shook the ground beneath them, and Peter instinctively moved to shield [Name] as she screamed, the deafening roar of the explosion swallowing her voice. The flames licked at the sky, a fiery inferno that cast flickering shadows across their rooftop. Peter’s body froze momentarily as he turned to her, his voice frantic but steady. “You’re okay. You’re safe. I’ve got you.”
She clung to him, her body trembling as he tried to console her, his instincts fighting against the shock of the destruction around them. But that momentary pause was all it took for Blackout to strike. Peter barely had time to react before he felt the energy pulse slam into him like a freight train. The force threw him backward, his body skidding across the rooftop as the destabilizer was ripped from his grasp. He grunted as the impact drove the air from his lungs, his vision blurring for a split second.
“Peter!” F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice was sharp, cutting through the chaos. “Watch out! Be careful—this area is highly unstable. You need to prioritize keeping [Name] safe.”
Peter groaned as he pushed himself to his knees, his breath uneven as he scrambled to find the destabilizer. His eyes darted frantically across the rooftop, searching for the small device now lost among the debris. His heart pounded as he spotted it a few feet away, partially obscured by twisted metal. I need to get it—I need to take him out, he thought desperately. But his focus was split, the weight of keeping [Name] safe pressing just as heavily on his shoulders as the need to defeat Blackout.
Standing tall on the edge of the rooftop, Blackout was calm and composed, his armour glinting faintly in the glow of the fire. He tilted his head as he watched Peter struggle, his smirk widening with a cruel satisfaction. The flames danced behind him, casting his figure in sharp relief against the chaos.
Peter staggered to his feet, his stance low and defensive, his eyes darting between [Name], the destabilizer, and the villain in front of him. His breath came quickly, adrenaline surging through his veins. “Stay close,” he muttered to her, his voice tight but resolute. “I’ll keep you safe.”
But the odds were stacked against him, and the weight of the situation pressed heavily on his shoulders. He could feel it—the balance of the fight teetering precariously, and every decision he made could tip the scales for better or worse.
Blackout shifted, his movements sudden and predatory as he surged toward Peter and [Name]. Peter reacted instantly, stepping in front of her and raising his arms defensively. “Stay behind me,” he instructed sharply, his voice firm but tinged with urgency. His eyes tracked Blackout’s every move, noting the subtle shifts in his posture, the gleam of his energy-charged gauntlets. Peter’s spider-sense buzzed relentlessly, warning him of the danger at every turn.
As Blackout closed the distance, Peter shot out a web, aiming for his opponent’s legs to slow him down. The web snapped against Blackout’s armor but fizzled out almost immediately, the energy field surrounding him rendering it useless. Peter cursed under his breath, frustration flashing across his face. Webs are out—it’s gotta be fists until I can shut down the core.
Blackout wasted no time, launching an energy-powered strike directly at Peter. Peter dodged, twisting his body to avoid the blow while countering with a sharp kick aimed at Blackout’s side. His foot connected, but the impact seemed to do little to faze the villain. Blackout spun, using the momentum to swing another pulse toward Peter, forcing him to backflip out of the way.
Peter’s movements were fast, fluid—each dodge, leap, and strike calculated with precision. But the fight was brutal, relentless, Blackout’s raw power proving overwhelming as Peter struggled to land meaningful hits. Every time Peter managed to get close to the destabilizer, Blackout knocked it away with an energy burst or a swift kick, sending the device skidding across the rooftop yet again.
The second explosion shook the air, this time from a building even closer than the first. The blast sent heat and debris surging toward them, the fiery glow bathing the rooftop in flickering orange light. [Name] screamed, her voice breaking as the flames roared to life. Peter glanced back briefly, his heart clenching at the sight of her panic. “You’re okay! You’re safe!” he shouted over the chaos, even as his focus stayed locked on Blackout.
Peter lunged forward, throwing a rapid series of punches at Blackout’s chest and head. His fists moved with lightning speed, each strike carrying his desperation to end this fight. Blackout countered with brutal force, his gauntlets crackling with energy as he blocked Peter’s blows and retaliated with his own. The impact sent shockwaves through Peter’s suit, his arms aching with every strike absorbed.
The fight reached a fever pitch, the two of them locked in a vicious exchange of punches and kicks. The rooftop was a blur of movement, the air charged with energy and tension. Peter’s jaw tightened as he ducked under a wide swing from Blackout, using the opening to land a solid punch to his gut. Blackout staggered back slightly but recovered quickly, his energy surging brighter.
Peter’s focus was razor-sharp—until [Name] made her move. He saw her out of the corner of his eye, rushing forward with a piece of plywood in her hands. Her expression was fierce, her movements reckless as she swung it hard toward Blackout’s back.
“No!” Peter shouted, his voice cracking as he tried to intercept her. But he was too late. Blackout turned sharply, his armour glinting in the firelight as he caught sight of her attack. Without hesitation, he swung his arm wide, the force of the blow sending [Name] flying backward. She hit the ground hard, her cry of pain cutting through the chaos.
Peter’s heart dropped, panic surging through him as he darted toward her. “No, no, no!” he shouted, his voice raw with fear. He crouched beside her, his hands trembling as he checked her over. She was conscious but visibly shaken, her breaths shallow and uneven. His fists clenched tightly as he turned back toward Blackout, rage burning in his chest. This ends now.
-------------------------------------------------------------
The force of Blackout’s strike had sent her sprawling onto the rooftop, her palms scraping against the rough surface as she struggled to push herself upright. Pain radiated through her body, but she gritted her teeth, forcing her trembling legs to steady beneath her. She wiped at her face, her breath shaky, the heat from the nearby flames casting an ominous glow around her.
“I’m fine,” she managed, her voice strained but determined. She looked up to see Spider-Man darting toward her, his concern palpable even beneath the mask. “Concentrate on the fight,” she added quickly, waving him off. “I won’t interfere. Just… focus.”
He nodded sharply, his movements swift as he turned back to Blackout. She stayed back, her heart pounding in her chest as the battle resumed. Another building erupted in flames, the blast shaking the air and sending a shockwave across the rooftop. The inferno spread quickly, its heat searing even from a distance. Three buildings engulfed now—the destruction surrounding them felt suffocating.
Spider-Man and Blackout clashed fiercely, their movements a blur as they exchanged blows. Blackout’s energy pulses streaked through the air, crackling like lightning and forcing Spider-Man into a relentless pattern of dodging and weaving. Peter was fast, his agility unmatched, but Blackout’s attacks were brutal, each bomb he hurled creating chaos that made it nearly impossible for Spider-Man to gain an advantage.
Some of the billboards on nearby buildings groaned ominously, their supports buckling from the heat and vibrations. Pieces of metal and debris rained down around them, adding to the chaos. [Name] flinched as a shard of glass skidded past her, her heart sinking as she watched Spider-Man narrowly avoid a falling panel. There’s no hope, she thought, fear clawing at her chest. He can’t beat him.
But then her gaze shifted, landing on the small, sleek destabilizer lying several feet away among the rubble. The device gleamed faintly, its promise of power cutting through the madness. Her stomach twisted as realization dawned. He’s tried to get to it so many times. The thought burned in her mind, clarity setting in like ice water down her spine. This is the key. This is how he wins.
She glanced toward the fight just as Blackout landed a powerful hit that sent Spider-Man skidding backward, his movements slower now, his strength visibly waning. Her gut churned as she watched the villain step forward, his energy surging brighter with every moment. Her decision was made.
Without hesitating, [Name] bolted toward the destabilizer, adrenaline surging through her veins. The world around her was chaos—flames roaring, debris falling, explosions tearing through the air—but she didn’t stop. Her mind was laser-focused on the device, its importance overriding every warning screaming in her head. I have to get it. It’s the only way.
She stumbled as one of Blackout’s bombs detonated close to her, the force throwing her forward onto her knees. Her palms scraped against the rooftop again, and she gasped, the wind knocked out of her. For a brief moment, panic overtook her, but she clenched her jaw and forced herself to move. The device was so close now, just a few yards away. She could do this.
The flames roared louder as she pushed herself upright, her legs shaky but resolute. Pieces of debris fell around her, each sound sharper and more threatening, but she pressed on, each step bringing her closer to the key that could turn the tide. Her chest burned with exertion, her pulse hammering in her ears, but she refused to stop.
Blackout’s voice rang out somewhere behind her, mocking and cruel, but she didn’t dare look back. Spider-Man was still fighting, his movements desperate as he tried to hold his ground. Hold on, she thought, her gaze fixed on the destabilizer as she reached for it. I’ve got this.
Her fingers closed around the device, its cool surface grounding her in the chaos. For a fleeting moment, a surge of triumph coursed through her veins. She had it. She had it. Relief and exhilaration washed over her, an almost giddy sense of victory breaking through the fear. “Ah-ha!” she whispered, her voice trembling with disbelief. This is it. This is how we win.
But the moment shattered as a voice cut through the air, sharp and desperate. “No! [Name], move!”
Her head snapped up, her heart lurching as she turned to see Blackout propelling toward her on his hoverboard. The world seemed to slow, her breath catching in her throat as her eyes locked onto the serrated knives springing from a hidden compartment at the front of the board. The blades gleamed menacingly, their edges jagged and cruel, and she knew—she wasn’t going to make it.
Time felt like it stretched, each second dragging as she stood frozen, the inevitability of her fate sinking in. Her grip on the destabilizer tightened, her mind racing but her body refusing to move. This is it, she thought, a strange calm settling over her. This is how it ends.
She blinked, her vision blurring slightly as the chaos around her faded into the background. But then, something shifted. A web shot past her, landing just in front of her feet, and she felt hands on her hips—a firm, deliberate push that sent her spinning out of the way. The world tilted as she stumbled, her gasp catching in her throat. She turned, her heart pounding, and what she saw made her blood run cold.
Spider-Man stood where she had been, his body rigid as the hoverboard barrelled toward him. The serrated knives tore through his back, slicing cleanly and emerging from his stomach with sickening precision. The force of the impact drove him a step forward, his body jerking violently as a strangled sound escaped his lips. The sight was horrifying, the vivid red of his blood stark against the dark fabric of his suit, pooling and spreading with every agonizing second.
“No,” she whispered, her voice breaking as tears welled in her eyes. “No, no, no…”
Her knees buckled, her body trembling as she watched his body slightly suspended in the air as the serrated knives held him in place. Blood dripped steadily from the wounds, staining the rooftop beneath him, and his head tilted forward as a strangled sound escaped his lips again. Her tears spilled over, her chest tightening with every agonizing second as she struggled to comprehend the horror unfolding before her.
Blackout’s laugh cut through the air, deep and guttural, a sound that sent chills down her spine. He stepped forward, placing a foot between Spider-Man’s shoulders with a cruel deliberation. “Spider-man!” she cried out, her voice raw and desperate, but she couldn’t move. She couldn’t do anything but watch as Blackout reached for the mask.
With a sharp, merciless tug, the mask tore away, revealing the face beneath. Peter. Her Peter. The sight hit her like a physical blow, her breath catching in a strangled gasp as her mind reeled. It all made sense now—the late nights, the evasive answers, the way he always seemed to disappear when Spider-Man showed up. The realization crashed over her like a tidal wave, suffocating and relentless.
“Peter,” she whispered, her voice trembling, before it broke into a raw, anguished scream. “No! No, no, no!” Her knees buckled, her body shaking as tears streamed down her face, blurring her vision. She couldn’t breathe, couldn’t think, couldn’t process the horror unfolding before her. Blackout’s laugh rang out, deep and guttural, a sound that seemed to mock her pain, revelling in her devastation.
Peter’s body crumpled to the ground as Blackout kicked him off the blades, the sickening sound of his impact echoing in her ears. Blood pooled beneath him, dark and stark against the rooftop, spreading like a cruel reminder of his sacrifice. The mask dangled from Blackout’s hand, a trophy of his triumph, as he turned his gaze toward her.
The world around her blurred, the flames and chaos fading into the background as she crawled toward Peter, her hands trembling uncontrollably. Her heart felt like it was being ripped apart, the weight of the moment crushing her. “Peter,” she sobbed, her voice breaking as she reached him. “No, no, please, no…”
She pressed her hands against the wound in his stomach, desperate to stop the bleeding, but the blood seeped through her fingers, warm and unrelenting. “Stay with me,” she pleaded, her voice trembling as her tears fell in torrents, blinding her. “Please, Peter, stay with me. You’re going to be okay. You have to be okay.”
Peter’s face was pale, his features twisted in pain, but his eyes—those familiar, kind eyes—flickered weakly as he looked at her. She could barely make him out through the haze of her tears, but she clung to every fleeting moment of connection, every sign that he was still there. Her sobs wracked her body, her hands pressing harder against the wound as if sheer force could keep him alive.
Blackout spun in circles on his hoverboard, his laughter echoing across the rooftop like a cruel symphony. The flames from the nearby buildings cast flickering shadows over his armour, making him look even more monstrous as he revelled in his victory. “Spider-Man is dead!” he shouted gleefully, his voice booming. “Finally! He’s finally fucking dead!”
[Name] sobbed over Peter’s crumpled form, her hands trembling as she pressed against the wound in his stomach, desperate to stop the bleeding. Blood pooled beneath him, staining the rooftop, and her tears fell in torrents, blurring her vision. She could barely see him through the haze of her grief, but she refused to let go. “Peter,” she choked out, her voice breaking. “Tell me what to do. Please, tell me how to help you.”
Her hands shook violently, smearing blood across his cheek as she moved one hand to his face. The sight of him—pale, weak, and struggling to breathe—made her chest ache with unbearable pain. She felt his shallow breath against her palm, each inhale a struggle, and her heart shattered further. “Push the button,” Peter whispered, his voice barely audible, each word a breathless plea. “It’s the only way.”
His hand trembled as he struggled to lift it, his fingers brushing against her cheek. The gesture was weak but deliberate, his thumb wiping away a tear that had escaped down her face. She froze, her breath hitching as she held his hand against her cheek, her tears falling faster. A hiccup of a cry escaped her, raw and broken. “Okay,” she whispered, her voice trembling as she nodded. “Okay.”
Blackout’s laughter grew louder, more sinister, as he watched the scene unfold. “Touching,” he sneered, his voice dripping with mockery. “But it doesn’t matter. Spider-Man is dead! He’s finally fucking dead!”
[Name]’s face scrunched up in anger, her grief twisting into fury as she turned her gaze toward the destabilizer. Her fingers tightened around the device, her knuckles white as she gripped it with all her strength. She could feel the weight of Peter’s words, the urgency in his plea, and she knew—this was their only chance.
With a sharp inhale, she pressed the button.
The destabilizer hummed to life, sending out a massive pulse that rippled across the rooftop. The energy surged outward, a wave of power that deactivated the quantum core embedded in Blackout’s armour. The glow surrounding him flickered violently before extinguishing entirely, leaving him exposed and vulnerable.
Blackout turned sharply, his hoverboard faltering as he stumbled forward. His eyes locked onto her, wide with rage and disbelief. “What did you do?” he snarled, his voice rising. “You stupid bitch! What did you do?!”
[Name] didn’t flinch, her body trembling but her resolve unyielding as she stared him down. The pulse had changed everything, and she clung to the hope that it would be enough to turn the tide.
Peter’s voice was barely a whisper, each word strained and breathless. “Run,” he begged, his eyes flickering weakly as he looked at her. “[Name]… run.”
Her heart shattered at his plea, her tears falling faster as she shook her head. “I’m not leaving you,” she said firmly, her voice trembling but resolute. She clung to him, her hands still pressing against his wound, desperate to keep him with her. “I won’t leave you.”
Before she could say more, Blackout moved. His figure loomed closer, his armour glinting ominously in the firelight as he rushed toward them. [Name] barely had time to react before she felt his hand grab a fistful of her hair, yanking her away from Peter with brutal force. She cried out, her hands clawing at his grip as she struggled against him. “Let me go!” she screamed, her voice raw with fury and fear. “Let me fucking go!”
Blackout didn’t respond, his grip unyielding as he dragged her across the rooftop. Her feet kicked out wildly, her body twisting as she tried to break free, but it was useless. Even without the quantum core powering his armor, the metal suit gave him strength far beyond hers. She was helpless against him, her screams echoing across the rooftop as he pulled her closer to the edge.
“You’re pathetic,” Blackout sneered, his voice dripping with disdain. “All this fighting, all this struggling—for what? You think you can stop me? You think you can save him?”
“I’ll stop you,” she spat, her voice trembling but fierce. “I’ll stop you if it’s the last thing I do.”
Blackout laughed, the sound sharp and mocking. “You? Stop me? You’re nothing. Just another pawn in the game. And now, you’re going to watch as I finish what I started.”
Her heart pounded as she glanced back toward Peter, his crumpled form still lying on the rooftop, blood pooling beneath him. The sight made her chest ache, her fear twisting into desperation as she struggled harder against Blackout’s grip. “You won’t win,” she said, her voice breaking. “You won’t.”
Blackout’s smirk widened as he dragged her closer to the edge, the flames from the nearby buildings casting eerie shadows across his armour. “I already have,” he said coldly. “Spider-Man is dead. And soon, you’ll wish you were too.”
--------------------------------------------------------------------
The world around Peter was fading, the edges of his vision darkening as spots danced before his eyes. Every breath was a struggle, shallow and uneven, his chest heaving as he fought to stay conscious. The pain in his stomach was unbearable, radiating through his entire body, but it was nothing compared to the ache in his heart. He could hear [Name] crying, her sobs cutting through the ringing in his ears, and he hated himself for being the cause of it. This is my fault, he thought bitterly, his guilt weighing heavier than the blood pooling beneath him.
“Run,” he whispered, his voice barely audible, each word a battle to get out. “[Name]… run.” He knew she wouldn’t listen, knew she wouldn’t leave him, but he had to try. He had to protect her, even if it meant sacrificing himself. “Please,” he begged, his voice cracking, but she shook her head, her tears falling faster. “I’m not leaving you,” she said firmly, her voice trembling but resolute
Blackout moved suddenly, his figure looming closer as he grabbed [Name] by the hair, yanking her away from Peter with brutal force. Peter’s heart dropped, panic surging through him as he watched her struggle against the villain’s grip. “No,” he whispered, his voice trembling as he tried to push himself up. “No, no, [Name]…”
Peter’s strength was waning, his limbs heavy and unresponsive as he tried to move. He could barely lift his head, his body refusing to cooperate, but he forced himself to act. He shot a web at the wound in his stomach, the sticky fibres pressing against the gaping hole as he tried to stem the bleeding. The effort left him gasping, his vision blurring further, but he wasn’t done. He couldn’t be done.
His voice was too weak, drowned out by the chaos around them. His ears rang, the sound of flames and explosions blending into a deafening roar, but his focus remained on her. He gritted his teeth, his muscles screaming in protest as he rolled onto his stomach. The movement sent a fresh wave of pain through him, but he ignored it, his determination driving him forward.
With one arm, he began to drag himself across the rooftop, his fingers clawing at the rough surface as he fought to get closer to her. Every inch felt like a mile, his body heavy and uncooperative, but he refused to stop. “Stop,” he rasped, his voice barely audible. “Don’t… [Name]…”
His vision darkened further, the spots growing larger as his strength ebbed away. His ears rang louder, drowning out everything but the sound of her voice as she fought against Blackout. He could see her kicking and screaming, her hands clawing at his armour as she tried to break free, and it tore at him. He had to reach her. He had to save her. But his body was failing him, his movements slowing as the darkness threatened to consume him.
His spider-sense prickled faintly—weak, almost non-existent—as his gaze locked onto them. Blackout loomed over her, his armoured figure a menacing silhouette against the inferno blazing around them. And then, time seemed to freeze. Peter’s heart twisted in his chest as he watched Blackout shove her violently toward the edge of the rooftop. Her scream cut through the chaos like a knife, sharp and final, as her figure tipped backward.
“No,” Peter whispered, the sound barely leaving his lips before it broke into a strangled cry. “No! [Name]!” His hand reached out desperately, fingers clawing at the ground as if he could somehow will himself to close the distance. But his body betrayed him, every muscle seizing as the weight of his injuries dragged him down.
The world tilted, the edges of his vision closing in as darkness crept over him. The guilt was suffocating, more painful than the wound in his stomach, more crushing than the blood pooling beneath him. He had failed her—failed to save her, failed to protect her. The realization hit him like a blow, each thought stabbing deeper into his chest as the darkness swallowed him whole. And then there was nothing.
------------------------------------------------------------
The force of Blackout’s shove sent [Name] tipping backward, her arms flailing as she teetered on the edge of the rooftop. Her heart raced, her breath catching in her throat as the world seemed to tilt beneath her. The flames from the nearby buildings cast an eerie glow, illuminating the chaos around her as she fell. But she wasn’t going down alone.
“I’m taking you with me, bastard!” she screamed, her voice raw and defiant as she reached out. Her fingers clawed at Blackout’s armour, gripping tightly as she dragged him over the edge with her. His hoverboard faltered, the weight of his metal suit pulling him downward at a faster rate than her. He cursed loudly, his voice venomous as he hurled insults at her, calling her every name under the sun. But she didn’t care. She didn’t even hear him. Her mind was consumed by the overwhelming reality of what was happening.
The fall felt like it stretched into eternity, each second dragging as the ground rushed up to meet them. The wind whipped past her face, her hair flying wildly as she plummeted. Tears blurred her vision, spilling freely down her cheeks as she thought of Peter—his bloodied form, his whispered pleas for her to run, his sacrifice. The guilt was suffocating, the weight of it pressing heavily on her chest as she fell. This is how it ends, she thought, her heart breaking. This is how it all ends.
She closed her eyes, the tears still streaming as she braced herself for the impact. But then, something shifted. A faint glint caught her attention, and she opened her eyes just enough to see the small marble tumbling out of the coat pocket she was wearing. The sight was jarring, almost surreal, as the tiny object spun in the air beside her. The marble, she realized, her mind flashing back to the moment she had found it in her apartment and tucked it away without a second thought.
Her gut screamed at her, the instinct so strong it was almost physical. Press the button. Her hand shot out, trembling as she reached for the marble. Her fingers closed around it, and without hesitation, she pressed the small button embedded in its surface.
The effect was instantaneous. The marble exploded, releasing a torrent of web fluid that sprang out in every direction. The sticky strands latched onto the surrounding buildings, creating a complex network of connections that stretched across the gap between them. The webbing caught her coat, her foot, and even Blackout, entangling him in a snare that he couldn’t break free from. His curses turned to shouts of rage as the web tightened around him, immobilizing him completely.
The sudden pull of the webbing sent [Name] swinging uncontrollably, the sticky strands jerking her away from the deadly fall she had braced herself for. She twisted mid-air, the momentum throwing her toward the jagged frame of a shattered window. She slammed into it with a force that knocked the breath from her lungs, her body tumbling through broken glass and debris. Pain shot through her as she landed hard on the floor inside, shards cutting into her skin and fabric as she rolled over the gritty surface.
Her breath came in shallow gasps, every inhale stuttering with effort as she lay still for a moment, struggling to regain control. Her hands scraped against the rough flooring, her fingers trembling as she fought to push herself up. The pain was sharp and unrelenting, radiating from every inch of her body, but her desperation kept her moving. She had survived—but the thought felt hollow. The weight pressing on her chest wasn’t just from the impact; it was from the knowledge of what Peter had done, and what he might have lost.
Forcing herself to sit up, she turned her head slowly and looked through the shattered window at the chaos outside. Several floors above her, Blackout dangled from the webbing, his armour gleaming faintly in the glow of flames and destruction. He thrashed against the sticky strands, his rage spilling out in a stream of curses and shouted threats. The webbing held strong, refusing to give him the freedom he craved, and the sight of him ensnared should have felt victorious. But it didn’t. It only served as a reminder of everything it had taken to get there.
Tears stung her eyes as she collapsed onto her side, her body trembling from the effort it had taken to survive. Her chest heaved as she tried to process what had just happened. The marble—the web bomb—had saved her, had shifted the balance. But the victory meant nothing if Peter didn’t survive. The image of him on the rooftop, bleeding and broken, filled her mind, and her throat tightened as her tears spilled over. “Peter…” she whispered, her voice cracking, a raw cry escaping her lips. The agony in her voice echoed faintly in the empty space around her, unrelenting and real.
Every step was agony. Her body screamed in protest as she forced herself to move, her legs trembling beneath her weight. Blood trickled from cuts on her arms and legs, the jagged shards of glass embedded in her skin sending sharp jolts of pain with every movement. Her breaths came in shallow gasps, her chest heaving as she limped toward the stairwell, her mind consumed by one singular thought: Peter.
The climb was torturous. Each step felt like a mountain, her body threatening to give out with every shaky movement. Her hand clutched the railing, her knuckles white as she used it to pull herself upward. Tears blurred her vision, spilling freely down her cheeks as she fought against the overwhelming grief clawing at her chest. The image of him—broken, bleeding, and barely alive—was burned into her mind, fueling her desperation. I have to get to him. I have to.
Her knees buckled as she reached the final flight of stairs, her body collapsing against the wall for support. She bit back a sob, her teeth sinking into her lip as she forced herself to keep going. The pain was unbearable, but it was nothing compared to the ache in her heart. Every step was a battle, every movement a testament to her determination. She couldn’t stop. Not now. Not when he needed her.
When she finally reached the rooftop, the sight before her made her heart shatter. Peter lay on his stomach, his body motionless, a trail of blood marking the path he had dragged himself in a desperate attempt to save her. The crimson streak glistened in the firelight, a haunting reminder of his sacrifice. Her breath hitched, her chest tightening as a sob tore from her throat. “Peter!” she screamed, her voice raw and trembling as she stumbled toward him.
She dropped to her knees beside him, her hands trembling as she rolled him over onto his back. His head fell limply against her knees, his face pale and bloodied, his chest frighteningly still. Her heart pounded in her ears, drowning out everything else as she stared down at him, her tears falling onto his cheeks. “No, no, no,” she whispered, her voice breaking as panic set in. “Peter, breathe. Please, breathe.”
Her hands shook so violently that she couldn’t tell if he had a pulse. She pressed her fingers to his neck, her touch unsteady, but the overwhelming fear clouded her senses. “Come on,” she begged, her voice cracking. “Don’t do this. Don’t leave me.”
She leaned forward, her forehead pressing against his as her tears continued to fall. Her body trembled with sobs, her grief spilling out in broken whispers. “Peter, please,” she said, her voice barely audible. “Please don’t leave me. Don’t do this. Come back to me. Please, come back.”
Her tears dripped onto his face, mingling with the blood on his cheeks as she cradled him closer. Her fingers brushed against his hair, her touch gentle despite the desperation coursing through her. “I love you,” she whispered, her voice trembling. “Peter, don’t go. Please, come back. Come back to me.”
Her sobs quieted, her voice reduced to a broken whisper as she uttered the final word. “Please.”
And then, silence.
------------------------------------------------------------------
DUN DUN DUN Cliffhanger.............. Please don't kill me 🤣 No Peters were harmed in the making of this part. I had the chapter planned weeks ago, and trying to build up to it was hard, we're nearly at the end folk! thank you gain for everyone who's taken the time to read my work much love ❤️❤️
tagged: @never-stop-dreaming30
Tumblr media
21 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 2 months ago
Text
Part 8 is out! I am working on part 9 as we speak I'm hoping to get it out soon and not take too much time like i have with the last 2
Tumblr media
Peter Parker Master List
Tumblr media
__________________________________________________________
~A Little Taste of Heaven~
"[Name] moves to Manhattan seeking a fresh start—a better job, a better life—but the city’s reality is far from what she imagined. After a dangerous encounter, she’s saved by Spider-Man, leading to an intense, intimate moment between them. But what feels like hope quickly turns to heartbreak as she believes he’s abandoned her. Unbeknownst to her, it’s all a miscommunication, and Peter Parker, weighed down with guilt, returns to find her gone. Their paths cross again, but this time, it’s not Spider-Man she meets—it’s Peter Parker, the man behind the mask."
Part 1 Part 2 Part 3 Part 4 Part 5 Part 6 Part 7 Part 8
29 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 2 months ago
Text
Tumblr media Tumblr media
~ A Little Taste of Heaven ~ (Peter Parker x Fem!Reader) (8/10)
Tumblr media Tumblr media
--------------------------------------------------------------
Warnings: Violence / Emotional Distress /Themes of Vulnerability Suspense / Mild Injury
Summary: Peter and [Name] find themselves drawn into an action-packed sequence as the pieces of the puzzle start to align. Secrets unravel and connections emerge, deepening the stakes of their fight. Blackout remains a shadowy figure—his motives tangled in mystery, his presence lingering even when unseen. As the tension escalates, one critical question looms: where has Blackout gone, and what is he planning next?
---------------------------------------------------------------
🎶 BLOSSOM - RØRY 🎶
----------------------------------------------------------------
The soft morning light painted the room in golden hues, illuminating the peaceful scene. Peter stretched slightly, his eyes falling on [Name] as she slept beside him. Her hair was a halo against the pillow, her face serene and untouched by the chaos of their lives. He let the moment linger before leaning in, pressing a kiss to her bare shoulder and trailing one up to her cheek. She stirred faintly, her lips parting slightly, but she didn’t wake.
Peter slipped out of bed carefully, mindful not to disturb her. As he dressed, his gaze drifted to the jacket draped over a nearby chair—the one he’d lent her weeks ago when the evening had turned unexpectedly chilly. He reached for it almost instinctively, picking it up and bringing it close. The faint scent of her still lingered, a mix of her perfume and something uniquely hers. It made him pause for a moment, a quiet smile playing on his lips.
Sliding the jacket on, he buttoned it loosely and grabbed his wallet and keys. The morning chill greeted him as he stepped out of the apartment complex and onto the street. The bakery around the corner was already bustling, the aroma of fresh bread and pastries wafting through the air.
Peter picked out a few items—croissants, danishes, and muffins—and paused at the display of sweet treats. He wasn’t sure what her favourite might be, so he added a couple of pastries to the bag just in case. The thought of her smile when she saw the spread made his chest feel lighter, and he couldn’t help but chuckle at himself. He finished the order with two steaming cups of coffee, the warmth of the cups offsetting the brisk air.
As Peter stepped out of the bakery, balancing the bag of pastries and two steaming cups of coffee, his phone buzzed in his pocket. He shifted the bag to one hand and fished out his phone, glancing at the screen. MJ’s name flashed across it. He swiped to answer, bringing the phone to his ear.
“Morning, MJ,” he greeted, his tone light.
“Morning, Parker,” MJ replied, her voice carrying that familiar mix of sarcasm and warmth. “So… how’d it go? Did you screw it up, or are we celebrating?”
Peter chuckled, shaking his head as he started walking back toward [Name]’s apartment. “It went amazing, actually. I asked her to be official.”
There was a pause on the other end, and then MJ’s voice came through, dry but genuine. “Congrats, man. Don’t fuck it up.”
Peter laughed, the sound soft and genuine. “Thanks for the vote of confidence, MJ.”
“Hey, just keeping you grounded,” she quipped. “But seriously, I’m happy for you. She’s good for you, Parker.”
Peter’s smile widened as he reached the apartment complex. “Thanks, MJ. I’ll catch you later.”
“Later,” she said, hanging up.
Peter slipped his phone back into his pocket, his heart feeling lighter as he climbed the stairs. The thought of [Name] waiting for him inside, the coffee and pastries in hand, made him quicken his pace.
-------------------------------------------------------------
The sunlight filtered through the curtains, gently nudging [Name] awake. She stirred slowly, reaching out for the warmth of Peter beside her. Her hand met cool, empty sheets, and her brow furrowed as confusion set in. “What?” she murmured, her voice hoarse from sleep. Opening her eyes quickly, she sat up, her hair a fluffy, untamed mess, and looked around the room.
“Peter?” she called out, her voice echoing slightly in the quiet apartment. When no reply came, her chest tightened, frustration bubbling up. She threw on an oversized shirt and her underwear, the fabric brushing lightly against her skin as she hurried out of the bedroom, her bare feet padding softly against the floorboards.
Her eyes darted around the apartment as she moved through it, scanning for any sign of him. “Seriously? He just leaves without a word?” she muttered under her breath, the annoyance flaring more with each passing second.
Just as the frustration threatened to turn into something more, the front door clicked open. She turned quickly, her expression halfway to a scowl, but it faltered as Peter walked in, a bakery bag in one hand and two steaming cups of coffee in the other. He grinned sheepishly as the door swung shut behind him. “Morning. Sorry—I didn’t want to wake you. You looked too peaceful,” he said warmly.
Her shoulders relaxed as the irritation ebbed away, replaced by a quiet realization. She sighed lightly, crossing her arms as she watched him set the pastries down on the counter. “You scared me for a second,” she admitted, her tone softening.
Peter walked over to her, leaning down to press a quick kiss to her cheek before turning back to the counter. “I got us coffee—and some baked goods. I didn’t know what you’d like, so I grabbed a bit of everything.”
[Name] felt her frustration melt away as she watched Peter set the pastries and coffee down on the counter. Her lips curved into a soft smile, her voice warm as she said, “That was really sweet, Peter.”
Peter turned to her, his eyes meeting hers with a quiet intensity that made her heart flutter. “You’re so beautiful,” he said softly, his voice carrying a sincerity that left her momentarily speechless.
He stepped closer, his hands found her waist, pulling her gently into him as his lips met hers in a tender, lingering kiss. The warmth of the moment wrapped around them, the world outside fading away as they stood there, lost in each other.
As they pulled away from the kiss, [Name] smirked, her eyes sparkling with mischief. “Not bad, hot shot,” she teased, her tone light and playful. The comment caught Peter off guard, and he let out a soft laugh, shaking his head.
“You’re impossible,” he said, grinning as she stepped away.
[Name] moved to the kitchen, grabbing a couple of plates for the pastries. “And yet, here you are,” she quipped over her shoulder, her voice carrying a hint of laughter.
Peter followed her to the sofa, carrying the bag of baked goods and their coffees. They settled in, the TV flickering to life as [Name] flipped through channels. The scent of fresh pastries filled the air as they began to eat, the atmosphere easy and comfortable.
“So,” she said between bites, glancing at him. “Do you have to head out soon?”
Peter shook his head, his gaze softening as he looked at her. “Nope. Nothing planned. I was hoping to spend the day with you.”
Her face lit up with a bright smile, one that seemed to radiate warmth and joy. It was the kind of smile that made Peter’s heart skip a beat, leaving him momentarily speechless. He couldn’t help but think how lucky he was to be here, in this moment, with her.
As they finished the last of their pastries, [Name] leaned back against the sofa, cradling her coffee in her hands. She glanced at Peter, her tone casual but curious. “So… what do you want to do today?”
Peter shrugged lightly, his smile easy as he looked at her. “I don’t mind. It’s Sunday—we could be lazy, hang out here. Or we could go out and do something. Whatever you feel like.”
She smiled softly, the idea of a slow, lazy Sunday sounding like exactly what she needed. “Being lazy sounds good,” she admitted. “I do have a bit of work I need to finish later—it’s just my side project, nothing major.”
Peter’s expression warmed, his voice genuine as he replied, “That’s fine by me. I’m happy to be here, just in your presence, while you do that.”
Her heart fluttered at the simplicity of his words, the sincerity behind them. She took another sip of coffee, her gaze lingering on him for a moment before she turned toward the TV remote. “Alright,” she said, flicking through streaming options. “Let’s pick a film to watch. Any preferences?”
Peter grinned, leaning in slightly. “I trust your judgment. Pick something good—no pressure.”
She laughed lightly, her hair bouncing as she settled on a title, the room filling with the familiar sound of the opening scenes. The moment felt easy and intimate, the two of them nestled together, ready to enjoy the lazy day ahead.
---------------------------------------------------------------
The credits rolled on the final movie of their marathon, the soft hum of the TV filling the cozy silence in the room. [Name] was nestled between Peter’s legs, her head resting on his chest as his fingers absentmindedly played with her hair. They both let out a content sigh, the warmth of the moment settling around them like a comforting blanket.
Just as she closed her eyes, savoring the quiet intimacy, Peter’s phone buzzed on the coffee table. He glanced down at the screen, the name “Tony Stark” flashing across it. With a small sigh, he carefully shifted away from her, planting a quick kiss on the crown of her head before getting up to answer.
“Hey, Mr. Stark,” Peter said, his tone polite but slightly weary.
[Name] could only hear his side of the conversation as she sat up, smoothing her slightly messy hair. Peter’s replies came in clipped sentences, his posture stiffening slightly. “Yes, it went well… I’m in her apartment…” His voice lowered as he ran a hand through his hair, his cheeks flushing. “Tony, please.”
Her brow furrowed, watching the embarrassment bloom across his face. His reactions made her wonder what was being said on the other end.
Peter sighed deeply, his shoulders slumping slightly as he responded, “Really? Can’t this wait? You gave me the night off…” His gaze flicked to [Name], a sheepish look in his eyes as he mouthed, Sorry.
She smiled softly, her expression curious but understanding, as she mouthed back, What’s happening?
Peter ended the call, sliding his phone into his pocket and turning back to her with an apologetic look. “I have to go,” he said reluctantly. “Mr. Stark needs me for something.”
[Name] nodded, her smile unfaltering. “It’s okay. We’ve had most of the day together.” Her tone was warm, reassuring, and it melted some of the tension in Peter’s shoulders.
Peter looked at her, his gaze soft yet hopeful. “Can I come back if it doesn’t take long?” he asked, his voice laced with a quiet longing.
[Name] smiled warmly, standing up to walk him to the door. “Of course you can,” she replied, her words light but full of reassurance.
As they reached the door, she leaned in and pressed a gentle kiss to his lips, her smile lingering. “See you later, Peter.”
He grinned at her, his expression cheeky as he stepped out into the hallway. “I’ll see you soon,” he said, his tone teasing but sincere.
She closed the door behind him, the quiet clicking of the lock marking his departure. Turning back toward the living room, [Name] settled onto the sofa again, her heart light and her thoughts swirling with the memory of his smile. A wave of giddiness overtook her, and she kicked her feet slightly in delight, the moment leaving her feeling content and glowing.
--------------------------------------------------------------------
The elevator doors slid open, and Peter stepped into Stark Tower’s command room, his mask tucked under one arm. Tony was already there, leaning against a console with a coffee in hand, the holographic displays lighting up his face. He looked up as Peter approached, his expression unreadable—at least at first.
“Well, if it isn’t Mr. Date Night,” Tony said, a smirk creeping onto his face. “How’d it go? Did you sweep her off her feet, or did you somehow trip over your own?”
Peter’s face flushed a light red, but he kept his voice steady. “It went well, thanks. Uh, really well, actually.”
Tony raised an eyebrow, setting his coffee down. “Good to hear. Guess I’ll pat myself on the back for giving you the night off. Not that you needed my permission or anything—but, you know, you're welcome.”
Peter scratched the back of his neck, unsure how to respond. “Uh, thanks, Mr. Stark.”
Tony waved his hand dismissively. “Enough about your Romeo moment. Let’s talk business. Patrol turned up zilch—no Blackout, no energy spikes, nothing. And I mean nothing. The other guys on the team saw squat too. It’s like the guy’s a ghost.”
Peter frowned, stepping closer to the screens to take a look at the readings. “That’s… weird. You’d think someone like him would leave a trail.”
“Exactly. But he didn’t,” Tony replied, folding his arms. “Doesn’t mean we stop looking, though. We’ll keep helping with the searches between missions. Something like this doesn’t just disappear for no reason.”
Peter nodded, his expression serious. “Got it. Thanks for keeping an eye out.”
Tony smirked again, his tone shifting. “No problem, kid. Now, back to the important stuff—you and your mystery girl. What’s her name, anyway? Or are we still keeping things vague?”
Peter hesitated for a second, his blush deepening. “Her name’s [Name],” he finally admitted.
Tony tilted his head, a glimmer of something warmer—almost fatherly—flashing in his eyes. “Well, look at you. [Name], huh? She sounds special. Good for you, kid. Just don’t screw it up, alright? And if you do, you better hope she forgives faster than I do.”
Peter laughed nervously, scratching at the back of his neck. “I’ll do my best.”
Tony softened, his voice carrying a rare sincerity. “Seriously, Pete. I’m glad you’ve got someone. It’s good for you. Now, go. You’ve got that ‘I’d rather be anywhere else but here’ look, and I’m not in the mood to babysit today.”
Peter grinned, his embarrassment fading into something lighter. “Thanks, Mr. Stark. I’ll see you later.”
As the elevator doors closed, Peter couldn’t help but smile. Leave it to Tony to tease him relentlessly and still somehow manage to be supportive in his own, unique way.
Peter leaned against the elevator wall as it descended, pulling out his phone with a small grin. He unlocked it, intending to text [Name] to let her know he was on his way back. But as he opened his contacts, his expression faltered. “Oh, crap,” he muttered, scrolling rapidly. “I don’t have her number saved on this new phone.”
Just as he sighed in mild frustration, the familiar voice of F.R.I.D.A.Y chimed in smoothly. “Would you like [Name]’s number, Mr. Parker? I have it on file.”
Peter perked up instantly, his grin returning. “Yes, please! You’re a lifesaver, F.R.I.D.A.Y.”
“Always happy to assist,” she replied, displaying the number on his screen.
Peter chuckled, quickly copying it and opening his messaging app. He typed out a message with his thumb, biting the inside of his cheek as he tried to make it sound casual but thoughtful:
“Hey, I’m on my way back now! It’s Peter, by the way—not some random stranger :)”
He hit send, his cheeks slightly pink as he imagined her reading it. Moments later, the elevator came to a stop, and Peter stepped out, his spirits lifted despite the earlier awkwardness.
--------------------------------------------------------------
[Name] glanced at her phone as it buzzed with a new message. Unlocking the screen, her eyes scanned the text: “Hey, I’m on my way back now! It’s Peter, by the way—not some random stranger :)” A soft smile tugged at her lips as she typed back, “Get back safely. I’ll be waiting.” Setting the phone down, she let out a light sigh of contentment before glancing around the living room.
The remnants of their cozy day together were scattered across the space—a couple of empty cups on the coffee table, a blanket half-folded on the sofa, and her sweater draped over the back of a chair. She stretched lazily before deciding to tidy up a bit. As she reached for a cup, her elbow brushed the edge of the table, sending a small item tumbling to the floor with a light clink.
“Oh, great,” she muttered, crouching down to look for whatever she had knocked over. Peering under the couch, she spotted the glint of something metallic. Stretching her arm out, her fingers closed around the small object. She pulled it out and sat back on her heels, turning the item over in her palm.
It was a small, smooth metal marble, its surface cool and reflective. She turned it over in her palm, her curiosity piqued. “What the hell…?” she murmured, turning it this way and that. Her fingers paused as she noticed something subtle—a barely visible button embedded into its sleek surface.
Curiosity prickled at her, a quiet debate playing out in her mind. Her thumb hovered over the button, but something instinctual made her hesitate. A small knot of apprehension twisted in her stomach. Don’t press it. Just don’t, a voice in the back of her mind warned. She let out a breath and lowered her hand, placing the marble on the coffee table
“What even is this thing?” she murmured to herself, her brow furrowed. She turned it in her hand again, examining every angle as if the marble might whisper its secrets. But it remained stubbornly silent, its presence inexplicably heavy for something so small.
Shaking her head, she stood and grabbed the coat she had left hanging on the side of a chair earlier. As she carried it to the coat hanger by the door, she slipped the marble into one of the pockets without thinking, her mind already wandering to other tasks. The weight of it felt oddly significant, even as it settled into the lining of the coat.
Pushing the thought of the marble aside, [Name] moved on to the next item to tidy. The mystery of the object lingered faintly in her thoughts, but with Peter returning soon, she let herself focus on the little tasks in front of her instead.
[Name] hummed softly to herself as she sorted through her laundry, folding shirts and matching socks with quiet concentration. The rhythmic task had her mind wandering, drifting from thoughts of Peter to the events of the morning. Even though they had only parted an hour and a half ago, the warmth of his presence still lingered like a comforting echo.
Her apartment phone rang suddenly, breaking her out of the trance. She blinked in surprise, tossing a pair of socks onto the pile before heading to answer it. Picking up the receiver, she smiled instinctively at the familiar voice on the other end.
“Hey, it’s me,” Peter said, his voice light but warm.
“Peter!” she replied, her excitement bubbling to the surface. “I’ll buzz you in.”
She pressed the button, her heart fluttering as she realized how thrilled she was to see him again. It was silly—how could she miss someone she’d only said goodbye to such a short time ago? But she didn’t dwell on it, letting the feeling wash over her as she hurried to the door.
Moments later, there was a knock. She swung the door open, barely having time to react before Peter stepped inside and swept her up into his arms, his grip firm yet gentle as he held her against him. “Is it stupid I missed you?” he asked, his voice soft and filled with laughter.
She laughed lightly, her arms looping around his neck as she grinned at him. “No,” she replied warmly, her gaze meeting his. “I missed you too.”
Peter chuckled, holding her a moment longer before setting her back down. “Good,” he said, his cheeks slightly pink as he gave her one of his signature cheeky smiles.
The joy of the moment lingered between them as she closed the door and led him into the apartment. Even though they had spent so much of the day together already, her excitement to see him again felt like the most natural thing in the world.
----------------------------------------------------------------
The past few weeks had felt like a dream, a soft and steady rhythm that [Name] had easily slipped into. Being with Peter was like breathing fresh air after holding it for too long—natural, easy, and entirely calming. There was no whirlwind chaos, no sudden emergencies dragging him away without a word. Aside from his occasional stints at ‘work,’ which he’d been upfront about, he had been present. Truly present. It was a quiet relief she hadn’t known she needed, and she cherished the moments they spent together.
Her own work had settled into its usual grind—running errands, fetching coffees, and juggling endless tasks. Being a glorified assistant wasn’t the most glamorous role, but it kept her busy enough. She didn’t mind it too much; it left her evenings open, and those were often the highlights of her day. Peter usually found a way to make her laugh about it later—calling her “Coffee Queen” or joking about her “secret superhero ability to locate the perfect latte.”
As her day wound down, she found herself back in front of her map, the sprawling collection of pins and strings covering the corkboard mounted to her wall. The map had started as a minor project, a visual representation of Blackout’s destruction. But it had grown into something much larger—a kaleidoscope of information pieced together from weeks of observation, research, and late-night deep dives into weather records and historical data.
Each pin marked a key location: sites where Blackout had attacked, places he had drawn power from before facing Spider-Man, and areas with unexplained power surges. Bright threads of string connected them in a tangled web of patterns and possibilities. Nearby, a cluster of papers and sticky notes covered her desk—snippets of old weather reports, energy output charts, and even odd historical mentions of freak storms and lightning events from decades ago.
She leaned over the map, her brow furrowed as she traced the connections with her fingertip. “What am I missing?” she murmured, her frustration building as her efforts to make sense of it all felt like trying to complete a puzzle with missing pieces. There were patterns—of that, she was sure—but every time she thought she’d found a link, it dissolved into coincidence.
She shifted her attention to a cluster of pins near a large substation on the city’s edge. Blackout had attacked there twice in the past, each time drawing a massive surge of power before disappearing. The substation itself had recovered quickly, but the power outages in the surrounding area had lasted for days. That same substation had also reported unusual spikes in energy readings just before the attacks.
But that wasn’t the only peculiar thing. Pulling up one of her older reports, she skimmed through the highlighted sections. Around the same time as the attacks, there had been unusual weather patterns recorded—lightning strikes and storms that had seemingly come out of nowhere. She’d cross-referenced them with meteorological data, but nothing conclusive had come from it. They were anomalies, unexplained bursts of chaos in otherwise normal weather systems.
Her finger tapped against the paper as she sat back, staring at the board with a critical eye. The threads connecting the power station to other locations had no clear timeline or rhythm. Some attacks were months apart, others only days. She toyed with the idea of patterns in Blackout’s movements—did he favour specific types of infrastructure? Specific conditions? Or was it all random?
Letting out a slow breath, she leaned back in her chair, rubbing her temple. The silence of her apartment was both a comfort and a reminder that she was tackling this alone. Still, the thought of giving up didn’t even cross her mind. Somewhere in all of this mess was an answer—she just had to find the right thread to pull.
Her eyes fell on the edge of the corkboard where the more unusual data was pinned—random weather reports from years ago, odd notes about electrical anomalies in completely different parts of the state, and vague eyewitness accounts. It was all there, sitting in front of her, just out of reach of making sense.
She sighed again, pushing her chair back slightly. “C’mon,” she muttered softly to herself, half to break the silence and half in frustration. “There has to be something. Something I’m not seeing.”
The mystery of it gnawed at her, a puzzle begging to be solved. But no matter how many hours she stared at the pins, the strings, and the notes, it remained stubbornly incomplete—just like Blackout’s sudden disappearance.
[Name] stepped out of her office, shutting the door with a quiet click. Her gaze lingered for a moment on the corkboard covered in pins, strings, and notes—a puzzle waiting for her to return to it. But for now, her thoughts were focused on Peter. He’d mentioned wanting to show her something, but as usual, he’d been light on specifics. A smile tugged at her lips as she headed to her room to get ready, her curiosity bubbling to the surface.
After sifting through her wardrobe, she settled on a pale blue, baggy jumper that hung loosely but comfortably. She paired it with cream leggings and white sneakers, taking a moment to smooth the jumper with her hands before glancing in the mirror. Something about the simplicity of the outfit made her smile—it felt like her, perfectly understated yet effortless.
A knock at the door broke her thoughts, and she hurried to answer it. Peter stood on the other side, his grin lighting up his face as he leaned casually against the doorframe. He was dressed in his usual hoodie and jacket combo, his sneakers scuffed just enough to show how often he wore them.
“Hey,” he said warmly. “You ready for this?”
She tilted her head with a playful smirk. “Ready for what, exactly? You’ve been vague all day.”
Peter chuckled as he stepped inside, rubbing the back of his neck. “Okay, okay—I’ll spill. I want to show you where I work. It’s this lab I get access to, over at Stark Tower. Not the Avengers stuff,” he added quickly, noticing the surprised look on her face. “It’s more like… the tech side of things. The stuff I get to tinker with when I’ve got time.”
Her curiosity was immediately piqued, her expression softening into excitement. “Seriously? I can't wait to see what you do Peter.”
He shrugged modestly, his grin widening. “I mean, it’s no big deal. I help out with some stuff here and there, nothing too flashy. But I figured it’d be cool to show you. You know, the side of me that’s just a nerd in a lab.”
She stepped closer, her tone soft but genuine. “I’d love to see that. Honestly, the nerdy Peter Parker side is one of my favorites.”
Peter’s cheeks flushed slightly, and he glanced down briefly before gesturing toward the door. “Come on, then. You’re gonna like this.”
The trip to Stark Tower was a blur of buzzing anticipation. As they rode the subway into the heart of the city, [Name] couldn’t help the wide grin that spread across her face. Peter, seated across from her, noticed the way her knee bounced slightly and how her eyes lit up whenever she glanced out the window, inching closer to the tower’s location.
“This is going to be so cool,” she said for what felt like the third time, her excitement spilling over. “I mean, Stark Tower. Peter, this is where world-changing stuff happens!”
Peter chuckled, leaning back against the seat with his hands stuffed into his jacket pockets. “Yeah, it’s got a decent view,” he teased, earning a light nudge from her foot under the table. “But seriously, it’s not as flashy as you might think. Mostly a lot of labs and techy stuff.”
“That’s exactly why it’s so interesting,” she replied, her voice filled with awe. “I can’t believe you get to work there.”
They arrived just as the late afternoon sun bathed the sleek glass and metal structure of Stark Tower in a golden glow. [Name] craned her neck as she stood on the sidewalk, the tower stretching impossibly high above them. She let out a small, amazed laugh. “Wow.”
Peter grinned beside her, nudging her gently. “Wait till you see the inside.”
As they entered the building, the cool, polished lobby greeted them, every surface gleaming as sunlight refracted through the glass walls. A polite receptionist smiled as Peter led [Name] to the desk. “Visitor pass for her,” he said, motioning toward [Name].
The receptionist handed over a sleek, holographic badge that lit up with [Name]’s name as she pinned it to her jumper. “This is so high-tech,” she whispered, glancing at Peter with wide eyes.
“You haven’t seen anything yet,” he replied with a wink, leading her toward the elevators.
As they rode up, she couldn’t resist asking, “Do you think we’ll run into any of the Avengers? Like—what if Thor’s just hanging out in the break room or something?”
Peter laughed, shaking his head. “Sorry to burst your bubble, but last I heard, they’re all off on missions. The place is pretty empty today.”
“Oh,” she said, clearly trying to hide her slight disappointment. But it passed quickly, replaced by the thrill of knowing she was about to see where Peter spent his time.
The elevator doors slid open with a soft chime, revealing a corridor that led to the tech labs. Peter motioned for her to follow, his steps quick but unhurried. The hallways were lined with frosted glass doors, each one marked with a small plaque and a glowing interface for access.
“This is where I usually work,” Peter said as they approached one of the labs. He swiped his access card, and the door slid open smoothly, revealing a spacious room filled with sleek workstations, tools, and holographic displays.
[Name] stepped inside, her eyes wide as she took in the sight. “This is incredible,” she breathed, spinning slowly to take it all in. “You get to be in here? Like, every day?”
“Pretty much,” Peter said, grinning as he moved to one of the counters cluttered with small components and a half-assembled device. “This is kind of my spot. Tony lets me tinker here when I’ve got time between, uh… work.”
She walked over, her gaze falling on the device in front of him. “What’s this?”
“It’s a micro-drone,” he explained, picking it up and holding it out for her to see. The tiny machine gleamed in the bright lab light, its delicate components visible through a translucent casing. “It’s for surveillance, but I’ve been modifying it to be more energy efficient. Right now, it’s mostly a prototype.”
She studied it intently, impressed by the intricacy of the design. “You made this?”
“Well, I put it together,” he said modestly. “The base design was already there, but I’ve been tweaking it to improve functionality. You’d be surprised how much you can improve something by just looking at it from a different angle.”
She smiled, setting the drone down gently. “That’s… amazing, Peter. You’re amazing.”
He glanced away, clearly flustered but pleased by the compliment. “It’s no big deal. This stuff is fun for me.”
As they moved through the lab, Peter pointed out various stations—one dedicated to nanotech research, another where he’d spent hours helping to optimize Stark’s energy systems, and even a wall-mounted display featuring holographic projections of designs in progress.
“This one’s a work in progress,” he said, gesturing to a glowing panel. “It’s for emergency communication in disaster zones. I’ve been trying to find a way to boost the signal strength without using too much power.”
[Name] looked at him, her admiration evident. “I don’t think I’ve ever met someone who can do so many incredible things and still be so… down-to-earth.”
He shrugged with a small smile. “Well, I’ve got a good reason to stay grounded.”
The time flew by as Peter explained the various projects he’d worked on and the challenges he faced along the way. For [Name], it wasn’t just about the tech—it was about seeing him in his element, his passion and intelligence shining through with every word. By the time they left the lab, she felt like she had seen a whole new side of him, and it only made her admiration grow.
Peter guided [Name] out of the lab and toward the observation deck on the top floor. As they stepped out onto the platform, she gasped softly, her hands instinctively gripping the railing. The city stretched out before them, bathed in the warm light of the setting sun. Skyscrapers glinted in the golden haze, and the soft hum of traffic below sounded like a distant song.
“Wow,” she murmured, her voice full of wonder. “This view is… incredible.”
Peter didn’t reply immediately, his gaze drifting away from the horizon to settle on her. The way her eyes sparkled, her cheeks flushed with happiness, and her body leaned slightly forward with pure curiosity—it was a sight that stopped him in his tracks. “Yeah,” he said softly, his lips quirking into a small smile. “Wow.”
She glanced over at him, catching the warmth in his expression. “What?” she asked, a playful edge to her tone.
“Nothing,” he replied quickly, rubbing the back of his neck. “Just… you’re amazing.”
A soft laugh escaped her lips, and she shook her head, her gaze returning to the city. “You’re ridiculous,” she said lightly, but her smile lingered.
After soaking in the view for a few moments, Peter led her to the elevator again, this time descending a few floors to another part of the tower. As they stepped into one of the larger labs, the atmosphere shifted—it was busier here, a mix of tech stations and workbenches spread out across the room, with several people quietly working on projects or exchanging ideas.
“This is the energy development lab,” Peter explained as they walked further in. “We’ve been working on a new energy source—something sustainable, efficient, and… well, revolutionary.”
Her curiosity piqued instantly, and she leaned closer to the workstation he gestured to. Sitting in the center was an intricate structure encased in transparent material, glowing faintly with a soft bluish hue. The core pulsed rhythmically, a faint shimmer of light swirling within, as though it were alive. Surrounding it were several smaller components and diagnostic equipment, the display screens showing energy readings and schematics.
“This is it?” she asked, her voice tinged with awe. “What does it do?”
Peter nodded, his expression lighting up as he explained. “It’s called a quantum-stabilized energy core. Basically, it harnesses energy from particle oscillation within the quantum field and stabilizes it for practical use. No emissions, no waste—just clean, sustainable energy that can power cities.” He gestured toward the shimmering core. “It’s still in the testing phase, but we’ve already seen promising results.”
“Peter… this is incredible,” she said, her eyes fixed on the glowing structure. “You’re telling me this thing could literally change the world?”
“If we get everything right, yeah,” he replied, his voice carrying a quiet excitement. “This could be the future of energy.”
Before she could respond, someone brushed past her, reaching for a nearby diagnostic tool on the counter. She glanced at him—an unassuming man with neatly combed hair and a simple button-up shirt. At first glance, he looked perfectly ordinary, blending into the room like any other technician. But something about him made her stomach tighten.
Her gaze lingered for a moment longer than it should have, and as the man moved away, a sense of dread settled over her like a shadow. She couldn’t explain it—the feeling was sudden and unprovoked, and it made her chest feel heavy. Forcing herself to focus, she shook off the unease and turned back to Peter, who was already showing her another component of the project.
They moved away from the workstation, joining the flow of people heading toward the hallway. Peter kept talking, his voice steady as he pointed out different aspects of the lab’s work. She listened intently, her excitement battling with the lingering weight of the strange encounter.
Peter and [Name] strolled down the hallway, the hum of activity from the lab fading behind them. The sleek, modern design of the tower surrounded them, but [Name] barely noticed it—her thoughts were still on everything Peter had shown her. She glanced at him, her smile soft and genuine.
“I’ve really enjoyed seeing this side of your life,” she said, her voice warm. “It makes sense now, why you had to run off all those times. I get it.”
Peter’s steps faltered slightly, and he glanced at her with a flicker of guilt in his eyes. He forced a small smile, shoving his hands into his jacket pockets. “Yeah… I’m glad you understand,” he said, his tone light but tinged with something unspoken.
She didn’t notice the subtle shift in his expression, too caught up in her own thoughts. “I mean, I wish you didn’t have to disappear so much, but seeing all of this? It’s worth it. You’re doing something amazing, Peter.”
He nodded, his smile tightening as he tried to push down the guilt that gnawed at him. She didn’t know the full truth—about why he’d really had to leave so many times—and he wasn’t ready to tell her. Not yet. So he went along with it, letting her words wash over him even as they weighed on his conscience.
Just as she opened her mouth to say something else, a deafening explosion ripped through the air. The force of it slammed into them, throwing Peter one way and [Name] another. Her body collided with the ground, the impact knocking the breath from her lungs. Her ears rang, and her vision blurred as she tried to make sense of what had just happened.
The aftermath of the explosion was pure chaos. The hallway was unrecognizable—shards of glass littered the floor, sparks erupted from severed cables, and flames licked at the edges of the shattered doorway. Smoke billowed thickly, curling around the broken remains of what had been an orderly lab. The shrill, blaring alarms echoed through the space, but [Name] could barely register them, her hearing muffled as though she were underwater. A pulsing red light flashed rhythmically in the corner, casting an eerie glow over the destruction.
Groaning softly, [Name] pushed herself up off the ground, her body protesting with sharp, searing pain radiating from her ribs and arms. Her head pounded, and her breaths came shallow and labored as the thick smoke clawed at her throat and lungs. Gritting her teeth, she forced herself upright, the edges of her vision swimming as she squinted into the hazy air.
“Peter?” she rasped, her voice barely audible. It came out more like a whisper, her breath stolen by the oppressive heat and smoke. Coughing, she tried again. “Peter!”
She couldn’t see him. The hallway was a swirling void of gray and red, the flicker of flames her only anchor. Fear coiled in her chest, but before she could call out again, her gaze caught movement in the distance.
Something shimmered, faint and almost imperceptible, cutting through the haze like a mirage. She squinted, struggling to focus as the shape grew more defined, more solid. Her breath hitched in her throat as the figure emerged, the smoke parting just enough to reveal him.
Blackout.
The armor that had once been an enigma to her research now stood in full, terrifying clarity. His obsidian suit reflected the dim red flashes of the alarm, its surface sleek and ominously smooth. As the cloaking field faded entirely, she saw the energy core in his hand, the soft bluish glow pulsing with a slow, deliberate rhythm. Her heart dropped.
No. No, no, no. The realization hit her like a blow to the chest. This was what she’d feared. The unlimited power source she’d deduced he was searching for—the one she’d pieced together through countless hours of research—was now in his possession. He had it. And she knew exactly what that meant.
Terror clawed at her, cold and relentless, as she watched him stride forward. He didn’t so much as glance her way, his focus entirely on the path ahead. To him, she was nothing—an obstacle not even worth acknowledging.
But something inside her snapped. Reckless and desperate, she lunged forward, her hand shooting out to grab at the energy core in his grasp. The glowing blue light flared brightly as her fingers brushed the edge of the device, her determination overriding every instinct screaming at her to stop.
Blackout froze mid-step, his head tilting slightly as though amused. A soft, disdainful tsk escaped from beneath the helmet. Without warning, his free hand shot out, balled into a fist as he swung for her with deliberate force.
Time seemed to slow. [Name] barely had a moment to react, her body stiffening as she braced herself for the impact. Her heart thundered in her chest, terror flooding every vein as the armoured fist barrelled toward her.
--------------------------------------------------------------
Peter followed [Name] down the hallway, her words still echoing in his mind. “I’ve really enjoyed seeing this side of your life. It makes sense now, why you had to run off all those times. I get it.” He nodded along with her, forcing himself to smile, but guilt tugged at his chest with every step. She didn’t truly know the full truth about why he ran off so often—it was more than just tech work, and the weight of keeping that from her was starting to press harder on his conscience.
Still, she looked so happy, radiating curiosity and excitement at seeing this piece of his world. He couldn’t bring himself to shatter that joy, even as his chest tightened with guilt.
Then it happened.
His spider-sense flared suddenly, but just a second too late. The deafening roar of the explosion tore through the hallway, the force slamming into him with the power of a freight train. The world seemed to slow as he watched [Name] being hurled one way, her body colliding with the floor in a terrifying blur of motion, while he was flung in the opposite direction.
Peter’s reflexes kicked in just in time, and he twisted mid-air, landing in a crouch with the ease that years of training as Spider-Man had given him. The impact sent shockwaves through his legs, but he steadied himself quickly, his senses sharpening as chaos erupted around him.
Smoke poured into the hallway, thick and suffocating, curling around the broken remains of the Stark Tower floor like a malevolent force. Alarms blared in every direction, the shrill sound piercing through his muffled hearing, while the eerie pulsing of red lights cast the destruction in an ominous glow. Shards of glass glinted like jagged stars across the ground, and sparks danced from severed cables, their light briefly illuminating the heavy gray haze.
His spider-sense pulsed like a second heartbeat, wild and frantic, warning him of imminent danger. This wasn’t an accident—this was intentional. And whatever had caused it was still here.
Peter pushed himself to his feet, adrenaline surging through his veins. Beneath his hoodie and jacket, he felt the familiar weight of his Spider-Man suit—a precaution he’d taken, knowing he would patrol after his day with [Name]. He quickly donned the mask, his identity hidden once more as he readied himself for what was coming.
Through the ringing in his ears, he thought he heard something. A voice—her voice.
“Peter?” It was faint, strained, and distant, but it sent a surge of desperation through him.
He wanted to shout back, to call out to her, but he stopped himself. He couldn’t say her name—not while he was in the suit. Instead, he focused on the task ahead, his resolve hardening as he began to pick his way through the debris. Every step was deliberate, his movements quick but calculated as he made his way through the chaos, his heart pounding with worry and fear.
Then he saw it.
Blackout.
The villain’s armor gleamed faintly through the smoke, his imposing figure like something out of a nightmare. Peter felt his stomach twist as Blackout moved with purpose, stepping over debris as though it were nothing. At first, Peter couldn’t see what he was holding—but then the glow caught his attention. The energy core. Its pulsing blue light radiated faintly in the gloom, giving the villain an even more menacing presence.
Peter’s breath hitched as his gaze followed Blackout’s movements. The villain’s focus wasn’t on him—it was on her. On [Name].
Dread washed over Peter, his chest tightening as he froze for a split second. He was too far to reach her in time, and panic clawed at his throat. He saw Blackout raise a fist, his body language deliberate and cruel as he swung it toward her with chilling intent.
Terror surged through Peter, snapping him out of his paralysis. He bolted forward, his only thought to get to her before it was too late.
Peter’s spider-sense was blaring like a siren, pushing him forward with urgency. He moved fast—faster than his own thoughts, faster than hesitation. Blackout’s fist was only inches from [Name], but Peter reached her just in time, his gloved hand snapping out to catch the armored fist in his palm.
The impact reverberated through him, the sheer force of it staggering, but he held firm. Blackout tilted his head slightly, as though amused, before speaking in a deep, mocking tone. “Hello, little spider,” he said, his voice carrying a dangerous edge. “Missed me?”
Before Peter could reply, Blackout swung his other fist toward him, the movement sharp and deliberate. Peter reacted instantly, his free hand shooting up to block the second strike. He gritted his teeth, muscles burning with the effort as the villain pushed against him, their proximity far too close for comfort—especially with [Name] behind him, vulnerable and hurt.
He couldn’t risk her getting caught in the crossfire. With a burst of momentum, Peter jumped, twisting his body mid-air to deliver a powerful kick straight into Blackout’s chest. The impact sent the villain flying backward, his armor letting out a metallic grunt as he collided with the ground. But Blackout recovered swiftly, rolling over to skid low on his feet, his posture predatory and ready.
Peter landed smoothly, his body crouched in the iconic spider pose, his back shielding [Name]. His voice was steady but urgent as he spoke, “Are you okay?”
Behind him, [Name] coughed weakly, her voice trembling but audible. “Yes… but I don’t know where Peter is, he could be hurt.”
Peter’s heart clenched at her words, but he shook it off, his tone firm as he replied, “Don’t worry about him right now. You need to get to safety. I’ll save Peter—but I need you out of here.”
Before she could say more, the villain stood, his armor letting out a low whoosh as air hissed from the sides, the sound menacing in the stillness. The glow of the energy core in Blackout’s hand intensified, casting strange shadows on the walls. He straightened slowly, his movements calculated, his posture commanding.
Peter’s muscles tensed, his senses alive and ready as he crouched lower, preparing for the battle that was coming.
---------------------------------------------------------------
The armored fist was descending toward her, faster than she could react, the sheer weight and force behind it promising devastation. [Name] froze, her breath hitching as she braced for the impact, terror locking her in place.
But before the fist could connect, Spider-Man was there. In a blur of motion, he shot forward through the smoke, his gloved hand snapping up to catch the armoured punch mid-swing. The impact reverberated through the air, a sharp collision of strength against strength, but Spider-Man held firm, his stance unwavering
Blackout tilted his head slightly, as though studying him. “Hello, little spider,” the villain said in a cold, mocking tone, his voice muffled by the helmet yet laced with menace. “Missed me?”
Spider-Man didn’t reply, his focus sharp as his muscles tensed against the pressure of Blackout’s strike. The villain didn’t wait—his free hand shot forward, aiming to land a second blow. Spider-Man’s reflexes kicked in, his other hand snapping up to block the incoming fist. The tension hung heavy in the air, the two locked in a deadly standstill.
With a burst of momentum, Spider-Man shifted his weight and jumped, twisting his body mid-air to deliver a powerful double-kick aimed squarely at Blackout’s chest. The impact sent the villain flying backward, his armour emitting a low metallic grunt as he skidded across the debris-covered floor. Blackout rolled over quickly, his movements fluid and predatory, landing in a crouch low to the ground.
Spider-Man crouched in front of her, his back to her, shielding her from the chaos around them. His iconic pose was unmistakable—legs bent low, one arm extended, every muscle in his body poised for action. He looked like a force of nature, ready to take on anything that came their way. But it wasn’t just his presence that held her attention—it was the realization that he had saved her. Again.
Her mind raced, her thoughts tumbling over one another in a chaotic whirl. Is Peter okay? She hadn’t seen him since the explosion—hadn’t had time to find him in the wreckage. Her heart clenched with fear as her brain fought to reconcile her worry for him with the sheer shock of Spider-Man appearing before her. He’s here… but how? And where’s Peter?
The realization that she didn’t have answers weighed on her, adding to the dread already gnawing at her insides. If a fight broke out—if Spider-Man and Blackout clashed—she wouldn’t stand a chance. She had no superpowers, no way to defend herself. And she was already hurt, every movement sending sharp reminders through her body. She felt exposed, vulnerable, and painfully human in the face of what was unfolding.
Her eyes darted from Spider-Man to Blackout, who stood just a few meters away, his towering figure radiating menace as his armor hissed softly, the energy core glowing ominously in his grasp. The red emergency lights illuminated his silhouette, making him appear all the more monstrous. The tension in the air was palpable, and [Name] could feel her chest tightening as anticipation coiled tightly around her.
What’s going to happen next? She wanted to shout, to demand answers, but her voice caught in her throat, the smoke stealing her breath. All she could do was watch—watch Spider-Man, watch Blackout, and brace herself for the moment when everything exploded into chaos again.
Spider-Man barely had a second to react before Blackout lunged forward, his movements sleek and unnervingly fast despite the bulk of his armour. Peter shot a web toward his opponent’s wrist, hoping to slow him down, but the strands barely clung before sizzling and disintegrating against the energy field surrounding Blackout’s suit.
That’s not good.
Instinct kicked in. Peter ducked just as Blackout swung, the force of the attack whipping the air beside his head. He twisted mid-dodge, sending another web toward Blackout’s torso—again, the strands fizzled into nothing before they could gain a proper hold.
Peter gritted his teeth. Alright. No webs. This is gonna have to be all hands.
Blackout chuckled darkly, rolling his shoulders. “Looks like your little tricks won’t work on me, bug.” His stance was casual, relaxed—he wasn’t treating this as a real fight. He was toying with him.
Peter didn't take the bait. Instead, he sprang forward, his fists moving in rapid succession. Left hook—blocked. Right jab—deflected. His movements were precise, quick, but every strike that connected felt like hitting solid metal. Blackout barely flinched, his armor absorbing the impact with little recoil.
The villain suddenly pivoted, stepping to the side—not toward Peter but toward [Name].
Peter’s chest tightened. Oh, no you don’t.
He instantly spun, positioning himself between Blackout and her. The villain smirked, clearly enjoying the game. “You’re really going to make this hard for me, huh?” he mused.
Peter didn’t respond. He dove low, legs sweeping toward Blackout’s ankles, aiming to knock him off balance. But the villain leapt back effortlessly, landing smoothly as if Peter had barely posed a challenge.
Behind him, [Name] watched with wide eyes, feeling the sharp pang of realization hit her. He’s trying to get to me. Not because she was a threat, but simply because he could. He wanted to rattle Spider-Man—make him feel like he was constantly one second away from failing to protect her.
It was working.
[Name] clenched her jaw, ignoring the aching protest of her bruised ribs as she forced herself to move. She couldn’t just sit there—she was making this harder for Spider-Man. If she stayed, he’d have to split his focus between fighting Blackout and making sure she wasn’t in harm’s way.
Slowly, painfully, she pushed herself up. Her muscles screamed, her breathing ragged, but she forced herself to step back—just enough to give Spider-Man the space he needed.
Peter caught the movement in the corner of his vision and had the urge to tell her to stay down. But he couldn’t risk breaking focus—not when Blackout was right in front of him, still holding that pulsing energy core like a prize in his grip.
Blackout exhaled, amused. “You know, you’re fun to mess with, Spider-Man. All that jumping around, trying to stop me like I don’t already have what I came for.” He lifted the core slightly, letting the glowing light catch Spider-Man’s attention. “You lost the moment I picked this up.”
Peter clenched his fists. “Not everything,” he shot back before lunging forward again, ready for what came next.
[Name] winced as she pushed herself to her feet, every movement sending jolts of pain through her ribs and limbs. She tried to steady herself, backing away from the furious clash between Spider-Man and Blackout. Her legs trembled, her breath hitched, but she knew she couldn’t stay there—if she did, she’d only make it harder for Spider-Man to fight.
“Stay put!” Spider-Man called out, his voice strained as he dodged a vicious swing from Blackout, the villain’s armoured fist narrowly missing his head.
“I can’t!” she replied, her tone equal parts desperate and determined. “You can’t focus on the fight if I’m here!”
Spider-Man’s breath came quicker now as he twisted and flipped to avoid another attack, his body moving like liquid as he narrowly avoided each blow. “You need to stay safe!” he insisted, his words punctuated by a grunt as Blackout’s foot swiped toward him, barely missing his side. Another web shot out toward Blackout, but it fizzled uselessly against the energy field once again. Peter’s frustration was evident, but he kept his focus sharp.
[Name] took a staggering step backward, clutching her side as she tried to distance herself from the chaos. Smoke and sparks filled the ruined hallway, and she could barely see through the haze, but she managed to gasp out, “Will you—will you save Peter?”
Spider-Man turned briefly, his voice rising in a sharp, heartfelt shout. “I promise!”
Before she could reply, Blackout’s mocking laughter cut through the noise, sharp and chilling. “Touching,” the villain said, his voice dripping with contempt. “But it’s time to finish this little game of cat and bug.”
Spider-Man’s eyes darted toward the energy core in Blackout’s hand, the blue light pulsing steadily like a ticking clock. He could see Blackout shifting, his stance coiling like a spring about to snap, and Peter knew he had to act fast. Without hesitation, he darted forward, closing the distance between them.
Blackout let out a low chuckle as Spider-Man moved closer. “You’re predictable,” he sneered.
Then it happened. Blackout raised the energy core, the glow intensifying as he powered up. His armoured fist crackled with raw energy, arcs of electricity dancing across its surface. Before Peter could react, Blackout’s fist shot forward, striking him in the chest with a blinding blast of force.
The impact was devastating. The energy sent Spider-Man flying down the hallway, his body twisting mid-air before slamming into the ground with a sickening thud. The force carried him several feet, his momentum only stopping when his leg collided hard with an exposed pipe. A sharp tearing sound echoed as his suit ripped at the thigh, revealing a deep gash beneath.
Peter hissed through clenched teeth, the pain shooting through his leg like fire. He clutched at the wound instinctively, trying to breathe through the agony. “Great,” he muttered under his breath, his voice strained. “Just great.”
“Spider-Man!” [Name] screamed, her voice cracking as she turned toward him. Fear and panic surged through her, her eyes darting between the injured hero and the figure now stalking toward her.
Blackout stood tall, his steps deliberate and slow, savouring every second as he approached her. “Well, well,” he said, his tone dripping with mockery. “Looks like your knight in spandex isn’t doing so well. What’s the plan now, little one?”
Pure terror clawed at [Name], freezing her in place as Blackout’s shadow loomed over her. Her chest tightened, her breaths shallow and ragged. She glanced toward Spider-Man, willing him to get up, to move, to stop the nightmare bearing down on her.
Peter, still lying on the ground, heard Blackout’s taunt and felt his heart seize with urgency. He forced himself to push through the pain, his mind racing. I have to stop him. I have to protect her.
He gritted his teeth as he pushed himself up, his leg screaming in protest. The gash from the pipe burned with every movement, the torn fabric of his suit sticking uncomfortably to the wound. The impact of Blackout’s punch still reverberated through him, a sharp reminder of the first fight they’d had—the one where Blackout had slammed him so hard he’d seen stars. But this wasn’t the time to dwell on past failures. He had to move.
Through the haze of smoke and flickering red lights, Spider-Man heard her voice, trembling but defiant. “Stay away from me!” [Name] shouted, her fear evident but her resolve unbroken.
Blackout’s laughter cut through the chaos, low and menacing. “But you wanted the energy core, didn’t you, sweetheart?” he taunted, his voice dripping with mockery. The sound of his laughter under the mask sent chills down her spine, and she felt her stomach twist. He’s a full-on psycho, she thought, her heart pounding as she tried to make sense of the nightmare unfolding around her.
She squinted into the smoke, searching desperately for Spider-Man—or Peter. The darkness was suffocating, the haze too thick to see anything clearly. Where the fuck is Peter? she thought, panic clawing at her chest. She hoped, prayed, that he was okay.
Peter's eyes widened in horror as he took in the scene, his mind racing. Blackout was closing in on her, his steps slow and deliberate, savouring every moment of her terror. The energy core in his hand pulsed ominously, casting eerie shadows across the wreckage. Peter’s decision was made in an instant. Screw the energy core. She’s more important.
With a sharp flick of his wrist, Peter shot a web toward [Name], the strands cutting through the smoke and attaching firmly to her. He pulled with all his might, his muscles straining as she went flying toward him. She let out a startled gasp, her body propelled through the air, but before she could hit the ground, he caught her securely in his arms.
The impact sent a jolt of pain through his injured leg, and he grunted, his breath hitching as he adjusted his grip to keep her safe. “I’ve got you,” he murmured, his voice strained but steady.
Without hesitation, Peter fired another web, aiming at the sturdy remnants of the shattered floor above them. The strands latched onto a beam, and in one fluid motion, he swung away, carrying her out of the immediate danger. The rush of air around them was a stark contrast to the chaos they left behind, and for Peter, there was only one thought driving him forward: Her life comes first.
“Let me go! No, Peter—Spider-Man—let me go!” [Name] shouted, her voice raw and desperate as she struggled in his grasp. Pain rippled through her body, a sharp groan escaping her lips as her ribs protested her movements. Spider-Man held on tightly, his heart twisting with guilt. He couldn’t tell her the truth—that Peter was fine, that Peter was him. Not yet. Not now.
The whoosh of air rushed around them as he swung away from the tower, the chaos left behind. Her words stuck in his mind, clawing at his resolve even as he held her protectively. Through the haze of the wind and smoke, she swore she caught a flicker of Blackout’s figure—just shimmering and disappearing into the gloom like a ghost. “Wha—?” she murmured, blinking rapidly, but the sound of the wind drowned her voice completely.
Spider-Man landed on the rooftop of a building a few blocks away, the impact sending another jolt of pain through his leg. He grunted softly, trying not to let it show as he eased [Name] onto her feet. The wound on his thigh throbbed, the torn suit clinging uncomfortably to the gash.
“You’re hurt,” [Name] said quickly, her voice filled with worry as she took a step closer to him.
“I’ll heal faster,” Peter replied, brushing it off. But his hands hovered nervously near her, unsure whether to touch her or keep his distance. He didn’t want to hurt her anymore than she already was.
“You were reckless,” he said finally, his voice carrying a frustrated edge as he limped a few steps away. He paced back and forth, ignoring the sharp pain in his leg as he struggled to process everything. “Attacking a supervillain like that? What were you thinking?”
“I had to try!” she shot back, her voice trembling but resolute. “I thought—” She cut herself off, biting her lip against the ache spreading through her ribs. “You need to go back and save Peter! You promised!”
Spider-Man stopped mid-pace, his gaze snapping back to her. “I will,” he said firmly, though his tone softened as he crouched slightly, his injured leg nearly buckling. “But first, you need to be safe.”
“Spider-Man,” she whispered, her expression pale and strained. “This is bad. Really bad.”
“I know,” Peter replied quickly, his mind already racing.
“No, you don’t!” she shouted, the force of her outburst sending fresh pain through her ribs. She winced, clutching her side before continuing. “I’ve been looking into his attacks. He charges up—”
“To power up, I know,” Peter cut in.
“No, you don’t!” she interrupted again, her voice cracking with urgency. “His suit takes so much energy. That’s why your fights don’t last long—he burns through it quickly. But now he has that energy core. Unlimited energy. Spider-Man, this is really bad.”
Peter froze, her words hitting him like a thunderclap. Unlimited energy? That’s what he’s been after? He felt his stomach drop as realization flooded his mind. How had he missed this? How had MJ and Ned missed this? The signs had been there, but they hadn’t connected the dots. And now, Blackout had exactly what he needed.
Pushing the thought aside, Peter glanced down toward the street and spotted ambulances pulling up. He had no time to lose. “I’ll fix this,” he murmured, more to himself than to her. He shot a web toward the edge of the building and pulled her back into his arms, ignoring her wince of pain as he swung down to the emergency responders below.
When they landed, Peter grunted again, his leg threatening to give out. He steadied her as they approached the medics, his voice steady despite the pain. “Take care of her,” he said sharply, stepping back to let them work. [Name] watched him helplessly, her lips parted as though she wanted to say something but couldn’t find the words.
Spider-Man turned away, leaping back toward the wreckage of the tower. The floors that had exploded were a nightmare—rubble everywhere, flames still licking at the edges of the debris. His heart sank as he searched, finding people he had worked alongside injured, trapped, or worse. He didn’t let himself dwell on the bodies—he couldn’t afford to lose focus. He helped whoever he could, pulling them free, carrying them down to safety, and ensuring they were cared for.
Once he was certain there was no one left, he retreated to a quiet corner and pulled off his mask, breathing heavily as he leaned against the wall. The pain in his leg was sharper now, but he forced himself to keep moving. Quickly, he changed out of the suit, pulling on his civilian clothes before limping down to the street where the ambulances were parked.
He spotted [Name] almost instantly. She stood near one of the ambulances, her expression tense until her eyes landed on him. Relief washed over her face as she called out his name, her voice carrying through the chaos. “Peter!”
“[Name]!” he shouted back, his own relief evident. She ran toward him, and he pushed through the pain to meet her halfway. As they collided, her arms wrapped tightly around him, and he returned the embrace, holding her close despite the ache in his ribs and leg.
-------------------------------------------------------------
Blackout’s stance remained steady, his dark, predatory gaze fixed on the chaos around him. The smoke clung to the air like a living thing, twisting and curling as if it were drawn to the destruction he’d caused. The glowing energy core pulsed steadily in his gauntlet, its soft blue light casting faint patterns on the smooth black of his armor. Finally—it was his. The culmination of every calculated strike, every disruption, every choice that had brought him to this moment. Power, unending and absolute.
As his eyes narrowed beneath the visor, movement in the distance caught his attention. The Spider.
Blackout clicked his tongue in mild irritation, watching as Spider-Man shot a web toward the girl and pulled her to safety. She flew through the air, startled but unharmed, her cries of protest drowned out by the chaos surrounding them. Blackout tilted his head ever so slightly, his lips curling into a faint smirk. “Tsk. Soft,” he murmured, his voice low and mechanical beneath the modulation of his helmet. The Spider’s weakness had always been his heart—his need to save everyone, no matter the cost to himself. And today, Blackout intended to make him pay for it.
The girl clutched against the hero’s chest, the faint whoosh of his escape echoing into the distance as Spider-Man swung them away from the wreckage. Blackout made no move to stop them. His grip on the energy core tightened slightly as he lifted it to eye level, the pulsing glow reflecting in his visor. This was the prize—the key to everything. With this in his possession, he would crush the Spider once and for all.
“Finally,” he murmured under his breath, his voice laced with satisfaction. Turning his head slightly, he scanned the debris-strewn hallway, his mind already pivoting to the next step. The Spider may have escaped for now, but Blackout wasn’t finished yet. Not by a long shot.
With deliberate precision, he tapped a sequence into the panel on his gauntlet, activating the cloaking aspect of his armour. The faint shimmer of light rippled across his form as his figure seemed to blur and fade, blending seamlessly into the swirling smoke and shadows. It wasn’t just invisibility—it was silence, stillness, a complete dampening of presence. His ability to switch off his killing intent was a skill honed over years, perfected to the point where even the Spider’s infamous instincts couldn’t detect him.
This wasn’t about retreating; this was strategy. He wasn’t going to let the Spider escape that easily. No, he was going to follow him—track him, shadow him, and wait for the perfect moment to strike. A game of cat and mouse, with Blackout firmly in control of the board.
As he moved soundlessly through the destruction, the faint blue pulse of the energy core lit his path, a haunting glow in the darkness. His smirk widened beneath the helmet as the adrenaline of the hunt surged through him. The Spider’s world would crumble soon enough. And when it did, Blackout would make sure he had a front-row seat.
The shimmering haze of his cloaking field enveloped Blackout, rendering him invisible as he approached the rooftop where the Spider and the girl had landed. The faint hum of the energy core in his grasp was a soothing reminder of his triumph—he already had what he needed. But that didn’t mean he was done playing the game.
From his vantage point, hidden in the smoke and shadows, he could hear them. Their voices carried faintly over the breeze, snippets of their hurried conversation reaching him.
“… This is bad. Really bad,” the girl said, her tone strained yet determined.
“I know,” the Spider replied, breathless, his frustration evident as he paced with a slight limp, his movements betraying the pain in his leg.
Blackout tilted his head, listening closer. The girl’s words carried intelligence—a sharp mind piecing together the puzzle of his attacks, connecting threads that others had failed to grasp. He almost admired her cleverness. Almost. “Foolish,” he murmured under his breath, a quiet chuckle rumbling beneath the modulation of his helmet. Foolish to think she could’ve stopped me.
As he observed, his gaze shifted to the Spider. The way he hovered near her, protective and tense, spoke volumes. The hero’s care for her was palpable, and Blackout felt his lips curl into a smirk. The Spider’s weakness, he thought with satisfaction, always lies in his heart.
An idea began to form—a new layer to his game. He could end it all now, strike while they were vulnerable and broken. He could tear the Spider apart, piece by piece, and ensure his victory was swift and unrelenting. But where was the fun in that? No, Blackout wasn’t done yet. He wanted more. He wanted to show the world that the Spider would fail, would fall to ruin, and that it was inevitable. And what better way to do that than to use what the Spider valued most?
His plan started taking shape, a grand finale worthy of the chaos he thrived on. He didn’t need to stay here—not yet. Let them have their moment, let the Spider tend to his broken little pawn. Blackout had all the time in the world now, and he wasn’t going to waste it.
He shifted his stance, his armour making no sound as the cloaking field shimmered faintly around him. The villain took one last look at the pair, his smirk widening beneath the visor, before turning away. Silent and unseen, he melted into the night, leaving them to their conversation and carrying with him the promise of their eventual downfall.
-----------------------------------------------------------------
The apartment was quiet when they returned, the chaos of the day left behind but lingering in their minds. The faint smell of smoke still clung to their clothes, and the ache of their injuries was a constant reminder of how close things had come to disaster. [Name] glanced at Peter, her expression soft but tired, and he gave her a small, reassuring smile.
“Let’s clean up,” he said gently, his voice low. “You’ll feel better.”
She nodded, following him to the bathroom. The warm steam from the shower was a welcome relief, the heat soothing their sore muscles as they stepped inside. Peter reached for the shampoo, his movements careful as he lathered it into her hair. His fingers were gentle, massaging her scalp with a tenderness that made her close her eyes and lean into the sensation.
“You’re good at this,” she murmured, her voice barely audible over the sound of the water.
Peter chuckled softly, his tone light despite the weight of the day. “I’ve had practice.”
When he finished, she turned to him, her hands reaching for the shampoo bottle. “Your turn,” she said, her voice steady but kind. He hesitated for a moment before leaning down slightly, letting her work the lather into his hair. Her touch was just as gentle, her fingers moving carefully as she washed away the soot and grime.
As the water cascaded over them, [Name]’s gaze drifted downward, catching sight of the large cut on Peter’s leg. The wound was raw and angry, the edges of the torn skin stark against the rest of his body. Her breath hitched slightly as she stared at it, her mind racing.
Spider-Man had a cut like that, she thought suddenly, the memory flashing in her mind. The gash she’d seen on his leg during the fight—it was in the exact same spot. Her brow furrowed, confusion and curiosity swirling within her. How did Peter get that?
She didn’t say anything, her thoughts too tangled to form words. Instead, she focused on rinsing his hair, her movements slower now as her mind worked overtime. Peter, oblivious to her realization, gave her a small smile when she finished, his eyes warm despite the exhaustion etched into his features.
“Thanks,” he said softly, his voice carrying a quiet gratitude.
She nodded, her lips pressing together as she tried to push the thought aside. But it lingered, a question she couldn’t shake.
The bathroom was filled with lingering steam as they stepped out of the shower, the warmth dissipating into the cooler air of her apartment. Peter grabbed a towel and began drying off, careful not to jostle his injured leg too much. [Name], still wrapped in her own towel, walked into the bedroom and returned moments later with her small first aid kit in hand.
“Here,” she said softly, handing it to him. “You need to patch that up before it gets worse.”
Peter gave her a grateful smile and nodded, his movements slightly stiff as he took the kit and sat down on the edge of her bed. He opened it, pulling out gauze, antiseptic wipes, and tape. She perched on a chair nearby, watching him with quiet concern as he worked to clean the wound.
The gash was deep but clean, the torn skin raw against the pale muscle beneath. Peter winced as he pressed the antiseptic wipe to the area, his fingers trembling slightly as the sting shot through his leg.
“How’d you even get that?” [Name] asked casually, tilting her head as she studied him.
Peter didn’t look up, his focus staying firmly on his leg as he replied, “Landed on something sharp when the explosion hit.”
She frowned, her gaze flicking to the large cut and then back to his face. “Huh,” she muttered, more to herself than to him. “Spider-Man had a wound like that earlier.”
Peter froze mid-motion, the gauze in his hand hovering just above the cut. His breath hitched, and for a split second, his expression shifted—a deer-in-headlights look flashing across his face. It was brief, almost imperceptible, but [Name] caught it. She blinked, her brow furrowing slightly. That’s odd, she thought. He’s always weird when Spider-Man’s mentioned.
Peter quickly recovered, clearing his throat as he resumed patching his leg. “Oh, uh… weird coincidence, I guess,” he said lightly, though his voice sounded slightly strained.
She didn’t press him, though the flicker of suspicion lingered in her mind. Instead, she leaned back, biting her lip as she mulled over the interaction. The pieces didn’t quite fit—but she couldn’t force herself to connect them just yet.
Peter finished taping up his leg, giving her a small smile as he tucked the first aid kit back together. “Thanks for this,” he said softly, his tone sincere.
“Of course,” she replied, her voice steady despite the swirl of questions forming in her mind.
The apartment was cloaked in a soft, tired silence, only the faint hum of the heater filling the air. [Name] pulled on an oversized jumper, the fabric falling loose and cozy over her frame, a stark contrast to the dirt-streaked clothes she’d worn earlier. Peter had already changed into the pajama bottoms and t-shirt he’d left at hers during his many visits, his movements slower and stiffer than usual thanks to the wound on his leg. Exhaustion had seeped into both of them, but neither could bring themselves to sleep—not yet.
Sitting on the edge of the bed, [Name] glanced over at Peter. Her brow furrowed slightly, and she hesitated before speaking. “I think Blackout was in the room when you showed me the energy core.”
Peter stopped mid-motion, turning to her with a puzzled expression. “What? Why do you think that?”
She shifted, tucking her legs under her as her hands fidgeted with the hem of her jumper. “There was this guy… he brushed past me near the workstation. I didn’t think much of it at the time, but I got this awful feeling. Like dread. It was weird—it felt… wrong. I can’t explain it.”
Peter’s brows knitted together as he tried to recall the moment, scanning his memories of the lab and the explosion. “I don’t—” He shook his head, frustrated. “I don’t remember anyone like that.”
“Well, I do,” she said firmly, her voice carrying a quiet edge. Her gaze dropped to the floor, her fingers twisting her jumper. “I think he was there. I think he was watching us, waiting to strike. And now he has the core.” Her voice wavered, and she swallowed hard before continuing, her fear creeping into her words. “Peter, I’m scared. For the city.”
Peter ran a hand through his hair, his pacing slowing as he turned to face her directly. “Spider-Man will protect us,” he said, his tone steady. “And the Avengers—they’ll come back, and they won’t let the city be destroyed. We’re not alone in this.”
She looked up at him, her expression shifting into something sharper—more intense. “Peter, I think Spider-Man’s gonna get himself killed going against Blackout.”
That stopped him cold. He stared at her, the weight of her words hanging heavy in the air. “What?” he said, his voice quieter now, tinged with disbelief.
She leaned forward slightly, her voice rising. “Look at the stats of his fights, Peter! Blackout’s left him seriously injured every time they’ve fought. And now—now he has that core. Unlimited energy. It’s worse than ever. Spider-Man can’t handle him alone.”
Peter clenched his jaw, his frustration bubbling to the surface as he started pacing again, his hands dragging through his hair. “Spider-Man’s dealt with worse. You don’t give him enough credit—he always finds a way.”
“This isn’t about credit!” she shot back, her voice louder now, shaking with emotion. “This is about reality! Blackout is too powerful, and if Spider-Man keeps pushing like this, he’s going to—” She cut herself off, her chest tightening with the weight of her fears. Her voice softened, breaking slightly. “He’s going to get himself killed.”
Peter stopped pacing, his injured leg forcing him to lean heavily against the bed as he sat down, his face drawn with tension. “You think he’s just going to give up?” he asked, his tone sharp but controlled. “Spider-Man doesn’t quit. He can’t. It’s not about him—it’s about protecting people.”
“And that’s the problem, isn’t it?” she replied, her voice quieter now, tinged with sadness. “He’s so focused on protecting everyone that he doesn’t think about himself. That’s why I’m scared, Peter. Blackout knows how to break him.”
The room fell into silence, both of them caught in the weight of their words. Peter sighed heavily, his hands dropping to his knees as he stared at the floor. “You’re wrong,” he said finally, his voice low but resolute. “Spider-Man won’t stop until this city is safe. He’ll win.”
[Name] didn’t reply, her gaze distant as her mind raced with worry. She wanted to believe him—wanted to hold onto the hope Peter carried—but the fear lingered, refusing to let go.
[Name] sat quietly on the edge of the bed, her fingers idly tracing the edge of the blanket as Peter finished setting the first aid kit aside. Her mind churned with worry, the weight of the day pressing heavily on her shoulders. She glanced at him as he settled onto the bed, his movements slower and stiffer than usual, exhaustion visible in every step.
“Peter,” she began softly, her voice hesitant but steady. “Is there… any chance they made a fail-safe for the core? Something to shut it down if it gets out of hand?”
Peter paused, his brows knitting together as he considered her question. He shook his head, his expression grim. “No. Not that I’ve ever heard of. They wouldn’t have planned for it to be stolen—it was supposed to be secure.”
Her shoulders slumped, disappointment settling into her chest. “Great. So Blackout really does have unlimited energy,” she muttered under her breath.
Peter watched her, his lips pressing together as her question lingered in his mind, sparking something deeper. Though he didn’t say it aloud, her words had started turning gears in his head, pulling at thoughts he hadn’t yet considered. He tucked that feeling away for now, letting it simmer as his gaze softened.
“Come here,” he said gently, holding out a hand. She hesitated for a moment before climbing into bed beside him, the warmth of his presence easing some of her tension. They settled into the blankets, her head resting against his chest while his arm draped protectively around her. The quiet that followed wasn’t heavy—it was comforting, the kind of silence that allowed them to breathe.
Peter stroked her hair absentmindedly, his fingers moving in slow, soothing patterns. “We’ll figure this out,” he murmured, his voice low. “Together.”
She nodded, her eyes fluttering closed as her exhaustion caught up with her. The thought of Blackout still haunted her, but in this moment, being wrapped in Peter’s arms made her feel safer—like maybe, just maybe, things would be okay.
As they drifted toward sleep, Peter’s mind buzzed softly with possibilities. Her question about the fail-safe stuck with him, tugging at loose threads in his thoughts. While she let herself rest, Peter’s determination quietly renewed itself. He didn’t know how yet, but he’d find a way to stop Blackout—and keep her safe.
The soft rhythm of [Name]’s breathing filled the room, a steady, quiet sound that told Peter she had finally fallen asleep. Her head rested gently on his chest, the oversized jumper she wore bunching slightly against the blanket. He glanced down at her peaceful face, the weight of the day heavy in his chest. The fear of nearly losing her had settled deep inside him, refusing to leave, but he kept it buried—for now.
Carefully, Peter shifted her so she was resting comfortably on the pillow. He climbed out of bed, mindful of his injured leg, and grabbed his phone from the nightstand. His movements were deliberate, quiet, as he slipped out into the small living room.
He sat down on the couch, his mind buzzing as he tapped MJ’s name in his contacts. The phone rang twice before her voice came through, groggy but alert.
“Peter? What’s going on? Is everything okay?”
Peter exhaled slowly, rubbing the back of his neck. “Yeah—I mean, no, not really. It’s… been a day.” He hesitated, then added, “Is Ned awake?”
“I’ll call him,” MJ replied, her tone sharpening with concern. “Are you hurt? Is [Name] okay?”
Peter nodded instinctively, though she couldn’t see him. “She’s okay. She got banged up pretty bad, but the medics checked her out. She’s resting now.”
MJ’s sigh of relief was audible through the phone. “Okay, good. Hold on—I’ll get Ned on the call.”
A moment later, the line clicked, and Ned’s voice joined them, sounding half-asleep but worried. “Peter? Dude, what’s going on? Are you hurt? What happened?”
Peter winced slightly, his leg throbbing with every beat of his pulse. “I’m fine, mostly. Blackout—he hit Stark Tower. I was there with [Name]. He has the energy core now. I—I didn’t put it together before, but that’s what he’s been looking for. He needed a permanent power source, and now he’s got it.”
Silence hung over the line for a moment before Ned spoke, his tone serious. “That’s… really bad.”
“Yeah,” Peter agreed, his voice low. “But [Name] got me thinking. If Blackout uses so much power, what if we made something that could disable the core? Shut it down completely?”
“You think it’s possible?” MJ asked, her voice cautious but intrigued.
“I don’t know yet,” Peter admitted. “But I’ve got to try. I’m going to need a few days to figure something out, and I’ll need your help. Both of you.”
“Count me in,” Ned said immediately, his voice steady with resolve. “We’ll figure this out.”
“I’m in too,” MJ added. “When do you want to meet?”
Peter glanced at the time on his phone, exhaustion catching up to him. “Tomorrow,” he said, his voice firm. “Morning, if you can. We’ll need all the time we can get.”
“Got it,” MJ replied. “Take care of yourself tonight, okay? And make sure [Name] is okay too.”
“I will,” Peter promised, his voice soft. “Thanks, guys.”
Ending the call, Peter let out a quiet sigh, his mind racing despite the late hour. The weight of the city’s safety pressed heavily on him, but the thought of nearly losing [Name] overshadowed it all. He pushed himself to his feet, wincing as his injured leg protested, and made his way back to the bedroom.
Sliding under the covers, Peter carefully pulled [Name] into his arms, holding her close as she stirred faintly but didn’t wake. Her presence grounded him, even as his thoughts spun with plans and fears. He pressed his forehead lightly to hers, his voice barely a whisper.
“I’m not letting this happen again,” he murmured, his resolve settling deep in his chest.
----------------------------------------------------------
The sunlight filtered weakly through the curtains, casting soft streaks of light across the room. [Name] stirred, her body aching as the events of the previous day came rushing back. Every movement was a reminder—her ribs protested, her muscles felt bruised, and her head throbbed faintly. She groaned softly, shifting under the blankets before finally pushing herself upright.
The bed felt emptier than usual, and she glanced around, her brow furrowing slightly. “Peter?” she called out, her voice hoarse from sleep. No answer. Slowly, she swung her legs over the side of the bed, wincing as her ribs sent sharp pangs through her chest. She grabbed the oversized jumper she’d worn the night before, pulling it on as she padded out into the living room.
Peter was there, standing near the couch, already dressed in his usual hoodie and jeans. He was fiddling with his phone, his expression focused but tense. [Name] leaned against the doorway, her voice soft but curious. “You’re leaving?”
Peter turned to her, his face softening as he tucked his phone into his pocket. “I was going to wake you before I left,” he said gently, stepping closer. “But I need to get to the tower. I’ve got to start working on something to disarm the core.”
She nodded, understanding immediately. “You’ll figure it out,” she said quietly, her voice steady despite the ache in her chest. “Just… be careful, okay?”
Peter smiled faintly, his hand brushing against her cheek before he leaned down to press a soft kiss to her lips. “I will,” he promised, his voice low. “Rest up. I’ll check in later.”
She watched him leave, the door clicking softly behind him, and let out a quiet sigh. Her body felt heavier now, the soreness settling deeper as she moved to the kitchen. She grabbed the bottle of painkillers from the counter, popping two into her hand before washing them down with a glass of water. The relief wouldn’t come immediately, but it was something.
Returning to the couch, she sank into the cushions, her body grateful for the reprieve. Her mind, however, refused to rest, the weight of the city’s danger pressing heavily on her thoughts. She closed her eyes, willing herself to relax, but the fear lingered, refusing to let go.
-----------------------------------------------------------
The days since she’d last seen Peter had felt unusually long. [Name] knew he was at the lab, buried in work with other tech specialists, trying to come up with a way to disarm the energy core Blackout had stolen. His occasional texts were brief updates—just enough to let her know he was okay, but not enough to distract him from the monumental task at hand. She missed him, but she understood. The city needed him, and he was doing everything in his power to make sure it was safe.
Still, she couldn’t sit idly by.
In her office, the walls were lined with corkboards filled with maps, notes, and photos, all connected by a web of red string and pins. She sat at her desk, pouring over the same information again and again, willing herself to see something she’d missed. The faint hum of her computer filled the room as her fingers tapped restlessly on the edge of the desk.
Her phone buzzed, breaking her concentration. She grabbed it, her heart skipping slightly when she saw Megan’s name on the screen. The text was simple: Check your email. I just sent you something.
Curious, she opened her laptop and pulled up her inbox. The email was at the top, marked with the subject line “Blackout – Energy Readings”. Her eyes narrowed as she opened the attachment, revealing data logs from the day of the attack at Stark Tower. The energy signature from the core was there, clear as day, but what caught her attention was the second half of the file: a random energy reading that had pinged twice in the same location not far from the city.
Her pulse quickened as she compared the data to her maps. Grabbing a fresh set of pins, she placed them into the board, marking the location of the pings. The lines from her previous research seemed to shift in her mind, the connections becoming clearer with every pin she added.
Her phone buzzed again, this time with an incoming call. She answered without looking, her eyes still fixed on the board. “Hey, Megan. I got it. What is this?”
“Energy readings,” Megan replied, her tone brisk but excited. “It’s from a tracker I’ve been working on—it logged the energy surge when Blackout attacked, but these other pings? They’re consistent with the core, and they’re recent.”
[Name] frowned, distractedly twisting the phone cord in her fingers as she stared at the board. “So, you’re saying he’s been there recently? Twice?”
“Yeah, exactly. That place—wherever it is—it’s worth looking into,” Megan said.
As they talked, [Name] leaned back, her eyes scanning the mess of strings and pins. And then it hit her. The red lines crisscrossed perfectly at the location Megan had marked. The two energy pings weren’t random—they were central to every lead, every connection she’d been chasing.
Her heart raced. “Megan,” she said, cutting her off mid-sentence. “I think I just figured out where Blackout’s hiding.”
“What?” Megan asked, startled. “Are you sure?”
[Name] stood quickly, grabbing her bag and pulling her long beige coat from the hook by the door. “I’m not 100% sure, but I have to check it out.”
“Wait, you’re going alone?” Megan’s voice rose with concern. “Are you nuts? Don’t do anything stupid, okay?”
“I won’t,” [Name] lied as she reached for her phone to call a cab. Her mind was already set—she had to know if her hunch was right. If this was where Blackout was operating, the sooner she confirmed it, the sooner Peter and the others could act.
The call went through, and as she waited for the cab, she glanced once more at the board. The red lines seemed to hum with urgency, pulling her forward. For the first time in days, she felt like she was a step ahead.
The cab pulled away, leaving [Name] standing alone in front of the building—a desolate, crumbling structure that looked like it hadn’t been touched in decades. Its once-pristine brickwork was now mottled with grime, cracks spiderwebbing across its surface as vines crept along its edges. The windows were shattered, the frames rusted and jagged, and the heavy silence that surrounded it was almost suffocating.
She felt her stomach churn as she stared up at the building, her gut twisting with an undeniable certainty. This was it. She couldn’t explain it—the feeling was instinctive, visceral. Something about this place screamed danger, screamed Blackout. She had to go inside.
Her pulse quickened as she stepped through the crumbling doorway, her footsteps light but deliberate on the dust-covered floor. The stale air inside seemed to hang heavy, the faint scent of oil and burnt metal lingering despite the cold stillness. The building’s interior was just as decrepit as its exterior—walls peeled back to reveal bare concrete, debris littering the ground, and shadows looming in every corner.
The faint creak of her shoes echoed in the silence as she moved deeper inside, her hands gripping the strap of her bag tightly. Her eyes darted from one shadow to the next, her heart hammering as unease settled deeper into her bones. Why does it feel like I’m being watched?
As she rounded a corner, the dim light spilling through the shattered windows illuminated something unusual. A room, its door slightly ajar, filled with stacks of materials. She pushed the door open carefully, her breath hitching as she stepped inside. What she saw made her stomach drop.
Bomb casings, intricate weapons components, and materials she couldn’t even identify were scattered across the room, meticulously arranged. Her eyes widened as she noticed the alien technology embedded into some of the devices—slick, otherworldly designs that pulsed faintly with blue light. She reached for her phone, snapping photo after photo of everything, her fingers trembling as she documented the evidence.
What she didn’t notice was the small sensor embedded in the corner of the room—the silent alarm that she had unknowingly tripped.
She continued moving, her curiosity driving her forward despite the growing unease clawing at her. Deeper into the building, she stumbled upon another room—this one larger, almost like a control center. Maps were pinned to the walls, red markers creating intricate patterns of movement and planning. There were photos scattered across the table, and as her gaze landed on them, her breath caught.
Peter. She recognized him immediately—photos of him walking through the city, sitting at a coffee shop, even entering her apartment. These weren’t casual snapshots. They were deliberate. Targeted. Why would Blackout be watching Peter?
Her eyes moved to another set of photos—ones of Spider-Man in action, swinging through the streets, fighting villains, saving lives. And then, among the images, her own face stared back at her. Her photo was marked with a red X slashed through it, bold and unforgiving.
“What…?” she whispered, her voice shaking. “Why does he have a photo of me?”
The words had barely left her lips when a voice cut through the silence, deep and chilling, ringing out clear as day. “Because you’re the bait.”
Her heart stopped. Before she could turn around, she felt a sharp, jarring smack to the back of her head. Pain flared briefly before darkness engulfed her, her body crumpling to the ground like a ragdoll.
---------------------------------------------------------------
Hi! I am so so sorry that I've taken awhile to write this part!!! work ahs been mental, I fell ill and hit a bit of a block trying to make it flow. I hope it makes sense and doesn't feel rushed. Much Love!
Tagged:@never-stop-dreaming30
8 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 2 months ago
Text
Hi! I just want everyone to know that I’m sorry for taking a bit longer writing part 8, works been a little busy and I’ve been shattered getting in, I’m half way through the part so it shouldn’t be too long! Promise I just wanted to give everyone an update 😊
Peter Parker Master List
Tumblr media
__________________________________________________________
~A Little Taste of Heaven~
"[Name] moves to Manhattan seeking a fresh start—a better job, a better life—but the city’s reality is far from what she imagined. After a dangerous encounter, she’s saved by Spider-Man, leading to an intense, intimate moment between them. But what feels like hope quickly turns to heartbreak as she believes he’s abandoned her. Unbeknownst to her, it’s all a miscommunication, and Peter Parker, weighed down with guilt, returns to find her gone. Their paths cross again, but this time, it’s not Spider-Man she meets—it’s Peter Parker, the man behind the mask."
Part 1 Part 2 Part 3 Part 4 Part 5 Part 6 Part 7
29 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 3 months ago
Text
Tumblr media Tumblr media
~ A Little Taste of Heaven ~ (Peter Parker x Fem!Reader) (7/10)
Tumblr media Tumblr media Tumblr media
-----------------------------------------------
Warnings: Mature themes/Explicit content/Humour/Over18s/Fluff/ Summary: "A lively night of dancing and humour unfolded, with passion quietly building between [Name] and Peter through subtle touches and glances. Ned’s comedic charm added levity, while a meaningful question lingered unspoken as the night drew to a close." ----------------------------------------------- 🎶 Lose Control - song and lyrics by Teddy Swims 🎶
--------------------------------------------------------------------
The hum of the city surrounded her as [Name] stepped out of the cab and approached the Moonlight Lounge. From the street, the club radiated energy, its rhythmic bassline thrumming softly in the air and vibrating through her chest as she neared the entrance. People were streaming in, their excitement almost palpable, and for a moment, she felt a flicker of hesitation. But as she adjusted the strap of her clutch, she squared her shoulders and lifted her chin. Nothing—and certainly no one—was going to ruin her night.
🎶I come and I go Prove you got the right to please me🎶
Inside, the transition was seamless but striking. The rich pulse of music greeted her, growing louder with every step as she moved past the indoor space. The plush interior, all sleek designs and warm neon accents, gave way to the open-air rooftop, where she was immediately captivated by the breath-taking view. The city stretched out before her, glittering under the night sky, its lights blending perfectly with the starlit atmosphere above.
🎶 Everybody knows Catch me or I go Houdini 🎶
Speakers were strategically placed, surrounding the rooftop with crisp, immersive sound. “Houdini” by Dua Lipa filled the air, the electrifying beat setting the tone for the crowd already moving on the sprawling dance floor. A large bar to the left was buzzing with activity, its colorful lights casting vibrant hues across the polished counters and crystal-clear glasses. Every element of the space felt grand, open, and alive.
She walked in, the breeze ruffling her dress ever so slightly, her heels clicking against the smooth tiles beneath her. Almost immediately, she caught a few curious looks—a head turning here, an admiring glance there. It was impossible to ignore, but she didn’t flinch.
Holding her head high, she let the confidence radiate through her as she strode further inside. She was determined to have a good time; Peter wasn’t going to linger in her mind or spoil her night. Her eyes scanned the crowd, searching for Megan amid the sea of people.
As soon as [Name] stepped onto the rooftop section, her eyes caught sight of Megan standing near the bar, holding two drinks in her hands. Megan turned, her face lighting up instantly as she spotted [Name]. She walked toward her with that signature bounce in her step, her perfectly fitted jeans hugging her figure, paired effortlessly with a black lace crop top.
“Girl, you look amazing!” Megan whistled low, the sound barely audible under the thrum of the music. “I knew you’d look good!”
[Name] smiled, a genuine warmth tugging at the edges of her lips. “Thanks, Meg. But, seriously, you look incredible. That top is perfect.”
Megan grinned, handing her one of the drinks with a little flourish. “Well, duh. I have to keep up with you somehow. But—what’s up? You’ve got this look on your face.”
[Name] exhaled softly, taking a sip of her drink before responding. “I ran into the guy I was seeing outside my apartment before I left. And—” She paused, her lips pressing into a tight line. “Turns out, he’s friends with Ned.”
🎶 I come and I go (I come and I go) Prove you got the right to please me 🎶
Megan’s brows shot up as she leaned closer, the music fading slightly in her ears. “No shit? Small world!” She shook her head, laughing lightly. “Alright, listen—fuck him. Drink up, and let’s go dance!”
🎶 Everybody knows (I'm not here for long) Catch me or I go Houdini 🎶
Before [Name] could protest, Megan grabbed her by the wrist, leading her toward the dance floor, her drink balanced effortlessly in her other hand. The pulsing beat of “Houdini” surrounded them as they joined the crowd, the night already starting to shift into the freedom and joy [Name] had been craving.
🎶 I'm looking for a man in finance Trust fund, 6'5", blue eyes 🎶
As the first notes of Man In Finance filled the rooftop, [Name] felt the anticipation in the air. The beat built, the energy of the crowd swelling around her, and by the time the drop hit, she and Megan were fully immersed in the music. Drinks in hand, they let loose on the dance floor, their laughter spilling over as they moved with effortless abandon. The pulsing bass synced with their steps, their bodies moving to the rhythm as the night became a blur of lights and sound.
[Name] took a sip from her drink, the cool liquid amplifying the warmth that already coursed through her. She glanced at Megan, who was twirling in sync with the crowd, her carefree energy contagious. [Name] couldn’t help but smile—this was exactly what she’d needed.
When the song ended, the two of them were breathless, grinning at each other as they made their way to the bar. They leaned against it, ordering another round, their laughter bubbling over as they recounted how ridiculous and fun their dancing had been.
🎶 Are you a man? 'Cause I'm a bitch I'm already rich, just looking for that (mm) This party sucks, I'm 'bout to ditch 🎶
Then, as the next song began to play, [Name] froze mid-sip. The familiar opening of Joyride by Kesha poured through the speakers, and her face lit up instantly. “Oh my God, I love this song!” she exclaimed, grabbing Megan’s arm.
🎶 Don't, don't, don't, don't even try to gi-give me shit I've earned the right to b-be like this Oh, you say you love me? (Thats funny) Well, so do I 🎶
Megan laughed, holding her own drink aloft as she pushed off from the bar. “Guess that means we’re going back out there!” she said, already tugging [Name] toward the floor as the beat kicked in.
The music pulsed through the rooftop, and [Name] let herself sink into the rhythm, her hips swaying in perfect time with the beat. The soft fabric of her dress swished with each movement, flowing effortlessly as she lost herself in the moment. Megan danced alongside her, their shared laughter bubbling over as they twirled and moved.
But then Megan abruptly stopped mid-step, squinting toward the bar. She leaned closer to [Name], her voice raised slightly to be heard over the music. “Is that… Ned?!”
[Name] followed Megan’s gaze, her eyes landing on the unmistakable figure of Ned standing near the bar. Her stomach did a small flip as she recognized the auburn-haired woman beside him. “Yeah,” she said, trying to keep her tone casual. “And MJ.”
Megan tilted her head, clearly intrigued. “MJ? Who’s that?”
“Their other friend,” [Name] explained briefly, her gaze lingering on the two of them. She let out a breath, shaking her head slightly as she turned her attention back to Megan. “I guess they decided to come here after all.”
[Name] continued to sway with the music, her attention shifted momentarily to the bar. That’s when MJ turned and spotted her. A broad grin spread across MJ’s face as she lifted her hand in a wave. Ned, realizing [Name] was there too, turned abruptly and wasted no time making his way toward the dance floor.
“Hi, Ned,” Megan said in a slightly teasing tone, her smile playful as she leaned toward him. Ned’s cheeks flushed instantly, and he stammered out a quick, “Hey… Megan,” before turning his attention to [Name].
“What made you guys come here?” [Name] asked, raising her brow slightly as Ned reached her. Her voice carried a mix of curiosity and surprise.
“Uh—well,” Ned started, scratching the back of his head, his words tumbling out awkwardly, “we just… thought it’d be fun. You know, change of scenery. MJ liked the idea.”
Behind them, MJ hovered at the edge of the bar, holding both her drink and Ned’s as her sharp eyes scanned for an empty table. She spotted one by the far side of the rooftop, its view opening up to the dazzling night sky. With practiced ease, she made her way toward the table, setting the drinks down before claiming the spot.
“Come sit with us!” Ned said brightly, gesturing toward MJ and the table. His enthusiasm was still tinged with a little awkwardness, but he seemed determined to make things comfortable.
Megan chimed in quickly, “Sure, we’ll sit. I’ll go grab drinks for me and [Name].”
Before Megan could turn, though, [Name] placed a gentle hand on her arm. “I’ll get the drinks. You sit down.” Her tone was firm but light as she gave Megan an assuring smile.
“Alright, fine,” Megan replied with a mock sigh, shaking her head slightly. “But make it good!”
[Name] smiled as she made her way to the bar, the music still pulsing in the air around her. Her confidence hadn’t wavered, and the night felt like it was about to take an interesting turn.
Megan settled into the chair across from MJ and Ned, crossing her legs as she leaned slightly forward, her drink perched in her hand like a prop in an interrogation. She smiled, but it was the kind of smile that didn’t quite reach her eyes—a signal that she wasn’t here for small talk.
“So,” Megan began, her tone casual but pointed. “What made you two decide to come to the lounge? Thought this wasn’t your scene.”
MJ didn’t flinch, raising her glass and taking a sip before responding. “We’re here to make sure Peter gets a chance,” she said matter-of-factly. “He likes her, you know.”
Ned, nodding along eagerly, piped up. “Yeah, he really does! I mean, he talks about her all the time—like, way more than he realizes.”
Megan tilted her head, her smile thinning. “That so? Well, Peter’s ditched her one too many times. He’s unreliable, flaky, and honestly, I’ll kick his ass if he pulls that stunt again.” She leaned back slightly, her tone still sharp but now edged with a hint of protectiveness. “So why isn’t he here? Seeing as you two are here trying to fix things for him.”
At that, MJ downed a generous gulp of her drink, her expression briefly guarded. “He’s got to deal with something important,” she said, her voice steady but giving nothing away.
Megan raised a brow, her eyes narrowing as she pressed further. “What’s so important that he sent you two to do his damage control?” Her voice was sharp now, no longer veiling the interrogation.
Ned shifted uncomfortably in his seat, glancing at MJ for backup. MJ, however, stared at the table for a moment, swirling her drink in her hand as if the answer might materialize there. The silence stretched between them, and it was clear neither of them had a reply they could give.
Megan, unsatisfied but letting it slide for now, leaned back in her chair, crossing her arms. “That’s what I thought.”
As [Name] approached the table, carefully balancing the drinks in hand, Megan leaned forward slightly, her voice carrying just enough to be heard. “He doesn’t deserve her,” she said firmly, her protective streak evident.
Ned’s face flushed, but he shook his head in protest. “He does deserve her. Peter’s a good guy. He’s flawed, sure, but he’s one of the good ones. Honestly.”
MJ nodded in agreement, raising her drink slightly. “Yeah. He may be a mess sometimes, but his heart’s in the right place.”
The sound of [Name] setting the drinks down on the table made them all glance up. Her brows furrowed slightly as she caught the last few words. “What are you guys talking about?” she asked, her voice edged with curiosity.
Ned froze, his expression panicked. “Uh… nothing!” he stammered, his tone almost too quick.
MJ offered her a tight-lipped smile, clearly trying to deflect as she took a sip from her drink. Megan, on the other hand, didn’t hesitate. She turned to [Name], her eyes unwavering as she said bluntly, “They’re here to do damage control for Peter.”
[Name] blinked, her gaze shifting between the three of them as her posture deflated slightly. “What?” she asked softly, her voice carrying a hint of disappointment.
Ned, realizing the weight of her reaction, sighed heavily. “I’m sorry. Look, Peter’s been… well, he’s been talking about you nonstop. He feels terrible about how things turned out. He lost his phone and couldn’t get in touch. It’s been driving him crazy all week.”
[Name] tilted her head, her brows knitting in confusion. “He lost his phone?”
MJ chimed in, her tone matter-of-fact but slightly worn. “Yeah. It’s been hell listening to him moan about it nonstop. He felt awful that he couldn’t tell you what happened.”
Megan, never one to hold back, leaned in, her tone sharp and cutting. “Okay, so he lost his phone. That doesn’t explain why he didn’t bother showing up to your work. He knew where you were.”
Ned cleared his throat, speaking up quickly. “He sent you flowers at work!” He glanced at MJ for confirmation. “MJ, didn’t she get them?”
Megan and [Name] exchanged a look, confusion flashing across both their faces. [Name] hesitated before responding. “Hannah got flowers last week. But no one was sure who they were from—there wasn’t a card with them.”
MJ sighed deeply, shaking her head as if Peter’s actions were as predictable as they were frustrating. “Classic Peter. Sometimes he’s an idiot.”
Ned nodded in agreement, his expression apologetic. “Yeah, he meant well. He was trying, honestly.”
Megan leaned back slightly, her hard edge softening just a bit. “Okay… so he sent flowers. Still doesn’t excuse everything, but…” She let out a mock sigh, a hint of a grin tugging at her lips. “Fine, I’ll lay off him—for now.”
As for [Name], the tension in her chest eased slightly, the warmth creeping into her expression as she processed the revelation. He hadn’t been ghosting her after all. The anger she’d carried suddenly felt lighter—replaced by something tender, almost fuzzy. He’d sent her flowers, and while his delivery might have been messy, the gesture itself spoke volumes.
The group lingered at the table, drinks in hand, as laughter bubbled up between them. The earlier tension had eased considerably, replaced by the carefree atmosphere of the rooftop lounge. The music shifted once again, the catchy beat of Mamma Mia by Hugel spilling through the speakers and setting the tone for the dance floor.
🎶Buy me Prada (no, no, no) Balenciaga (no, no, no) Love the drama 🎶
As the beat kicked in, [Name] perked up, her smile widening as she leaned toward the group. “Oh my God, we have to dance!” she exclaimed, already pushing herself up from her seat.
Megan waved her hand dismissively, settling further into her chair. “I’ll sit this one out. Someone’s gotta get more drinks anyway,” she said with a teasing grin.
MJ finished her drink, standing as she gestured toward Megan. “I’ll help you with the drinks. You’re gonna need backup at that bar.”
Ned hesitated for a moment, his expression flickering somewhere between excitement and uncertainty. “Uh… okay, I guess I’ll dance,” he said, his voice not entirely convincing as he pushed his chair back and followed [Name] toward the floor.
[Name] laughed as she turned to him, her energy already contagious. “Come on, Ned, it’s gonna be fun!” she said, grabbing his hand and tugging him toward the pulsing crowd.
🎶 Damn Ooh Is my mum gonna see this and judge me? (What?) Damn, mamma Mia 🎶
The two of them found a spot on the dance floor, where [Name] wasted no time letting loose, her hips swaying effortlessly to the beat as her dress swished along with her movements. Ned, on the other hand, was stiff as a board, his awkward shuffles completely out of rhythm with the music. His arms moved tentatively, his expression betraying both amusement and mild embarrassment.
[Name] couldn’t help but laugh, her head thrown back in genuine delight. “You’re doing great, Ned! Seriously—top-tier dancing,” she teased, her grin bright as she twirled around him.
Ned laughed despite himself, his cheeks red but his mood light. “I’m just warming up!” he insisted, attempting another move that only made [Name] laugh harder.
As the song continued, the pair let themselves sink into the fun of it all, their laughter and dancing blending with the energy of the crowd. Meanwhile, Megan and MJ waited at the bar, ordering a fresh round of drinks and watching the dance floor from a distance, their own smiles softening the edge of the earlier conversation.
-----------------------------------------------------------------
The wind howled past Peter as he swung through the city, his pace quickening as Stark Tower came into view. His phone buzzed again,
Tony’s voice cutting through the comms. “You’d better be close, kid. Time’s ticking.”
Peter let out an exasperated sigh, his voice slightly muffled behind the mask. “I’m almost there. What’s the emergency, Mr. Stark?” “Just get here first. We’ll talk then,” Tony replied, his tone clipped.
Peter landed lightly on the rooftop, the entry hatch opening with a sharp hiss as the automated system scanned his arrival. Tony’s voice came through again. “Rooftop access, as usual. Now get inside.”
Jogging through the sleek hallways, Peter’s mind raced with possibilities. Tech breach? Another rogue villain? Something worse? He pulled off his mask as he entered the control room, the holographic display already active and casting its glow across the room.
Tony was standing with his arms crossed, his expression serious. The usual snark was notably absent. Peter frowned, sensing the weight of the moment. “Alright, I’m here. What’s the emergency?” he asked, gripping his mask tightly.
Tony gestured toward one of the chairs by the display table. “Sit down, Parker. We need to talk.”
Peter froze briefly, his nerves prickling as he hesitated. The tone in Tony’s voice was enough to make him comply. He slid into the seat, his brow furrowed with unease. “What’s going on?” he asked again, his voice quieter this time.
Tony paced slightly, arms crossed as he glanced at the holographic display before turning back to Peter. “I know about this whole Blackout thing,” he started, his tone steady but with that characteristic Stark edge. “I’ve been digging into it, trying to make some sense of what’s going on. So far, nothing’s come up. No patterns, no solid leads—just a whole lot of chaos.”
Peter’s expression shifted, surprise flickering across his face as he sat up straighter. “Wait, you’ve been looking into Blackout? Why didn’t you—”
Tony cut him off, raising a hand. “Hold your questions, kid. Here’s the deal—I’ve also been looking at you. Footage from the fights, surveillance—don’t ask how I got it, just appreciate my genius.” He tapped his temple dramatically, then softened slightly as he continued, “You’re worn out, Parker. Running on fumes—and running out on your girl.”
Peter blinked, momentarily speechless as Tony fixed him with a pointed stare. “What? No, I’m fine—I’m handling it!” he protested, his voice rising slightly.
“Yeah, sure, because scraping yourself off the pavement every time you face that guy is fine,” Tony shot back, his sarcasm sharp as ever. But then his tone softened, and he leaned against the edge of the table, his gaze steady. “Kid, you’ve been doing good work. But you can’t keep this up. Leave the next attack to me—and the other guys, alright? You need a break.”
Peter stared at him, still processing the words. “You… you’ve seen the footage?” he asked quietly, his voice tinged with disbelief. “I didn’t think—”
Tony cut him off again, raising a hand. His tone was firm but not unkind. “Yeah, I’ve seen it. And look, no one’s doubting your guts. You’ve got plenty of that. But guts don’t replace rest. Trust me, I’ve learned that the hard way.”
Peter’s grip tightened on the mask in his hands, guilt swirling alongside the exhaustion he hadn’t allowed himself to acknowledge. “I’m fine, though, really,” he muttered.
Tony arched a brow. “Uh-huh. Sure, and I bet you’re gonna tell me you’re eating right and getting eight hours of sleep, too.” He tapped at his watch, his voice shifting to address someone else. “F.R.I.D.A.Y, pull up footage from the Moonlight Lounge rooftop.”
Peter frowned, confused, as a holographic display flickered to life. The aerial angle of the rooftop club’s open floor came into view. At first, the glowing lights and dancing crowd blurred together, but then two familiar figures emerged. There was Ned, stiffly attempting to dance while [Name] moved beside him, her dress flowing effortlessly as she laughed, completely lost in the fun.
Peter’s eyes widened, his breath catching at the sight of her. “Wait… how did you—”
Tony smirked, crossing his arms. “Don’t worry about it. What you should worry about is the fact that you’re here, sitting in some beat-up spandex, while your girl is out there having the time of her life without you.”
Peter opened his mouth to protest, but before he could, the control room door slid open, and Happy strolled in carrying a garment bag. He set it down on the table, his expression as deadpan as ever. “This is your size, right? Found it in storage.”
Peter looked at the bag in confusion as Tony gestured toward it. “Go ahead, take a look.”
Unzipping the bag, Peter pulled out a sleek black dress shirt. His brows furrowed as he glanced between the shirt and Tony. “What’s this for?”
“It’s called making an effort, Parker,” Tony said with a pointed look. “Now get out of that suit, put on the shirt, and go get her.”
Peter hesitated, his grip tightening slightly on the shirt. “But what about—”
“Already told you,” Tony interrupted. “We’ll handle the rest. You’ve got one job tonight—don’t screw it up.”
Peter swallowed hard, glancing at the footage once more. [Name] was still laughing, the sight of her smile tugging at something deep in his chest. He nodded quickly, clutching the shirt. “Thanks, Mr. Stark.”
“Don’t thank me,” Tony replied with a small smirk. “Just don’t make me regret giving you the night off.”
Tony leaned back, arms crossed, and raised an expectant brow. “Well? What are you waiting for, Parker? Go get her.”
Peter blinked, caught off guard by the bluntness. “But I—”
“No ‘buts,’” Tony interrupted, pointing toward the control room door.
“You’re still here, which is about 30 seconds longer than you need to be. Move it. And Parker,” he added with a faint smirk, “don’t mess this up.”
Taking the cue, Peter nodded quickly, clutching the black shirt tightly as he slipped his mask back on. “Thanks, Mr. Stark,” he called over his shoulder as he jogged out of the room.
“Don’t thank me,” Tony called back. “Just go.”
Peter didn’t waste another second, shooting a web and swinging out into the night. The city blurred around him, the wind whipping against his suit as he headed straight for the Moonlight Lounge. As he neared the area, he swung toward a familiar rooftop—one where he’d stashed a spare bag for emergencies like this.
Landing lightly on the rooftop, Peter glanced around quickly before stripping off the suit in a rush. He stepped into a pair of dark jeans, pulling them up and fastening them as quickly as his fumbling hands would allow. He slipped his feet into a pair of sneakers, tying them haphazardly before grabbing the black dress shirt from the bag. He shrugged it on, his fingers working to button it with a speed that left the top four undone entirely—not that he noticed in his rush. Tossing a small bottle of aftershave into his hand, he spritzed it over his neck, inhaling the crisp scent as he shoved the bottle back into the bag.
He took a quick glance at himself in the reflective surface of a nearby window, ruffling his already-disheveled hair into something that resembled an intentional style. The sleeves of the shirt were too long, so he rolled them up hastily, grateful that his web shooter could easily pass as a watch. The other shooter, now removed, was slipped into his pocket.
Satisfied—or at least as close as he was going to get—Peter grabbed the suit and tucked it away before swinging the rest of the way toward the Moonlight Lounge. He landed quietly on a fire escape a block away, catching his breath as he peered toward the glowing rooftop in the distance. The wind swept through his hair, adding to the unpolished charm of his appearance. For a moment, he hesitated, nerves creeping in despite Tony’s pep talk. But then his jaw tightened with resolve. He wasn’t going to let this slip away.
Peter dropped down from the fire escape, landing softly on the pavement below. The streets were alive with the usual late-night chaos—groups of drunk pedestrians laughing too loudly, couples stumbling arm-in-arm, and the occasional cab honking impatiently.
He weaved through the crowd, his hands shoved into his pockets, muttering a quiet pep talk to himself. “Alright, Parker. You’ve got this. Just… don’t screw it up. Be cool. Be normal. You can do normal, right?” His words were barely audible over the city noise, but they kept him grounded as he approached the Moonlight Lounge.
The music grew louder as he climbed the stairs to the rooftop, the bassline vibrating faintly through the soles of his sneakers. He adjusted his rolled-up sleeves, his fingers brushing against the web shooter disguised as a watch on his wrist.
Stepping into the club, Peter was immediately hit by the energy of the place—the pulsing lights, the laughter, the music that seemed to wrap around everyone like a warm embrace. He scanned the crowd, his heart pounding as he searched for her.
And then he saw her.
[Name] was on the dance floor, her dress swishing with every movement as she laughed, her head thrown back in pure joy. Ned was beside her, his stiff, awkward dancing only making her laugh harder. Peter froze, his breath catching in his throat. She was radiant—effortlessly beautiful, her happiness lighting up the entire room.
For a moment, he couldn’t move, couldn’t think. All he could do was watch her, the weight of everything he’d been carrying suddenly feeling heavier. He really hoped he hadn’t screwed things up with her. Because right now, she was everything.
As Peter stood there, frozen in place and watching [Name] laugh and sway on the dance floor, MJ spotted him. Her sharp eyes caught his nervous stance instantly, and she wasted no time making her way over, weaving through the crowd with practiced ease.
“Parker,” she said as she reached him, her voice cutting through the music. “What happened? Why are you here?”
Peter blinked, slightly startled before stammering, “Uh… Tony told me to take the night off. Said I should, um, come here. Go… get her.”
MJ’s grin spread wide, her arms crossing as she gave him an approving look. “Tony Stark himself told you to go get her? Now that is a power move.” She laughed lightly, leaning closer. “Go get her, tiger. But first—you need a drink. Even I can see you’re nervous.”
Peter hesitated, his gaze darting briefly toward the dance floor before returning to MJ. “Yeah, okay. A drink might help,” he admitted, his voice tinged with self-consciousness.
MJ smirked and clapped him on the shoulder. “Good choice. Come on, let’s get you something strong enough to help with those nerves.”
As MJ guided him toward the bar, Megan had joined [Name] and Ned on the dance floor, handing out the fresh drinks she’d brought for them. The three of them danced together, laughing as the music surged, completely unaware of Peter’s arrival—or the fact that their night was about to shift once again.
🎶We never met, but she's all I see at night Never met, but she's always on my mind Wanna give her the world and so much more Who is my heart waiting for?🎶
The soft yet entrancing beats of Who by Jimin filled the club, blending seamlessly with the energy on the rooftop. Peter leaned against the bar, his drink in hand, his gaze fixated on [Name] as she danced. Her movements were fluid, her laughter light, and every step seemed to radiate joy. It was mesmerizing, and Peter couldn’t look away.
🎶If every day I think about her Yeah, every day of my life Then tell me why I haven't found her Why, why, why, why, why?🎶
But he wasn’t the only one. Across the dance floor, he noticed several pairs of eyes lingering on her—not just appreciating her beauty, but actively watching her. A flicker of jealousy bubbled up in his chest, his grip tightening slightly around the glass.
🎶We never met, but she's all I see at night Never met, but she's always on my mind Wanna give her the world and so much more🎶
MJ, standing beside him, caught his stiff posture and raised a brow. “Relax, Parker,” she teased lightly, taking a sip of her drink. “She’s dancing. You look like you’re about to short-circuit.”
Peter opened his mouth to respond, but before he could, the conversation of two nearby guys reached his ears. Their voices were casual but carried just enough edge to make his blood simmer.
“Should we go over there?” one of them said, glancing toward [Name] and Megan. “Talk to them for a bit?”
The other snickered, his tone flippant but bordering on slimy. “Oh, yeah. They’re definitely looking for some company tonight.”
Peter’s jaw clenched as his hand tightened around his glass, the faint sound of it creaking under the pressure. If he didn’t ease up soon, it’d shatter in his grip. MJ caught the motion, her eyes narrowing slightly as she turned toward him.
“Whoa there, Peter” she said, her voice low but steady. “You’re going to need that drink—not splinters.”
Peter forced himself to loosen his grip, though the tension in his shoulders didn’t fade. His gaze flicked back to [Name], who was still lost in the music, completely unaware of the commotion brewing behind her. He exhaled slowly, reminding himself to stay calm.
Peter exhaled slowly as he tipped his glass back, downing the rest of his drink in one go. The burn of the alcohol was a stark contrast to the lingering tightness in his chest. Setting the empty glass on the bar, he tapped it lightly, signalling the bartender for another.
“Something strong,” he muttered, his voice quiet but firm. He couldn’t get drunk, but he could get buzzed enough to quiet the storm in his head.
MJ stood beside him, watching him with an amused, knowing smirk. “I don’t think I’ve ever seen you this jealous, Parker,” she said, her tone edged with humour but laced with curiosity.
Peter sighed, leaning against the bar as he stared at the drink that was placed in front of him. “I never thought I’d feel like this, MJ,” he admitted, his voice softer now. “She’s been in my life such a short time, but… I like her. A lot.”
MJ grinned, giving him a quick nudge on the shoulder. “Good. Because—” She paused, her grin widening as her sharp gaze flicked toward the dance floor. “—she’s just spotted you. And she’s headed this way.”
Peter stiffened, his heart skipping as he turned to follow MJ’s line of sight. Sure enough, [Name] had locked eyes with him, her steps deliberate as she began making her way to the bar. The faint wind on the rooftop caught the edges of her dress, making it sway slightly, adding an almost ethereal quality to her appearance. Peter felt his throat tighten as he quickly ruffled his dishevelled hair, trying to look presentable despite his nerves.
------------------------------------------------------------
Meanwhile, Megan, who was now on the dance floor with Ned and [Name], had been chatting casually until her attention drifted toward the bar. She caught sight of MJ standing beside a guy in a black dress shirt with rolled sleeves—and her brow furrowed as recognition began to dawn.
“Wait a second,” Megan muttered, holding up her index finger in the universal sign for pause. Her gaze sharpened as she pointed discreetly toward the bar. "Ned, who’s that?”
Ned blinked, glancing at Peter before scratching the back of his neck sheepishly. “Um… that’s Peter,” he clarified, his voice uncertain as he realized the weight of what he was saying.
Megan narrowed her eyes slightly, her protective instincts kicking in. “Peter? As in that Peter?”
Ned nodded quickly, confirming it with a stammered, “Y-yeah. That’s him.”
For a moment, Megan’s lips pressed into a firm line, her expression skeptical as she eyed Peter from across the room. But before she could say anything further, [Name] had already made her move, crossing the club toward the bar. Megan exchanged a brief glance with Ned, raising her brows in warning as she whispered, “This better not go sideways.”
-------------------------------------------------------------------
🎶If you leave me God rest my soul If you stay here I'm no better off Bury me six feet down below And I'll be smiling, when I go 🎶
The music shifted, the sultry tones of Devil in a Dress by Teddy Swims filling the rooftop and wrapping around the crowd like a velvet ribbon. It had been nothing but fun—pure, unfiltered joy. Ned’s awkward moves had her laughing so hard her sides ached, and Megan’s playful energy only added to the carefree vibe. For the first time in what felt like forever, she wasn’t overthinking anything. She was just… happy.
But then Megan stopped mid-dance, her brow furrowing as she leaned toward Ned. “Who’s that?” she asked, her voice cutting through the music.
[Name] turned instinctively, following Megan’s gaze toward the bar. Her breath hitched the moment her eyes landed on him. Peter. He was here. Why was he here? Her heart skipped, and she froze for a moment, her mind racing.
And then she really saw him.
🎶Damned if I do Damned if I don't (damned if I don't, damned if I don't)🎶
The black dress shirt clung to his frame in all the right ways, the rolled-up sleeves revealing the toned muscles of his forearms. The top buttons were undone, offering a tantalizing glimpse of his chest, and the way the shirt fit across his shoulders made her flush despite herself. His hair was slightly dishevelled, swept back by the wind, and it only added to the effortless charm he seemed to carry without even trying.
Her cheeks warmed as she quickly looked away, her pulse quickening. Damn it, why did he have to look so… fucking good? She wasn’t supposed to feel like this—not after everything. But there he was, standing at the bar, and she couldn’t stop the flutter in her chest.
🎶She looked at me Then I sold my soul🎶
She watched as MJ leaned in to say something to him, and then he looked up. His gaze locked onto hers, and the tilt of his head, the way his hand came up to cover his mouth, the slight rise of his eyebrows—it was enough to make her knees weak. He looked her up and down again, his eyes lingering just long enough to send a shiver down her spine. She felt powerful, like she could command the entire room with just a glance.
She could say it was the booze making her feel this way, but she knew she’d be lying. It was him. It was always him.
🎶She's the devil She's the devil in a dress🎶
Deciding she wasn’t going to let this moment slip away, she straightened her posture, her confidence radiating as she began to make her way toward the bar. Her hips swayed seductively with each step, the fabric of her dress moving like liquid around her. The music seemed to sync perfectly with her movements, the rhythm guiding her as she closed the distance between them.
🎶I'm in peril She ripped my heart right out my chest🎶
Peter’s gaze never left her, his drink forgotten in his hand as he watched her approach. The look he gave her—the way his eyes softened yet burned with intensity—made her feel like she could climb him like a beanpole and never look back.
As [Name] reached the bar, the lyric, "I would give my life for one more kiss, from the devil, 'cause she's the devil in a dress," seemed to hang in the space between them. Her gaze locked onto Peter’s, and in that instant, both their eyes flickered to each other’s lips, the unspoken tension crackling like static electricity.
MJ, ever the observant one, smirked as she caught the moment. “I’ll give you two a moment alone,” she said, her voice light and teasing as she winked at Peter. Without waiting for a response, she turned and made her way toward the table where Megan and Ned had moved, leaving the two of them standing at the bar.
In the background, the faint voices of two men calling out to [Name] could be heard, their attempts to get her attention loud and persistent. But she didn’t even spare them a glance. All she could focus on was Peter—the way his disheveled hair caught the light, the way his shirt clung to him, the way his presence seemed to fill the space around her.
“What are you doing here?” she whispered, her voice barely audible over the music. Her heart was pounding, her pulse quickening as she waited for his response.
Peter leaned in slightly, his voice low and meant only for her. “Making a choice,” he murmured, his words carrying a weight that made her breath hitch.
Her heart fluttered in her chest, the world around them fading into a blur of music and lights. In that moment, it was just the two of them, the unspoken emotions between them louder than anything else.
[Name] shifted closer, her confidence unwavering as the warmth in her chest grew. The music seemed to fade slightly in the background as her focus centered entirely on Peter. Tilting her head slightly, she let her voice drop to a soft whisper. “MJ and Ned told me you sent me flowers… and that you lost your phone. Is that true?”
Her eyes drifted downward for a moment, her lashes brushing against her flushed cheeks before she looked back up at him through them. Peter’s breath hitched, and his hand came up again to cover his mouth, his pupils dilating as his gaze locked onto hers. He nodded, his voice lower than usual. “Yeah, I did. I—I hope you liked the flowers?”
[Name]’s lips curved into a gentle smile, and she let out a soft laugh. “They were beautiful… but there wasn’t a note with them. Hannah at work thought they were for her.” She shrugged lightly, trying to keep the tone casual, but the teasing edge in her voice was unmistakable.
Peter’s hand dropped slightly, his cheeks flushing as he let out a faint groan. “Of course. I didn’t even think—” He cut himself off, shaking his head slightly before meeting her eyes again. “That’s on me. I’m an idiot sometimes."
[Name] leaned against the bar, her confidence radiating as she ordered a fruit drink and two shots of strawberry sambuca. Peter, still standing beside her, ordered another drink as well, his nerves simmering just beneath the surface. When the shots arrived, she slid one across the bar to him, her fingers brushing his briefly. “Bottoms up,” she said with a playful smirk before throwing her head back to take her shot.
Peter couldn’t help but watch her, his gaze lingering as her hair fell back, exposing the curve of her neck. The way the light caught her skin, the effortless grace in her movements—it was mesmerizing. His eyes wandered, taking in every detail, until she lowered her glass and caught him in the act. Her lips curved into a knowing smile, but she didn’t say a word, letting the moment hang between them.
Instead, she reached out, her fingers trailing lightly over his arm, sending a jolt of electricity through him. Her touch was soft but deliberate, and when she looked up at him, her eyes locked onto his with an intensity that made his breath hitch. “I can’t do this if you keep running away, Peter,” she said, her voice low but firm, every word carrying weight.
Peter’s throat tightened, and he leaned in slightly, his voice just as quiet. “I’ve never run from you. Never you,” he said, his tone raw with sincerity. “I wish I could tell you more, but… I can’t.”
Her expression softened for a moment, but then she sighed, the tension easing as she pushed herself away from the bar. “Okay,” she said lightly, her lips curving into a flirty smile. “I’m going to go dance.” With that, she turned and walked back toward the dance floor, her hips swaying to the rhythm of the music as she disappeared into the crowd.
--------------------------------------------------------------
The hypnotic beat of Hallucinate by Dua Lipa pulsed through the rooftop, the music wrapping around Peter as he stood at the bar, his gaze fixed on [Name]. She had made her way back to the dance floor, her movements fluid and captivating as she twirled and swayed to the rhythm. Her hair swirled around her like a halo, catching the light with every turn, and Peter couldn’t tear his eyes away.
🎶Pocketful of honey and I'm ready to go No, I ain't got no money, but I'm letting you know That I'ma love you like a fool Breathe you in 'til I hallucinate, mm🎶
He threw back the shot in front of him, the burn barely registering as he downed as much of his drink as he could. His mind was made up—he wasn’t going to stand on the side-lines anymore. He was going after her.
🎶Body make you silly, make you do what I want Oh baby, I can make it pretty, I can string you along But I'ma love you like a fool🎶
Pushing through the crowd, Peter maneuvered his way toward the dance floor, his eyes locked on [Name]. She was radiant, her hips swaying effortlessly to the beat, her laughter blending with the music. The strobing lights of the club danced across her skin, illuminating her curves and making Peter's heart skip a beat. But then he noticed a random man edging closer to her, clearly ready to make his move. Peter's jaw tightened, and without hesitation, he swooped in before the man could reach her.
Reaching for her hand, Peter twirled her gracefully, the motion spinning her until her back was pressed against his front. The music seemed to fade for a moment as he leaned down, his voice low and meant only for her. "I'll dance with you too," he whispered, his words carrying a quiet intensity. His breath caressed her ear, sending a shiver down her spine.
🎶No, I couldn't live without your touch No, I could never have too much I'll breathe you in forever and ever Hallucinate🎶
[Name] froze for a heartbeat, her cheeks flushing as she registered his presence. The warmth of his voice, the closeness of his body - it was enough to make her feel like she was melting into him. Peter noticed her reaction, the way her breath hitched slightly, and it only fuelled the fire in his chest. He pulled her closer, his hips swaying in time with hers, their bodies moving in perfect sync.
As they danced, Peter's hands roamed over her hips, his fingers tracing the curve of her waist. [Name] felt a surge of excitement, her skin tingling under his touch. She leaned back into him, her head resting on his shoulder, and let the music take over. The beat was pulsating, the rhythm driving them closer together.
🎶I hallucinate when you call my name Got stars in my eyes And they don't fade when you come my way I'm losin' my m-m-m-mind, m-m-m-mind🎶
Peter's lips brushed against her ear, his voice low and husky. "You're... amazing," he whispered, his words tumbling out in a breathless tone. "You're so beautiful," he added, his eyes roaming over her face, drinking in the sight of her. He looked at her eyes, then her lips, his gaze tracing the curve of her mouth.
As he spoke, [Name] felt a shiver run down her spine. She turned her head, her eyes meeting Peter's, and for a moment, they just stared at each other, the music and the crowd fading into the background. Without thinking, she reached out and brushed her hand against him, her fingers grazing the peak of his bare chest. "You're not so bad yourself," she whispered, her voice barely audible over the music.
Peter's eyes locked onto hers, his gaze burning with intensity. He felt a surge of excitement at her touch, his heart racing with anticipation. He leaned in closer, his lips inches from hers, and for a moment, they just hovered there, the tension between them building to a fever pitch.
But the spell was broken in an instant.
A big, burly man stumbled through the crowd, nearly knocking into [Name]. Peter’s reflexes kicked in without hesitation, his arm shooting out to pull her out of harm’s way. She gasped softly, her eyes wide as she looked up at him, a little shocked by how quick he’d reacted.
Peter turned his attention to the man, his voice sharp but calm as he quipped, “Hey, watch where you’re going. Maybe pay a little more attention next time.”
The man, clearly irritated and emboldened by whatever he’d been drinking, scowled at Peter. “Why don’t you fuck off?” he snapped, his tone aggressive.
Before Peter could respond, Megan, Ned, and MJ appeared on the dance floor, their presence a united front. Megan stepped forward, her expression hard as she crossed her arms. “Take a hike,” she said firmly, her voice leaving no room for argument.
MJ chimed in, her tone dripping with sarcasm. “Yeah, because clearly, you’ve got places to be that aren’t here.”
Ned, though less intimidating, nodded quickly in agreement. “Yeah, uh, you should probably go.”
The man glared at them for a moment, muttering something under his breath before throwing his hands up in defeat. “Whatever,” he grumbled, turning and disappearing back into the crowd.
As the tension eased, [Name] turned back to Peter, her heart still racing from the sudden interruption. His arm was still around her, and for a moment, she couldn’t help but feel a sense of safety in his presence. Peter, meanwhile, was acutely aware of how close she was, his gaze softening as he looked down at her.
🎶Let's go dancin' in the dark Don't wait, you can push to start Lose control Kill me slowly with your kiss🎶
[Name], still feeling the warmth of Peter's arm and the intensity of his gaze, let out a soft breath, her nerves tangled with the undeniable pull she felt toward him. The air was thick with tension, and she could feel the weight of his eyes on her, like a gentle caress on her skin. She straightened slightly, brushing her hair back as she said, "I... I need to go to the bathroom." Her voice was steady, but the flush in her cheeks gave her away, and the slight tremble of her lips betrayed her growing arousal.
🎶Wrap me 'round your fingertips Damn, I need another hit Make me lose my mind🎶
Peter caught on instantly, the corner of his lips tugging into a cheeky grin. "Alright," he said, his tone light yet teasing, as if he knew exactly why she was stepping away. His gaze lingered on her, his eyes burning with a quiet intensity that made her skin prickle with awareness. He watched as she turned, the sway of her dress catching his attention once again, and he felt a surge of desire run through him. The way the fabric hugged her curves, the way her hips swayed with each step, it was all so tantalizingly familiar, and yet, so utterly new.
As [Name] disappeared into the crowd toward the bathroom, Peter found himself surrounded by MJ, Ned, and Megan at the edge of the dance floor. Megan’s gaze was sharp as she sized him up, crossing her arms before speaking in her signature blunt tone. “Alright, Peter. Let me make this clear—if you let her down one more time, you won’t have any balls left once I’m done with you.”
MJ immediately burst out laughing, nearly spilling her drink as she doubled over in amusement. “God, Megan! You do not hold back, do you?” she teased, her grin widening as she looked at Peter’s stunned expression.
Peter blinked, caught off guard and momentarily at a loss for words. Ned, sensing the tension, raised his hands in a placating gesture. “Hey, hey—let’s not go full threats here, okay? Peter’s not that bad…” His voice trailed off as Megan’s pointed look silenced him.
Still smirking, Megan softened slightly, shrugging as she added, “You suit each other, though. Don’t screw it up.”
Peter finally found his voice, his cheeks flushing slightly as he stammered, “Uh, yeah—got it. Message received.” He glanced toward the crowd where [Name] had gone, his thoughts swirling as Megan’s words stuck with him.
--------------------------------------------------------
The muffled bass of the music followed [Name] into the bathroom, but the moment the door closed behind her, the noise softened, leaving her with the quiet hum of her own thoughts. She stepped up to the sink, gripping the edges of the cool porcelain as she stared at her reflection in the mirror. Her cheeks were flushed, her skin warm, and her heart was still racing from the intensity of the moment with Peter. She could feel the thrum of her pulse in her neck, and her breasts felt heavy, as if they were aching for attention.
Letting out a shaky breath, she turned on the tap, letting the cold water run for a moment before cupping her hands beneath it. She dabbed the water onto her neck and chest, the coolness a welcome relief against the heat that had ignited inside her. It wasn’t just the dancing or the drinks—it was him. The way he looked at her, the way his presence seemed to fill every corner of the room, it was overwhelming in the best and most frustrating way. She felt like she was melting under his gaze, like her entire body was responding to his every move.
As she patted her skin dry, her fingers brushed against her lips, and she felt a sudden surge of awareness. She reached for her lip gloss, reapplying it with a steady hand, the familiar ritual a comforting distraction from the turmoil inside her. She fluffed her hair, the soft strands framing her face, and for a moment, she just stared at herself, her eyes searching for a glimpse of the woman she used to be. But all she saw was a stranger, a woman who was drawn to Peter with a force she couldn't explain.
She closed her eyes, taking a deep breath, and let the sensation wash over her. She could feel the weight of her desire, the ache in her body that seemed to grow with every passing moment. It was as if she was teetering on the edge of something, something that could change everything. And all she could think about was Peter, his eyes, his voice, his touch. She felt a shiver run down her spine, and she knew she had to get back out there, to face him again, to see where this night would take them.
The bathroom door swung open, and MJ and Megan stepped in, their energy immediately filling the space. Megan smirked as she leaned against the wall, crossing her arms. “Alright, spill. That guy out there? He’s cute. And, for the record, I did threaten to cut his balls off if he let you down again.”
[Name] froze for a moment before bursting into laughter, her cheeks flushing as she turned to Megan. “You didn’t!” she exclaimed, her voice a mix of disbelief and amusement.
“Oh, I absolutely did,” Megan replied, her grin widening. “Had to make sure he knew what’s at stake.”
MJ chuckled, shaking her head as she stepped closer to the mirror to check her lipstick. “You know, I’ve never seen Peter look at anyone the way he looks at you,” she said casually, her tone softening. “He’s smitten. Completely and utterly.”
[Name] felt her cheeks warm again, her heart fluttering at MJ’s words. She glanced at her reflection, the flush in her skin betraying the calm she was trying to maintain. “You really think so?” she asked quietly, her voice tinged with curiosity.
MJ turned to her, her expression sincere. “Oh, I know so. Trust me, I’ve known him long enough to tell.”
Megan nodded in agreement, her smirk softening into a genuine smile. “You’ve got him wrapped around your finger, girl. Don’t let him off easy.”
[Name] laughed again, the tension in her chest easing as she felt the support of her friends. With one last glance in the mirror, she straightened her posture, smoothing her dress. “Alright,” she said with a grin. “Let’s get back out there.”
The night carried on with laughter and music, the group fully immersed in the joy of the moment. They danced together as a group, their movements carefree and uncoordinated but full of life. Every now and then, Peter and [Name] would brush up against each other, the fleeting touches sending sparks that neither could ignore.
MJ was a bit tipsy, her laughter louder and more frequent, while Megan was fully drunk, swaying to the beat with a wide grin. But it was Ned who had truly let loose, drunker than a skunk and stumbling over his own feet as he tried to keep up with the music. His usual awkwardness had melted away, replaced by a hilariously uninhibited version of himself that had everyone in stitches.
As the night wound down, MJ glanced at Ned, who was now leaning heavily against a nearby table. “Alright, I’ll take him home,” she said, her words slightly slurred but still coherent.
[Name] shook her head with a small smile. “He lives across from me. I’ll make sure he gets home.”
Before she could take a step, Peter jumped in, his hand lightly brushing her arm. “I’ll help,” he offered, already moving to prop Ned up as the latter slumped even further.
Ned blinked blearily, his head lolling to the side as he mumbled something completely nonsensical. “The… the moon is made of cheese, but only on Tuesdays,” he slurred, his words drawing a burst of laughter from MJ and Megan.
Peter chuckled, shaking his head as he adjusted his grip on Ned. “Alright, buddy, let’s get you home before you start debating the physics of space dairy.”
[Name] couldn’t help but laugh as she moved to help steady Ned from the other side. Together, she and Peter guided him toward the exit, their steps in sync as they navigated the still-buzzing club.
They slid into the back of the cab, Peter first, helping a heavily slumping Ned into the middle seat before [Name] climbed in last. She leaned forward to give the driver her address, the cab jerking slightly as it pulled away from the club and onto the quiet night streets.
Ned, in his thoroughly inebriated state, began spewing the most random string of facts and thoughts. “You know,” he slurred, his head bobbing forward before Peter gently steadied him. “There’s a fish that can walk. Like, on actual land. Can you believe it? Fish. Walking!” He paused, squinting out the window. “But only on Thursdays… I think.”
Peter let out a low chuckle, glancing over at [Name], who was stifling her laughter behind her hand. “Walking fish? Thursdays? Is he onto something, or have we officially lost him?” Peter teased, shaking his head.
[Name] giggled. “Pretty sure he’s gone,” she replied softly, her voice warm with amusement.
Peter let out a low chuckle, glancing over at [Name], who was stifling her laughter behind her hand. “Walking fish? Thursdays? Is he onto something, or have we officially lost him?” Peter teased, shaking his head.
[Name] giggled. “Pretty sure he’s gone,” she replied softly, her voice warm with amusement.
As Ned rambled on about the “physics of walking fish,” Peter and [Name] found themselves stealing glances at each other. The dim glow of the streetlights illuminated her face, and every so often, their hands would brush behind Ned’s headrest, the soft, fleeting contact leaving a charge neither of them could ignore.
At one point, their fingers lingered, the subtle yet deliberate touch sparking a quiet smile between them. Peter’s lips curved ever so slightly as he glanced at her, his eyes softening in the low light. [Name] returned the smile, her chest fluttering in response to the warmth radiating from him.
Meanwhile, Ned, blissfully oblivious to the silent exchange happening over his head, leaned back and announced, “You know what? Spiders are just tiny acrobats with too many legs. Bet they’ve got a union.” His eyes closed mid-sentence, a content grin spreading across his face.
Peter snorted softly, shaking his head as he steadied Ned once more. But even as he tended to his friend, his attention kept drifting back to [Name], their unspoken connection growing stronger with each passing moment.
The cab pulled up to the complex, the quiet hum of the engine breaking the rhythm of Ned’s drunken ramblings. Peter carefully coaxed him out of the car, the task proving more difficult than expected as Ned dug his heels in, mumbling, “No, no—I need to talk to the Spider Union. Maybe… maybe Spider-Man knows about the Spider Union.”
Peter froze for a split second, his throat tightening as he tried to hold back a laugh. Ned turned to him with wide, bleary eyes, leaning heavily against him. “Hey, Pete… you know about the Spider Union right? It’s… like really important.”
[Name], standing beside them with an amused smirk, raised a brow and said, “Ned, that’s Peter. Not Spider-Man.”
Peter’s eyes widened, the perfect embodiment of a deer caught in headlights. He quickly plastered a nervous laugh on his face, clamping his hand over Ned’s mouth in a bid to silence him. “Ahaha, drunk talk! Nothing to see here,” he joked, his voice straining with the effort to sound casual.
[Name] tilted her head, giving him a curious look. Though she thought his reaction was odd, she let it slide, turning her attention back to Ned. “Come on, Ned. Time to get you to bed.” She smiled softly, looping an arm around her friend’s other side to help steady him.
Together, she and Peter stumbled up the stairs, navigating the hallway with a mix of laughter and effort as Ned kept muttering nonsensical phrases. They finally reached Ned’s apartment, unlocking the door and guiding him to his bed. He was barely coherent by this point, slumping onto the mattress with an exaggerated sigh.
“Okay, let’s get you comfortable,” [Name] said, crouching down to slip off Ned’s shoes and tugging off his coat. Peter helped steady him on the bed, watching as [Name] worked with quiet care. She straightened, brushing her hands together before turning to Peter. “Can you grab him two glasses of water and some painkillers for the morning? I think that’ll help him.”
Peter nodded, his movements quick and efficient as he made his way into the kitchen. Familiar with the layout, he returned moments later with the requested items. Setting them down on the bedside table, he leaned back against the wall, his gaze fixed on [Name] as she gently roused Ned. “Come on, hun. Take some water. It’ll help you hydrate.”
Ned opened one eye, his expression goofy as he mumbled, “You’re like… my fairy godmother. But cooler.” His words trailed off as he took a sip of water, his smile widening despite his drunken state.
Peter chuckled softly, the corners of his lips tugging upward as he watched [Name] care for Ned with such ease and patience. She was incredible—strong, kind, and radiating warmth in every little action.
[Name] adjusted Ned’s blanket with a small smile, her gaze softening as she checked to make sure he was comfortable. “Alright, the painkillers are on the side,” she said gently, motioning to the glass of water and the small packet Peter had placed earlier. “We should go and let him sleep this off.”
Peter nodded, his gaze lingering on [Name] as she straightened up. But just as they began to move toward the door, Ned stirred, his voice a sleepy mumble. “The Spider Union… they’ll know what to do. Maybe Spidey has… a secret handshake or something…”
[Name] stopped, glancing back at him with an incredulous look before bursting into laughter. She shook her head, her hair bouncing lightly with each ripple of her laughter, the sound filling the room with warmth. “Oh my god, Ned,” she said through her giggles. “What even goes on in that head of yours?”
Peter couldn’t help but smile, his heart swelling as he watched her. The way her laughter lit up the room, the way she cared for Ned—it was impossible not to be captivated. She was unlike anyone he’d ever known, and in that moment, Peter was completely and utterly smitten.
As [Name] turned to Peter, a soft smile still playing on her lips, she reached out and grabbed his hand, her fingers wrapping around his. The warmth of her touch sent a spark through him, catching him off guard for a split second. Without missing a beat, she gave his hand a gentle tug, pulling him toward the door. “Come on,” she said, her voice light and playful.
Peter chuckled, the sound soft and genuine as he let her lead the way. The ease with which she guided him only made his smile grow, his heart feeling lighter with every step they took together.
They stepped out of Ned’s apartment, Peter carefully closing the door behind them. The hallway was quiet, the muffled sounds of the city barely audible through the walls. Together, they took the short walk to her apartment, their steps light and unhurried. The air between them was charged, the tension palpable as they moved closer to her door.
When they reached her door, [Name] turned to face him, her back resting lightly against the wooden frame. The dim hallway light cast a soft glow around her, highlighting the curve of her lips and the way her hair framed her face. For a moment, Peter just stood there, his hands in his pockets, his eyes locked onto hers. The intensity from earlier lingered between them, not as overwhelming but still unmistakably present. His gaze softened as he took in every detail of her, the faint curve of her lips, the way her breath hitched slightly.
The silence stretched between them, the air thick with anticipation. Peter's heart pounded in his chest, and he could feel the heat radiating from her body, drawing him closer. He took a step forward, his eyes never leaving hers, and she mirrored his movement, her fingers brushing the edge of the doorframe. There was something in his gaze—warmth, admiration, and the slightest trace of hesitation—that made her chest flutter.
[Name] let out a small breath, her eyes flickering to his lips and then back to his eyes. The tension between them was electric, the space between them seeming to shrink with every passing second. Peter's breath hitched as he felt the pull, the undeniable attraction that was drawing them together. He reached out, his hand gently cupping her cheek, his thumb brushing softly against her skin.
She leaned into his touch, her eyes fluttering closed for a moment before opening again, her gaze locked onto his. The world around them faded away, leaving only the two of them, their hearts beating in sync, their breaths mingling in the air between them. Neither of them moved, neither of them spoke, but the tension was building, the anticipation growing with every passing second.
Slowly, almost imperceptibly, they began to lean in, their lips inches apart, the heat of their breath mingling. The first touch was soft, a gentle brush of lips against lips, a tentative exploration. But as they deepened the kiss, their tongues met, fighting for control, each trying to dominate the other. The kiss grew more intense, more passionate, their breaths coming in short, ragged gasps. Peter's hands roamed over her body, tracing the curve of her waist, the small of her back, pulling her closer to him. [Name] moaned softly into his mouth, her fingers tangling in his hair, her body pressing against his.
They broke apart for a moment, their foreheads resting against each other, their breaths coming in short, panting gasps. Their eyes met, and in that moment, they saw the raw, unbridled lust that burned within each other. The world around them faded away, leaving only the two of them, their bodies entwined, their hearts racing with desire. The tension between them was palpable, the air thick with anticipation, and neither of them could resist the pull any longer. They crashed back together, their lips locking in a fierce, passionate kiss, their bodies pressing against the door to her apartment, lost in the heat of the moment.
They broke apart, their breaths ragged and hearts pounding. [Name] took a shaky step back, her eyes locked onto Peter's, the lust in his gaze sending a shiver down her spine. She turned to her door, fumbling with her keys, her hands trembling with anticipation. "Are you coming in?" she asked, her voice barely above a whisper.
Peter took a few steps towards her, his eyes never leaving hers. In one swift motion, he picked her up, his hands gripping her thighs as she gasped and wrapped her legs around him to stabilize herself. She let out a soft moan, her arms wrapping around his neck, her fingers tangling in his hair. Peter pushed into her apartment, and she threw her clutch and keys somewhere inside, not caring where they landed.
As soon as they were inside, Peter's lips found her neck, trailing hot, open-mouthed kisses along her skin. [Name] moaned his name, her head falling back, giving him better access. Peter kicked the door shut with his foot, the sound echoing through the apartment. He made his way to the couch in a few short strides, his lips never leaving her skin.
He lowered her onto the couch, his body covering hers, his hips pressing against her. She could feel his hardness, and it sent a wave of desire crashing through her. Her hands roamed over his back, her nails digging into his skin, urging him closer. Peter's lips found hers again, his tongue exploring her mouth, his hips grinding against hers. She moaned into his mouth, her body arching against his, desperate for more.
Peter's hands roamed over her body, tracing the curve of her breasts, the dip of her waist, the flare of her hips. He broke the kiss, his lips trailing down her neck, his teeth nipping at her skin. She gasped, her fingers tangling in his hair, holding him to her. He looked up at her, his eyes dark with desire, and she could see the question in his gaze. She nodded, her breath hitching as she gave him the silent permission he sought. With a growl, he claimed her lips again, his hands roaming over her body, exploring every inch of her. The world around them faded away, leaving only the two of them, their bodies entwined, their hearts racing with desire.
Peter pulled away from her lips, his breath ragged as he whispered, "Fuck, [Name]." The words were laced with a mix of awe and desperation. Before he could say anything more, she pulled him back to her, her hands gripping the back of his head, her fingers tangling in his hair. "More~," she whispered, her voice husky with desire.
As their lips met again, Peter's mind flashed back to the night they had truly met for the first time. He remembered the way her head had thrown back against the wall, the sounds of her moans echoing through the alley, the way she had smelled—sweet and intoxicating. The memory sent a surge of heat through his body, and he deepened the kiss, his lips and tongue becoming more insistent, more demanding. He never thought he'd get to have her again like this, and the realization fueled his desire.
His hands roamed over her body with renewed urgency, his touch becoming rougher, more possessive. He gripped her hips, pulling her closer to him, his body pressing against hers. She moaned into his mouth, her nails digging into his back, urging him on. The sound of her pleasure sent a shiver down his spine, and he broke the kiss, his lips trailing down her neck, his teeth nipping at her skin.
As he stood up to remove his shirt, she sat up, her eyes locked onto his, her breath coming in short, ragged gasps. He tossed his shirt aside, his chest heaving with each breath, his muscles taut and defined. She reached out, her fingers tracing the lines of his abs, her touch light and teasing. He groaned, his hands gripping her thighs, his fingers digging into her skin.
She looked up at him, her eyes filled with lust and longing, and he knew that he was lost. He leaned down, his lips capturing hers in a fierce, passionate kiss, his body covering hers as he lowered her back onto the couch. The world around them faded away, leaving only the two of them, their bodies entwined, their hearts racing with desire. The memory of their first encounter fuelled his passion, and he was determined to make this night unforgettable.
She pushed him back slightly, her voice breathy and commanding. "The bedroom," she said, her eyes locked onto his, the lust in her gaze unmistakable.
Peter looked at her, his chest heaving with each ragged breath. "Where?" he asked, his voice low and husky.
She turned and pointed the way, her eyes never leaving his. Peter stood up, pulling her up with him, his hands gripping her hips. She pushed past him, turning to look at him over her shoulder, her fingers fluffing her hair in a playful, seductive gesture. "You gonna stand there and stare at me, Peter?" she teased, her voice laced with amusement and desire.
With a playful smirk, she turned and walked away, her heels clicking against the floor, her hips swaying seductively. Peter groaned aloud, the sound low and primal, and chased after her. She glanced back, seeing him hot on her heels, and laughed, the sound light and carefree. The chase was exhilarating, the anticipation building with each step.
She reached her bedroom, turning to look at him just as he caught up to her. He laughed a little, his eyes sparkling with mischief and desire. "Caught you," he said, his voice low and triumphant.
She smiled, her eyes shining with excitement and lust. "And what are you going to do with me now?" she asked, her voice a sultry whisper.
Peter's eyes darkened, his gaze roaming over her body, taking in every curve, every line. He stepped closer, his hands reaching out to cup her face, his thumbs brushing against her cheeks. "I'm going to make you mine," he whispered, his voice filled with determination and desire.
She leaned into his touch, her eyes fluttering closed for a moment before opening again, her gaze locked onto his. "Then what are you waiting for?" she asked, her voice a challenge, a dare.
With a growl, Peter claimed her lips, his body pressing against hers, his hands roaming over her body, exploring every inch of her. She moaned into his mouth, her fingers tangling in his hair, holding him to her.
She ran her hands over his toned abs, her fingers tracing the lines of his muscles, feeling the heat of his skin beneath her touch. Peter's hands roamed over her exposed back, his fingers brushing against her neck, sending shivers down her spine. The sensation of his touch was electric, and she couldn't help but moan softly, her body pressing closer to his.
They moved together, their bodies in sync, as they stumbled towards the bed. Peter's lips never left hers, his tongue exploring her mouth, his teeth nipping at her lips. She could feel his hardness pressing against her, and it sent a wave of desire crashing through her. She wrapped her legs around his waist, pulling him closer, her hips grinding against his.
They fell onto the bed, their bodies entwined, their breaths coming in short, ragged gasps. Peter's hands roamed over her body, tracing the curve of her breasts, the dip of her waist, the flare of her hips. She moaned, her fingers tangling in his hair, holding him to her. The sensation of his touch was intoxicating, and she couldn't get enough of him.
Peter's lips trailed down her neck, his teeth nipping at her skin, his tongue soothing the sting. She gasped, her body arching against his, her hips grinding against him. He groaned, his hands gripping her hips, pulling her closer to him. They began to move together, their bodies dry humping, the friction sending waves of pleasure through them.
[Name] moaned, her head falling back, her eyes closed, lost in the sensation of their bodies moving together. Peter's lips found hers again, his tongue exploring her mouth, his hips grinding against hers. The world around them faded away, leaving only the two of them, their bodies entwined, their hearts racing with desire. The sensation of their bodies moving together was intoxicating, and they couldn't get enough of each other. The room was filled with the sound of their moans, their breaths, and the soft rustle of the sheets as they moved together in a dance as old as time.
Peter's breath hitched as he looked down at her, his eyes filled with a mix of desire and desperation. "Fuck sakes, [Name]," he whispered, his voice rough with need.
She looked up at him, her eyes wide with curiosity. "What?" she asked, her voice soft and breathy.
Peter's gaze intensified, his voice low and urgent. "If you don't want this, you need to say it now. Because I can't control myself around you."
She smiled, her eyes never leaving his. "I don't want you to control yourself, Peter. I want you feral. That's how you make me feel."
With a swift movement, she pushed him off, her hands moving to the two delicate laces around her neck. She untied them, her eyes locked onto his, a playful smirk on her lips. As the laces fell away, her dress loosened and began to slide down her body, revealing her curves inch by inch. Peter's breath hitched as the dress pooled at her feet, leaving her in nothing but a black lace thong and her heels.
Peter growled, the sound low and primal, as he jumped up to get to her. She looked him dead in the eye, her voice commanding. "Take your jeans and pants off," she said, her tone leaving no room for argument.
As he quickly complied, she slid her thong down her legs, kicking them off to the side. The room was filled with the sound of their ragged breaths, the anticipation building with each passing second. Peter's eyes roamed over her body, taking in every curve, every line, his desire growing with each moment.
She stepped closer to him, her hands reaching out to trace the lines of his chest, her fingers brushing against his skin. He groaned, his hands gripping her hips, pulling her closer to him. The world around them faded away, leaving only the two of them, their bodies entwined, their hearts racing with desire. The feral energy between them was electric, and they were both ready to surrender to the passion that had been building for so long.
In that instant, Peter pulled her into another fierce kiss, his lips claiming hers with a hunger that matched her own. As she stepped forward, she felt his cock brush against her stomach, the sensation of his precum smearing against her skin sending a shiver of anticipation down her spine. The kiss deepened, their tongues dancing together, their breaths mingling in a desperate, passionate exchange.
Peter pulled back slightly, his voice hoarse with desire. "Are you sure?" he asked, his eyes searching hers for any hint of hesitation.
She didn't respond with words. Instead, she kissed along his neck, her lips soft and teasing. She pushed his head up gently, her tongue tracing a small, wet trail up to his ear. "Sit like a good boy," she whispered, her voice sultry and commanding.
Peter was taken aback but complied, sitting down on the edge of the bed. His eyes widened with surprise and curiosity. "What are you thinking?" he asked, his voice a mix of anticipation and confusion.
She looked at him, a seductive smile playing on her lips. "I'm going to lick you like a lollipop," she said, emphasizing the "pop" with a playful lilt in her voice. Her eyes never left his as she slowly sank to her knees in front of him, her hands resting on his thighs.
Peter's breath hitched, his body tensing with anticipation. He watched as she leaned in, her tongue flicking out to trace the sensitive skin just above his cock. She looked up at him, her eyes locked onto his, as she took him into her mouth, her lips wrapping around him tightly. He groaned, his head falling back, his hands gripping the bedsheets as waves of pleasure washed over him.
She took her time, her tongue swirling around him, her lips moving up and down his shaft in a slow, torturous rhythm. She could feel his body responding to her touch, his hips bucking slightly as he tried to control himself. She moaned softly, the vibration sending shivers down his spine, and he knew he was lost in her touch, her control, her desire. The room was filled with the sound of their ragged breaths, the soft moans of pleasure, and the wet, sucking sounds of her mouth on him.
She continued to suck him off, setting a steady, rhythmic pace. Her mouth worked him expertly, her lips and tongue driving him wild. Whatever her mouth couldn't reach, she used her hand to twist and play with his balls, her fingers gentle yet firm, sending waves of pleasure coursing through his body. Peter threw his head back, unable to help the groans that escaped his lips. "Fuck, [Name]," he gasped, his voice hoarse with desire. "You're gonna make me lose it."
She looked up at him, her eyes meeting his, and she could see the dark look in his eyes, the brown of his irises almost completely swallowed by the black of his pupils, blown wide with lust. She pulled away with a pop, licking her lips seductively. "You taste so fucking good," she purred, her voice low and sultry. Before he could respond, she went straight back to sucking him off, her mouth and hand working in perfect sync.
Peter's hands fisted in her hair, his knuckles turning white as he tried to maintain control. He could feel the pleasure building, his body tensing with each stroke of her tongue, each twist of her hand. He wanted to buck into her mouth, to take control, but he forced himself to let her set the pace, to surrender to her touch.
"[Name]~," he groaned, his hips lifting slightly off the bed. "Your mouth is incredible. You're driving me crazy."
She moaned around him, the vibration sending shivers down his spine. She could feel his body responding to her touch, his cock hardening even more in her mouth. She increased the pressure, her hand and mouth working in tandem, her tongue swirling around the sensitive tip.
Peter's breath hitched, his body tensing as he tried to hold back. "I'm close," he warned, his voice a low growl. "So close, [Name]."
She pulled away slightly, her eyes locked onto his, a smirk playing on her lips. "What do you want, Peter?" she teased, her voice sultry and challenging.
Before she could react, Peter pulled her off him, flipping her so that she was on her back with him on top of her at the edge of the bed. The thought of tasting her again drove him wild, and he couldn't help but groan into her neck. "I'm going to ravish you," he growled, his voice thick with desire.
She laughed breathlessly, her body arching against his. "Promises, promises," she teased, her eyes shining with excitement and lust.
Peter started trailing kisses down her neck, his lips and tongue leaving a trail of fire in their wake. He gave her breasts attention, his mouth and tongue teasing one nipple while his hand played with the other. He teased her nipples, sucking and nipping gently, feeling her body respond to his touch. She threw her head back, moaning his name, her sensitivity to his touch evident in every shiver and gasp.
"Peter," she moaned, her fingers tangling in his hair, holding him to her. "Yes, right there."
He continued his exploration, his lips and tongue moving lower, tracing a path down her stomach. He could feel her body trembling beneath him, her breath coming in short, ragged gasps. He looked up at her, his eyes dark with lust, and she could see the raw desire that burned within him.
"Tell me what you want, [Name]," he whispered, his voice low and commanding.
She looked down at him, her eyes locked onto his, her voice breathy and desperate. "I want you to taste me, Peter. I want you to make me come with your mouth."
With a growl, Peter moved lower, his lips and tongue finding her most sensitive spot. He started slowly, his tongue gently tracing her folds, teasing and exploring. He knew her body better than she realized, having practiced this art as Spider-Man, learning to play her like a violin. He knew which strings to pull, which notes to hit to make her sing.
He parted her folds with his fingers, his tongue delving deeper, licking and sucking with expert precision. She gasped, her hips bucking slightly, but he held her down, his strong hands gripping her thighs. He looked up at her, his eyes locked onto hers, and she could see the determination in his gaze.
"Let go, [Name]," he whispered, his voice low and commanding. "Let me taste you."
She moaned, her head falling back, her body arching against his mouth. He continued his assault, his tongue swirling and flicking, his fingers gently teasing her entrance. He could feel her body responding, her breath coming in short, ragged gasps, her hips bucking against his mouth.
She could feel it building, a wave of pleasure crashing over her, threatening to consume her entirely. Her body trembled, her muscles tensing as she teetered on the edge of ecstasy. And then, with a cry that was half surprise and half sheer bliss, she came, her body convulsing wildly against his mouth. The intensity of her orgasm hit her like a tsunami, sweeping her away in a torrent of sensation. She didn't know what hit her, didn't know where she ended and the pleasure began. All she knew was the overwhelming, all-consuming wave of ecstasy that crashed over her, again and again.
Peter continued to lick and suck, drawing out her orgasm, his own desire growing with each moan and gasp that escaped her lips. He could feel her body shaking, her breath coming in short, ragged gasps as she rode the waves of pleasure. He looked up at her, his eyes locked onto hers, and he could see the raw, unbridled passion that burned within her.
As she came down from her high, he looked up at her, a satisfied smile on his lips. "Good girl," he said, his voice low and husky.
She looked down at him, her eyes shining with lust and surprise. "Peter," she whispered.
He kissed her again, his lips soft and gentle against hers. As he pulled back slightly, he saw her pupils wide and blown with lust, her lips swollen from their passionate kisses. "You're so beautiful," he murmured, his voice filled with awe and desire.
They started to grind against each other, the friction sending waves of pleasure through their bodies. His cock brushed against her clit, the sensation making her gasp. She could feel how warm and wet she was, her body aching for more of him. "I'm so sensitive," she moaned, her hips bucking against his.
Peter groaned, his voice a low rumble. "You'll be the death of me," he whispered, his cock sliding up and down her slit, teasing her entrance but not quite giving her what she needed.
With each pass, he caught at her entrance, making her whimper with anticipation. She grew frustrated with the teasing, her body desperate for more. Wrapping a leg around his hip, she pulled him closer, the movement pushing his cock into her just a bit. They both moaned at the sudden intrusion, the sensation electric and intense.
"Peter," she gasped, her nails digging into his back. "Please, don't tease me. I need you inside me."
He looked down at her, his eyes dark with lust. "Is that what you want?" he asked, his voice low and commanding. "You want me to fill you up?"
She nodded, her breath coming in short, ragged gasps. "Yes," she whispered. "Please, Peter. I need you."
With a growl, he thrust into her, his cock filling her completely. They both moaned, their bodies fitting together perfectly, their breaths coming in sync. He started to move, his hips thrusting against hers, his cock sliding in and out of her with a delicious rhythm.
She wrapped her other leg around him, her heels digging into his back, urging him deeper, faster. He obliged, his thrusts becoming more powerful, more insistent. The room was filled with the sound of their moans, their breaths, and the wet, slapping sounds of their bodies coming together.
"Fuck, [Name]," he groaned, his voice strained with effort. "You feel so good. So tight. So wet."
Peter, driven by a primal urge, wanted to see her take control. "I want to see you on top," he growled, his voice thick with desire. With a swift movement, he rolled them over so that she was straddling him, his cock still buried deep inside her. The shift in position pushed him in a bit deeper, and she moaned, her eyes fluttering open to meet his.
"Fuck, you feel incredible," he swore, his hands gripping her hips as he felt her contract around him. The sensation was electric, and he couldn't help but groan at the intensity.
She didn't move for a moment, savoring the feeling of him deep inside her. Peter begged, his voice hoarse with need. "Please, [Name], move. I need to feel you."
She began to grind her hips down, the motion slow and deliberate, driving him wild. The sensation of her moving against him, her wetness coating his cock, was almost too much to bear. He could feel every inch of her, every ripple of pleasure that coursed through her body.
As she gained momentum, her grinding turned into a steady bounce, her body rising and falling with a rhythm that matched his own desperate need. Peter's hips met her pace, thrusting upward to meet her downward motion, their bodies slamming together in a frenzy of passion.
He watched as her breasts bounced with each movement, her nipples hard and erect. The sight was almost too much for him to handle, and he threw his head back, a groan escaping his lips. "You're so fucking sexy," he gasped, his eyes locked onto hers. "So beautiful. I could spend all day like this, forever even."
She leaned forward, her hands pressing against his chest for support, her hair cascading around them like a curtain. The change in angle allowed him to hit even deeper, and she cried out, her body convulsing with pleasure. "Peter," she moaned, her voice a mix of desperation and ecstasy. "You feel so good inside me."
He reached up, his hands cupping her breasts, his thumbs circling her nipples. The added stimulation sent waves of pleasure through her body, and she increased her pace, her hips moving faster, her breaths coming in short, ragged gasps.
"Fuck, [Name]," he groaned, his body tensing as he felt his own orgasm building. "You're going to make me come. Keep going. Don't stop."
She rode him harder, her body slamming against his, their skin slick with sweat. The room was filled with the sound of their moans, their breaths, and the wet, slapping sounds of their bodies coming together. The tension between them was electric, the anticipation building with each passing second.
"Come with me, Peter," she begged, her voice desperate. "I want to feel you come inside me."
With a final, powerful thrust, he came, his body convulsing with pleasure, his cock pulsing and spilling his release deep inside her. The sensation triggered her own orgasm, and she cried out, her body convulsing around him, her muscles clamping down on his cock. The intensity of their shared climax left them both breathless and spent.
As the waves of pleasure subsided, Peter wrapped his arms around her, holding her close to his chest. His head moved to kiss her softly, his lips gentle against hers. She was slumped against him, her body tired and sated, his cock still inside her, pulsing with the remnants of their passion.
"Stay with me," she whispered, her voice soft and content.
He smiled, his fingers gently stroking her back. "Always," he murmured, his voice filled with tenderness.
After a few moments of quiet cuddling, Peter carefully moved her off him, his cock slipping out of her with a soft, wet sound. He reached down and gently removed her heels, setting them aside. She looked up at him, her eyes filled with a mix of satisfaction.
"Stay in bed," she said, her voice a soft command.
He laughed softly, his eyes crinkling at the corners. "Where else would I go?" he teased, but he knew what she meant. He stood up and walked to find her bathroom, returning with a warm, damp cloth. He climbed back into bed beside her, his touch gentle as he cleaned her up, his actions filled with care and affection.
She watched him, her heart swelling with emotion. Once he was done, she got up and walked to her dresser, removing her eye makeup, earrings, and necklace. She slipped back into bed, her body fitting perfectly against his as they cuddled under the covers.
Peter wrapped his arms around her, pulling her close. She rested her head on his chest, listening to the steady beat of his heart. The room was filled with a sense of peace and contentment, the afterglow of their passionate encounter still lingering in the air.
After a few moments of comfortable silence, she looked up at him, her eyes serious. "Peter, I don't want you to disappear again," she said, her voice soft but firm. "I don't want you to keep running off. I like you too much to put myself through so much heartache if you keep pushing me away."
He looked down at her, his expression sincere. "I don't mean for it to happen, [Name]," he said, his voice filled with honesty. "Working at the Avengers Tower can be hectic. There's so much I can't tell you because of confidentiality. That's why I'm never able to explain what's happening."
She looked away, her eyes glistening with unshed tears. "I kind of understand," she whispered. "But it hurts when you just vanish without a word."
Peter gently turned her face back to his, his thumb brushing away a stray tear. "I want you to be my girlfriend, [Name]," he said, his voice steady and sure.
She blinked, surprise flashing across her face. "What?" she asked, her voice barely above a whisper.
He smiled, his eyes soft and tender. "Yeah, I don't just sleep around. I like you, like really like you. I want to be together, for real. No more flaking out, no more disappearing. Just you and me."
She looked at him, her eyes searching his face for any sign of hesitation. Finding none, she smiled, her voice playful. "As long as you don't flake on me all the time, sure, I'll be your girlfriend."
Peter's face lit up with a wide grin, and he leaned in, capturing her lips in a soft, tender kiss. She kissed him back, her heart swelling with happiness and love. The kiss deepened, their tongues dancing together in a slow, sensual rhythm. The world around them faded away, leaving only the two of them, lost in the sweet, intimate moment they shared.
When they finally pulled away, they were both breathless, their foreheads resting against each other. "I promise, [Name]," Peter whispered, his voice filled with conviction. "I won't let you down. You're my priority now."
She smiled, her eyes shining with tears of joy. "I believe you, Peter," she said, her voice soft and sincere. "And I'm yours. Completely and utterly yours."
-----------------------------------------------------------------
Hi! sorry that I'm not posting as quickly as I have been works been a bit mental so writing this on my downtime was a bit hard! as you can see we've moved forward with the relationship! We're not far away from the finish line now! I already have the ending planned!
To think that this started as a 2 part series 🤣
Tag list: @elianamarie-blog
Tumblr media Tumblr media
8 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 3 months ago
Text
Part 6 is now up!! 😘
Peter Parker Master List
Tumblr media
__________________________________________________________
~A Little Taste of Heaven~
"[Name] moves to Manhattan seeking a fresh start—a better job, a better life—but the city’s reality is far from what she imagined. After a dangerous encounter, she’s saved by Spider-Man, leading to an intense, intimate moment between them. But what feels like hope quickly turns to heartbreak as she believes he’s abandoned her. Unbeknownst to her, it’s all a miscommunication, and Peter Parker, weighed down with guilt, returns to find her gone. Their paths cross again, but this time, it’s not Spider-Man she meets—it’s Peter Parker, the man behind the mask."
Part 1 Part 2 Part 3 Part 4 Part 5 Part 6
29 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 3 months ago
Text
Tumblr media Tumblr media
~ A Little Taste of Heaven ~ (Peter Parker x Fem!Reader) (6/10)
--------------------------------------------------------------
Warnings:Superhero Context/Mature Themes/Character Conflict/Emotional Tension/Angst/Fluff Summary:[Name] runs into Peter, Ned, and MJ outside her apartment complex unexpectedly, creating an awkward tension when Peter realizes she’s Ned’s neighbor. MJ teasingly points out that this is the girl Peter’s been talking about, leaving him flustered. [Name], however, keeps her cool and gracefully excuses herself, heading to the Moonlight Lounge. Peter receives an urgent message from Tony Stark, prompting him to leave. Ned and MJ decide to follow [Name] to the lounge, planning to help smooth things over and get Peter back in her good graces while Peter swings off to handle the emergency.
--------------------------------------------------------------
🎵🎶 Devil in a Dress • Teddy Swims 🎶🎵
_________________________________________________
The morning light filtered through the blinds in [Name]’s apartment, soft but annoyingly persistent. Megan groaned from her spot on the couch, her face half-buried in a throw pillow, clearly feeling the aftermath of their wine-filled night. She waved her hand lazily in the air, as though batting away the daylight itself.
[Name] stood near the sink, sipping a lukewarm cup of coffee that didn’t seem to be helping her headache much. She rubbed her temple with one hand, letting out a small sigh. “Remind me why we thought drinking on an empty stomach was a good idea?”
Megan peeked out from her pillow fortress, her voice raspy but light. “Because we’re geniuses and it seemed fun at the time. No regrets.”
[Name] rolled her eyes, a smirk tugging at her lips despite herself. “Well, we’ve got to get moving if we’re hitting the library. Public records aren’t going to dig through themselves.”
Megan groaned again, pushing herself upright like an old, defeated sloth. “Alright, but only because I’m riding the adrenaline rush of uncovering what we did last night. And—maybe caffeine will fix this disaster I call my life.”
The two began gathering their things, [Name] grabbing her bag while Megan made a half-hearted attempt to pull herself together. As they reached the door and swung it open, the sound of footsteps echoed in the hallway. Turning toward the source, [Name] spotted Ned trudging along, looking slightly dishevelled but smiling in that endearing, awkward way.
“Ned,” [Name] said with mock seriousness, folding her arms and narrowing her eyes. “Walk of shame?”
Ned nearly tripped over his own feet, his face flushing as he threw his hands up defensively. “What? No—no, it’s not like that! I was—uh—gaming! With friends! Really late gaming… you know, like hardcore… level grinding…”
Megan, still leaning casually against the doorframe, raised an eyebrow, her grin widening. “Uh-huh. I’m convinced. Hardcore gaming, right? Sounds intense. Did you unlock all the achievements or just… ‘level grind’ your way into exhaustion?”
Ned looked like he wanted the floor to swallow him up, his cheeks turning a shade of pink that rivalled the morning sun. “It’s not—uh, it’s not like that! I mean, we were actually, you know, working on… team strategies! Really focused!”
[Name] chuckled, her teasing less sharp but no less effective. “Team strategies, huh? You’ll have to show me that game sometime. I’m curious what all the fuss is about.”
She smiled at him, her tone warm enough to ease a little of his obvious embarrassment. Ned blinked at her, caught off guard for a second before nervously rubbing the back of his neck. “Oh, uh, sure! Yeah, anytime. It’s—uh, it’s pretty fun, actually.”
Before the poor guy could unravel further, Megan stepped in, her energy as confident as ever. She extended a hand to him, flashing him a bright, disarming smile. “Hi, I’m Megan, by the way. [Name] didn’t introduce me, but I’m basically her much cooler, slightly hungover sidekick today.”
Ned shifted awkwardly, taking her hand, though it was clear he was flustered by her confidence. “Uh, hi. I’m Ned. Nice to meet you. "
Megan tilted her head, her grin turning sly as she gave him a once-over. “You’re adorable, Ned. Totally the guy everyone secretly wants on their team—gaming or otherwise.”
Ned’s ears turned noticeably red as he stumbled through a laugh. “Oh, uh, thanks? I think?”
[Name] bit back a laugh, giving Megan a gentle nudge. “Alright, Meg, stop torturing him. We’ve got a library to get to.”
Megan shrugged, still smirking as she backed up heading for the stairs. “Just calling it like I see it. Later, Ned.”
Ned waved awkwardly, glancing back at [Name] before she followed. “Good luck with, uh, whatever you’re working on. And… seriously, let me know if you want to try that game.”
[Name] smiled over her shoulder as she took the stairs down two at a time. “You’ve got it. See you around, Ned.”
As they descended together Megan nudged [Name] with a grin. “He’s cute. A little clueless, but cute.”
[Name] just laughed, Megan adjusted the strap of her bag and smirked to herself, clearly pleased with how she’d left Ned flustered in the hallway. [Name] glanced at her, shaking her head with a knowing grin.
“Seriously, Megan? Poor Ned looked like he was about two seconds from imploding,” [Name] said, her tone teasing as she nudged her friend lightly.
“What?” Megan replied, feigning innocence, though her smirk didn’t falter. “I was just being friendly. It’s not my fault the guy is adorably awkward.”
“Friendly?” [Name] scoffed, narrowing her eyes with mock suspicion. “Sure, if ‘friendly’ includes making him blush so hard he nearly caught fire.”
Megan shrugged, unabashed. “Hey, a little harmless fun never hurt anyone. Besides, you saw how he lit up when you asked about that game. Pretty sure you’re his new favourite neighbour.”
[Name] rolled her eyes but couldn’t help the small smile tugging at her lips. “You’re incorrigible, you know that?”
“Thanks,” Megan said with a wink. “I take pride in it.”
As they reached the ground floor and stepped outside, the crisp morning air seemed to breathe life into both of them. Megan took a deep breath, rubbing her temples. “Okay, next stop: caffeine. Stat.”
“Agreed,” [Name] said, nodding toward a small café just down the street. “Breakfast first, records later.”
Minutes later, they were perched at a corner table in the café, steaming cups of coffee and flaky pastries in hand. Megan poked at her croissant lazily, looking less hungover now that caffeine was coursing through her system. [Name], meanwhile, glanced over her notes on Blackout as she sipped her coffee, her headache slowly fading.
“This whole public records thing,” Megan said between bites, “it’s gonna take some serious digging, isn’t it? Like, we’re talking needle-in-a-haystack level.”
“Probably,” [Name] said, flipping through her notes. “But if he has been testing those pulses like we think, then there has to be something. Even the smallest hint could help us figure out what he’s planning.”
Megan nodded thoughtfully, finishing her croissant and pushing her plate aside. “Alright, then. Let’s get our detective hats on.”
With breakfast done, they stepped back into the bustling street, refreshed and ready to tackle the task ahead. The walk to the library was brisk, a mix of determination and lingering curiosity fueling them as they went. [Name] was already running possible search terms through her mind, while Megan hummed absentmindedly beside her.
The library loomed ahead like a quiet sanctuary, promising answers—or at least more questions to chase. [Name] glanced at Megan, who was already looking around with her usual confident energy. Together, they stepped inside, ready to dive headfirst into the next piece of the puzzle.
_____________________________________________________
The library was quiet, the kind of stillness that felt charged with potential. Rows of shelves stretched endlessly, and the faint hum of fluorescent lights filled the background as [Name] and Megan settled into a table in the back corner. Stacks of folders and binders covered the surface, the weight of research pressing down harder than their lingering headaches.
[Name] sighed, flipping through a weather report from years ago, her brow furrowing as she scanned the pages. “Nothing. Just rain, clouds, and more rain. It’s like New York weather’s been boring since forever.”
Megan stretched lazily in her chair, her energy still recovering from the morning. She tapped her fingers thoughtfully before standing up “Alright, I’m done staring at pages. I’m gonna go ask the clerk if they’ve got anything hidden in the dusty archives. Be right back.”
“Good luck,” [Name] muttered, not bothering to look up as she continued flipping through the files. Her concentration was broken by the sudden buzz of her phone on the table, the screen lighting up with Peter’s name. She hesitated for a moment before picking up.
“Hey,” Peter’s voice came through, warm and tentative. “How’s it going?”
[Name] leaned back in her chair, gripping the phone tightly. “Fine. Kind of busy, though.” Her tone wasn’t sharp, but there was an edge of frustration she couldn’t entirely hide.
Peter sighed softly. “I know you’re mad. I’m really sorry about last night—I didn’t mean to disappear like that. I swear, I’ll make it up to you. Just tell me when, and I’m there.”
[Name] closed her eyes for a moment, her grip loosening slightly. “You’ve got a lot of making up to do, Peter.”
“I know,” he said gently. “But I will. Promise.”
As [Name] flipped through the weather records, her fingers paused on a headline, the bold letters catching her eye: “Northern Lights Spotted Over Manhattan—A Rare Phenomenon!” The article detailed an unusual sighting that had left locals puzzled, but it dated back nearly five years.
She furrowed her brows and flipped to another page, her curiosity piqued. “Strange Lights Illuminate Waterfront—Northern Lights in New York?” This one was from three years ago, describing bright, colorful pulses that had briefly lit up the night sky. A pattern was beginning to form, tugging at her thoughts.
“Peter?” she asked suddenly, her tone sharper now as she interrupted his apology.
“Yeah?” he replied, his voice lifting slightly, glad she was engaging more.
“How likely is it to see the northern lights over New York City?” she asked, flipping to yet another headline: “Northern Lights—or Something Else? Reports of flashes Downtown.” This one was more recent, from just last year.
Peter hesitated, his confusion clear. “Northern lights? Over New York? That’s… pretty rare. I mean, it’s not impossible, but the city’s light pollution makes it almost nonexistent. Why are you asking?”
“I think I’ve found something,” [Name] muttered to herself before quickly adding, “I have to go. I’ll call you later.”
Peter’s voice softened, the disappointment evident. “Okay. Talk soon.”
She hung up without lingering on his tone. Her pulse quickened as she scanned the headlines and dates. Something about this felt different—too specific, too consistent to ignore. Her gut twisted, the kind of deep, unshakable feeling she couldn’t explain but knew to trust. This was it. These sightings weren’t natural, and every fiber of her being told her they were connected. Blackout’s testing? It had to be.
Just as she finished circling her notes, Megan returned, dropping into the seat beside her with her usual flair. She took one look at [Name]’s determined expression, then raised her eyebrows and smirked. “Alright, spill it. What did I miss?”
[Name] turned to Megan, her eyes sharp with resolve. She tapped the circled dates on her notes and said, “My gut’s telling me these are connected. It’s not just random—look at the dates. These sightings span over a few years, but they’re all tied to something specific. I can feel it.”
Megan leaned in, scanning the notes with a curious frown. “Huh. Okay, that’s weird—and spooky. While you were busy doing the detective thing, the clerk said there might be articles about power surges or outages stored on the computers. Could be related to your lights.”
{Name]’s eyes lit up with renewed energy. “Perfect. Can you check for anything linked to these dates?” She pushed the notes toward Megan, the urgency in her tone unmistakable. “If there were surges or outages the same nights as the lights, it could be a lead.”
Megan grabbed the paper with a nod, her smirk softening into a determined grin. “Got it. Give me a sec—I’ll see what I can dig up.”
As Megan headed toward the nearest computer terminal, [Name] leaned back in her chair, her mind racing as the threads of the mystery began to twist tighter. If this theory panned out, it could bring them one step closer to unraveling Blackout’s motives.
Megan sat at one of the library computers, fingers flying across the keyboard as she cross-referenced the dates of the northern lights sightings with reports of power outages. The screen filled with rows of data, and she squinted, leaning in closer. “Okay, hold on… Two of these match up,” she said, excitement creeping into her voice. “This one from three years ago and the other from last year. Both had reported outages the same nights as the sightings.”
[Name] perked up, standing from her seat and moving to the next computer. “Alright, let’s see what else we can dig up.” She typed quickly, pulling up grid reports with energy usage data across the city. A bar graph popped up, spanning the dates she’d circled in her notes. She tilted her head as she scanned the spikes and dips.
“Wait… Two of these match up, too,” she said, her voice growing sharper. “Same dates as the outages you found.”
Both women looked at each other, the weight of the discovery hanging between them. Megan gestured at her screen. “What about that big fight with Spider-Man? You know, a week and a half ago? Anything weird pop up for that?”
[Name] typed in the date of the fight, her eyes darting over the new results. Megan frowned at her screen. “Nothing here on my end,” she said with a shrug. But [Name] froze. “Wait,” she whispered, her finger hovering over the screen. “I’ve got a hit. Energy usage during the attack—it spikes massively, then drops off completely. That’s not normal.”
Megan spun her chair around to face her. “Weird. Oh, and get this,” she added, snapping her fingers. “The days he attacked those bases—the ones tied to the alien tech? They also had power outages. Every single one of them.”
[Name] stared at the screen, her heart pounding as the pieces swirled in her mind, refusing to settle into place. The spikes in energy, the outages, the strange lights—each fragment felt connected, but the full picture remained just out of reach. She leaned closer to the monitor, her voice a whisper at first. “What do you need…” The words seemed to hang in the air, growing heavier with each passing second.
She clenched her fists, willing the answer to come to her. “What do you need!” she repeated, louder this time, the desperation in her voice breaking through the library’s quiet hum.
Her eyes darted back to the timestamps on the reports, and her breath hitched. There was something there—something she was missing. She turned abruptly to Megan, who was still focused on her screen. “Megan,” she said, her tone sharp, urgent. “What time was Blackout reported fighting Spider-Man? Do you have anything?”
Megan blinked at her sudden intensity and clicked through her tabs, scanning the reports she’d found. “Uh, let me see… It says here around 8:50 PM. Why?”
[Name] stared hard at the screen, her eyes narrowing as she examined the timestamps. The power outages weren’t happening during the fights—they were showing up 20 to 30 minutes before he was spotted or engaged. The realization made her pulse quicken. This wasn’t random; it was deliberate. He was preparing, charging, waiting until he had everything he needed before striking. Her pulse quickened as the pieces slotted into place “He powers up before he strikes,” she murmured, her voice trembling as she leaned closer to the monitor. “His armor—God, it must need a massive amount of energy to sustain it!”
Her breath hitched as another realization dawned. “Oh my God! He’s never in the fights for long!” she said, her voice rising as the weight of the discovery settled over her.
Megan, catching the shift in her tone, swiveled her chair back around and looked at [Name]. “It must drain quickly,” Megan said thoughtfully, piecing it together herself. “That’s probably why he doesn’t use those blasts a lot in the fights—it must eat up a ton of power.”
[Name] turned to Megan, her eyes wide and almost blazing with understanding. “The criminal bases!” she exclaimed, her voice sharp with urgency. “They were known to have alien tech, right?! That’s it—he’s looking for a power source! Something big enough to keep him going.”
The words hung in the air, the revelation settling over both of them like a crashing wave. Megan nodded, her own expression tinged with awe and disbelief. “That explains why he’s been targeting them… He’s building up to something.”
______________________________________________
Peter sprawled out across his bed, his laptop pushed off to the side and forgotten. The sunlight streamed through the window, bathing the cluttered room in a warm glow. Notes were scattered across the desk, alongside half-finished sketches of web shooters and a crumpled pizza box from the night before.
He sighed heavily, running a hand through his messy curls. “Ugh, Parker, you’re an idiot,” he muttered, his voice low but dripping with guilt. “I’d be mad too. Totally. Like, so mad.”
The phone lay beside him, screen dark, but it felt like the call with [Name] was still echoing in his ears. He picked it up and turned it over in his hands, nervously tapping his thumb against the edge of the case. “What am I even supposed to do?” he said, his voice a little louder now, frustration creeping in. He sat up, fidgeting as he spoke to the empty room. “I can’t just be like, ‘Hey, [Name], funny story—I’m Spider-Man.’ Yeah, that’d go over great.”
He flopped back onto the bed with a groan, staring up at the ceiling like it held the answers to his increasingly tangled life. “We’ve known each other for, what, a month? That’s, like, nothing! She’d probably run the other way.”
His hand slapped down on his face as he let out a muffled groan into his palm. He peeked through his fingers at the photo on his nightstand—him and Aunt May, her bright smile like a little beacon of comfort in his messy world.
“Come on, Peter,” he muttered, lowering his hand. “You’ve gotta figure this out. She’s already amazing, and now you’re just… blowing it. Nice one.”
He sighed again, sitting up and running both hands through his hair, his face scrunching up in that signature awkward, nervous way. “You’ll fix this,” he said to himself, almost like a pep talk. “You will. Somehow. Right?”
He gave a weak, self-deprecating chuckle, flopping back down on the bed again as the city noises outside carried on without him.
___________________________________________________
The streets of Manhattan were alive with their usual energy as [Name] weaved her way through the throngs of people. The sun hung bright in the sky, warming the sidewalk as she adjusted the strap of her bag and pushed forward toward her apartment. Megan had gone her own way a few blocks back, tossing out a carefree promise to regroup later and dive deeper into their findings.
As [Name] reached her block, she slowed her pace, letting herself breathe in the familiar sights and sounds of her neighbourhood. Despite the city’s constant motion, there was a small comfort in coming home. Her phone buzzed in her pocket, pulling her out of her thoughts. She dug it out and glanced at the screen to see Peter’s name.
Peter: “So, uh… there’s this movie in the park thing tonight. They’re playing Jurassic Park—like, the OG, 1993, Jeff Goldblum in all his glory. You wanna come with me? Thought it might be fun."
She stopped in the lobby, holding the phone close as a spark of excitement bubbled up. Jurassic Park? In the park? That sounded like a perfect way to unwind after the chaos of the day. She typed back quickly, her fingers flying over the screen.
Name: “I’d love to! What time?”
Heading up the stairs toward her apartment, she practically skipped, her phone buzzing in response just as she reached her door.
Peter: “It starts at 7, but we could meet up earlier to grab a spot? Like, maybe 6:30?”
She couldn’t help but smile, her excitement showing as she replied: “Sounds amazing. Jurassic Park’s such a classic! See you at 6:30.”
Peter’s next message popped up almost immediately. “Great! I’ll bring snacks. You pick a spot—promise it’ll be awesome.”
Sliding her key into the lock, [Name] shook her head with a laugh, stepping inside. “Snacks, dinosaurs, and Peter Parker. Sounds like a win,” she said to herself, her grin widening. The day suddenly felt a little brighter.
__________________________________________________
The golden light of the evening sun cast a warm glow over Bryant Park, mingling with the hum of people setting up blankets and folding chairs for the outdoor movie. The large inflatable screen loomed in the distance, proudly advertising tonight’s feature: Jurassic Park (1993). The air buzzed with excitement, the kind of palpable energy that only Manhattan could pull off.
[Name] walked along the park’s paths, her loose waves catching the light breeze as they framed her face. She had carefully chosen her outfit—her pale pink jumper that draped just slightly off her shoulder paired with a flowy cream skirt that swayed softly around her knees.
Her white wedge ankle boots clicked lightly against the pavement, and her white shoulder bag rested neatly against her side. A touch of light makeup enhanced her natural features, though the soft glow of her excitement outshone it.
She spotted Peter first, standing near the edge of the lawn with a blanket slung under one arm and a grocery bag full of snacks in the other. He was dressed in his usual endearing style—a white T-shirt with some kind of science graphic on it (probably a molecule or something she couldn’t quite make out), a red plaid jacket over the top, blue jeans, and sneakers. His hair was slightly tousled, no doubt from the countless times he’d run his fingers through it.
Peter’s eyes darted around, scanning the crowd before they landed on her. His face lit up instantly, his lopsided smile practically glowing as he waved with the arm carrying the blanket. “Hey!” he called out, his voice carrying just above the soft chatter of the crowd.
[Name] couldn’t help but grin as she walked up to him. “Hi,” she said, her voice warm. “Looks like you found us a good spot?”
“Yeah, totally,” he said, shifting the grocery bag awkwardly in his hand. “I mean, it’s not, like, the front-front, but it’s… solid. Good view. Uh, prime dino-watching territory.”
She laughed softly, charmed by his earnestness. “Prime dino-watching territory sounds perfect.”
Peter seemed to relax a little, though his grin stayed firmly in place. “I, uh, brought snacks,” he said, holding up the grocery bag like it was a trophy. “Popcorn, Sour Patch Kids, some chocolate. Oh, and drinks. You know, for options… because, uh, movies need snacks. And hydration.”
[Name] bit back a laugh, her cheeks warming. “Peter, you’re overprepared. I love it.”
His hand darted up to the back of his neck, rubbing it as he gave a sheepish laugh. “Yeah, well, better overprepared than, uh, snackless, right?”
She nodded, her smile widening as she gestured toward the park lawn. “Okay, show me this spot you scouted out.’”
Peter led her toward a cozy patch of grass he’d scouted near the middle, setting down the blanket with a level of focus that made her grin again. As they sat and settled in, the crowd around them began to fill the park, the sky above shifting to deeper shades of orange and pink.
“Jeff Goldblum fighting dinosaurs on a big screen, under the stars,” she said, leaning back on her hands as she glanced at him. “This might be the best idea you’ve had.”
Peter chuckled, tearing open the bag of popcorn. “Yeah, well, dinosaurs make everything better. And, you know, good company helps too.”
She glanced at him, her heart warming at his words. “I couldn’t agree more.”
As the soft chatter of the crowd began to fade and the movie announcements flickered onto the screen, Peter spread out the blanket carefully, making sure there were no creases. He crouched down, setting the snack bag to the side before looking up at [Name] with a slightly nervous smile.
“Here, let me help,” he said, standing back up and extending his hand to her.
[Name] smiled, slipping her hand into his as she carefully folded the flowy cream skirt under herself to sit down. “Well, aren’t you a gentleman,” she teased lightly, her voice holding a playful edge. As she settled onto the blanket, her fingers lingered just a second longer in his grip before letting go. She glanced up at him, her eyes sparkling. “You always this smooth, Parker, or is it just for me?”
Peter held her gaze, his grin growing wider. “Hey, I try my best,” he said, his voice low and smooth. “But I have to say. You're kind of... distracting.” He raised an eyebrow, his eyes crinkling at the corners.
Her cheeks turned pink, and she looked down, pretending to adjust her skirt. “Oh, yeah? And what's distracting about me?” she asked, her tone playful, but with a hint of curiosity.
Peter let out a soft laugh, his fingers brushing lightly against the blanket as he leaned forward just a little. “Well,” he said, his grin shifting into something softer, more genuine, “you look… beautiful tonight.” His voice carried the weight of sincerity, the words spoken simply but with an unmistakable impact.
Her breath hitched slightly, and she quickly glanced at him before throwing back, “You’re not so bad yourself.”
Peter laughed lowly, the sound warm and genuine, as he shifted to settle onto the blanket next to her. His shoulder brushed hers lightly, the subtle contact making her smile. As he turned to face her, his hair fell slightly into his eyes—just a stray curl, but enough to catch her attention. Without thinking, she reached up, her fingers brushing against his forehead as she gently pushed the strand back into place.
“There,” she said softly, her voice light but tinged with something warmer.
Peter blinked, momentarily stunned by her touch, before his lips curved into an easy grin. “You’re, uh, kinda dangerous, you know that?”
Her cheeks warmed at the way his gaze lingered, and she ducked her head slightly, pretending to adjust her skirt again. “Dangerous, huh? That’s a new one,” she murmured, the slight crack in her confidence only making her smile brighter.
The sound of the movie’s opening theme swelled through the park, saving them from the growing tension as they both turned their attention to the glowing screen. The moment lingered between them, unspoken but undeniably felt.
Peter reached for the popcorn, a grin still tugging at his lips as he broke the spell. “Guess we better focus, huh? Dinosaurs wait for no one.”
[Name] chuckled, her heart still fluttering as she leaned into the moment. “True. Jeff Goldblum’s about to steal the show.”
The movie had unfolded into its thrilling , introduction of Rexy—the mighty T-Rex. As her massive roar echoed through the park's speakers, the crowd erupted with a few excited whoops and cheers. The vibrant energy was contagious, drawing laughter and soft chatter as people leaned into the iconic moment.
[Name] couldn't help but grin, her gaze fixed on the screen. The tension between her and Peter had melted into something warm and natural as the movie carried on. Without realizing it, they had drifted closer together on the blanket, their shoulders nearly brushing. Her heart gave a little flutter as she felt the tiniest, barely-there touch—Peter’s pinky brushing against hers.
She hesitated for a second, glancing down at their hands, and caught Peter doing the same out of the corner of her eye. He didn’t pull away, and neither did she. Instead, their pinkies lingered, tentatively linked by the lightest of touches. A subtle warmth spread between them, unspoken but undeniably felt.
Peter leaned a little closer, his voice just a whisper as he gestured toward the screen with a playful grin. “You know, Rexy’s got serious star power. Forget the humans—she’s the real main character.”
[Name] laughed softly, her eyes crinkling at the corners. “Oh, absolutely. She’s stealing the show. I mean, who doesn’t love a dinosaur with that kind of confidence?”
Peter chuckled lowly, his grin widening as his pinky lightly curled around hers in a subtle yet deliberate motion. Neither of them said anything about it, but the gesture felt deliberate, a quiet acknowledgment of the moment shared between them.
The movie was nearing its end, the iconic strains of the Jurassic Park theme swelling as the final scenes played out on the massive screen. The crowd had quieted, fully immersed in the film, but for [Name] and Peter, the world seemed to shrink to just the two of them.
They had ended up leaning against each other, their shoulders pressed together in a way that felt natural, unspoken. Peter’s fingers had taken to brushing lightly against her hand, the motion subtle but deliberate, as if testing the waters. Each gentle touch sent a quiet thrill through her, and she found herself glancing down at their hands, her heart fluttering.
Taking a breath, [Name] turned her hand slightly, her fingers brushing against his before intertwining them together. The motion was soft, almost tentative, but the warmth of his hand against hers felt grounding, steady.
Peter froze for a moment, his gaze flicking down to their joined hands before lifting to meet hers. His lips curved into a small, almost shy smile, the kind that made her heart skip. “You’re full of surprises tonight,” he murmured, his voice low and warm.
She smiled back, her cheeks tinged pink as she leaned just a little closer. “I’m not the only one,” she replied softly, her tone playful but with a hint of something deeper.
Peter’s grin faltered for just a moment as her words struck a chord. His mind flickered back to that first kiss they’d shared—when he was Spider-Man. He could still feel the way she’d pecked his cheek, the corner of his mouth, before they finally kissed. The memory hit him like a wave, the warmth of it mingling with the ache of wanting to relive it now, here, with her. He let out a low groan, almost involuntarily.
[Name] tilted her head, her brows knitting together in curiosity. “What?” she asked, her voice soft but laced with concern.
Peter didn’t answer right away. Instead, he reached out, his hand finding the back of her head with a gentle but deliberate motion. His fingers threaded lightly through her hair as he leaned in, his gaze locking onto hers. “This,” he murmured, his voice barely above a whisper, before closing the distance between them.
The kiss was soft at first, tentative, but it deepened as [Name] melted into it, her hand instinctively resting against his chest. The world around them seemed to fade—the distant sounds of the movie, the murmurs of the crowd—all of it dissolved into the background. It was just them, wrapped in the warmth of the moment.
When they finally pulled back, their foreheads rested lightly against each other, both of them catching their breath. Peter’s lips curved into a small, sheepish smile.
[Name] laughed softly, her cheeks flushed as she looked up at him. “Guess we’re even,” she whispered, her voice carrying a mix of playfulness and affection
The movie’s final notes played triumphantly, and the park erupted into applause. The sound startled Peter and [Name], pulling them out of the small bubble they’d unknowingly created. They exchanged a quick glance, both realizing at the same time how wrapped up in each other they’d been.
“Oh,” [Name] said softly, her cheeks warming as she tucked a stray strand of hair behind her ear. “I guess it’s over.”
“Yeah,” Peter replied, his voice a little uneven as he scratched the back of his neck. “Time flies when, uh, you’re… distracted.”
She laughed lightly, brushing off the awkwardness as they both started to pack up the blanket and snacks. Peter fumbled with the empty popcorn bag, shoving it into the grocery sack as he stole a quick glance at her. Once everything was gathered, he hesitated for a moment before speaking.
“Hey, um, do you want me to walk you home?” he asked, his tone hopeful but casual.
[Name] smiled at him, a soft warmth in her expression. “I’d like that,” she said, her voice genuine.
The two of them set off, weaving through the thinning crowds in the park. The streets were quieter now, the city’s buzz settling into a gentle hum as they strolled side by side. At some point, Peter took them on a slight detour, leading them along a quieter route lit by soft, golden streetlights.
The cool night air began to settle in, and a breeze swept past them, making [Name] shiver slightly. She crossed her arms over her chest, trying to ward off the chill.
Peter noticed immediately, glancing at her with concern. Without hesitation, he shrugged off his red plaid jacket and draped it gently over her shoulders. “Here,” he said, his voice soft but firm. “Can’t have you freezing on me.”
[Name] looked up at him, her smile widening as she tugged the jacket closer. It was warm and smelled faintly like him, a mix of laundry detergent and something uniquely Peter. “Thank you, Peter,” she said, her tone teasing but touched. “Very gallant of you.”
Peter grinned, shoving his hands into his jeans pockets. “Hey, I aim to impress,” he said, his voice light but carrying a trace of sincerity.
As they continued walking, their footsteps fell into an easy rhythm. The jacket rested snugly on her shoulders, and the shared silence between them felt comfortable, as though the night itself had conspired to make everything feel just right.
Peter and [Name] walked side by side, the night air wrapping around them like a fragile bubble. The faint glow of streetlights danced across the pavement, and the silence between them felt calm, easy, until the sharp trill of Peter’s phone shattered it without warning.
Peter’s hand shot to his pocket, pulling out the buzzing device in a heartbeat. He glanced at the screen, his jaw tightening slightly before he answered it with urgency. “MJ? What’s wrong?”
[Name] blinked, her pace slowing as she turned to look at him, her brows knitting together in mild confusion. She couldn’t hear the response on the other end, but the way Peter’s expression shifted—from focused to conflicted in a matter of seconds—told her everything she needed to know.
He looked at her then, his gaze soft but apologetic, like he was searching for the right words to say. But he didn’t have to. [Name] already knew. She’d seen that look before, more times than she cared to count. Letting out a low sigh, she glanced away, her grip tightening slightly on his jacket wrapped around her shoulders. The sound was barely audible, a quiet exhale of acceptance that Peter didn’t seem to pick up on as he turned his attention back to the phone.
She stared at the ground, her face carefully neutral as she tried to push down the sting of disappointment. She didn’t say anything, didn’t ask questions. There wasn’t any point. Some part of her had known this moment would come tonight, just like it always did.
Peter ran a hand through his hair, the familiar gesture laced with frustration as he shifted his weight on his feet. He opened his mouth as if to say something but hesitated, his voice catching in his throat.
Peter’s phone pressed against his ear, his voice steady as he said, “I’m on my way, MJ.” He lowered the phone and glanced at [Name], the weight of the moment settling between them. He reached out instinctively, his fingers twitching as if to touch her, but [Name] stepped back, her expression carefully neutral.
“Go,” she said softly, her voice steady despite the small crack in her chest. She slipped his jacket off her shoulders, folding it neatly to hand back to him. “Here—take this. You’ll need it more.”
Peter shook his head immediately, his hand pushing the jacket back toward her. “No. Wear it,” he said, his voice firm but gentle. “It’s cold, and…” He faltered, his lips pressing together as frustration bubbled beneath the surface. “I don’t want you freezing.”
The words carried a weight he couldn’t quite articulate, his gaze locked onto hers. He didn’t want the night to end—not like this, not when things had felt so good just minutes ago. But MJ’s call hung over him, forcing the divide he didn’t know how to bridge
Name] hummed softly, her lips curving into a small, bittersweet smile. “Alright,” she said, her tone quiet, resigned. She pulled the jacket back over her shoulders, the fabric still warm from his touch.
Peter lingered for a moment longer, his frustration and longing flashing briefly in his eyes before he turned to leave. Just as he started walking away, he glanced over his shoulder, his voice carrying a softness that made her chest tighten. “Keep it,” he said. “Till the next date.”
The promise hung in the air, fragile but full of meaning, as Peter disappeared into the night. [Name] watched him go, clutching the edges of his jacket tightly, a quiet mix of emotions settling in her chest.
As soon as Peter disappeared from view, [Name] let out a long breath she didn’t realize she’d been holding. She stopped on the quiet sidewalk, pinching the bridge of her nose as frustration bubbled up.
“You’re fine,” she murmured to herself, but the words felt hollow. The truth was, she wasn’t fine—not entirely.
She really liked Peter. More than she’d expected, honestly. But this—this running off without much of an explanation—it was starting to sting. She knew he said MJ was just a friend, but the timing of the call nagged at her. Why tonight? Why during their date?
A flicker of jealousy crept in before [Name] could push it away, an uninvited knot tightening in her chest. Did MJ have feelings for Peter? And, more troublingly, did Peter have feelings for MJ? The questions spiralled through her mind, unrelenting and persistent, as she walked. She pulled his jacket tighter around her shoulders, its warmth seeping through the fabric like a lingering comfort.
It smelled like him—that faint mix of fresh detergent and something uniquely Peter—and it was maddening. As if the weight of her swirling emotions wasn’t enough, the jacket clung to her like a silent reminder of him, of the night, of the way things had felt before his phone rang.
She scoffed suddenly, shaking her head at herself. “Get a grip,” she muttered under her breath, the sharpness of her voice cutting through the quiet street. Why on earth was she torturing herself with the idea that Peter liked MJ? It didn’t make sense—he’d kissed her, her. And not just any kiss, but one that left no room for doubt about how he felt in that moment.
Still, the jealousy gnawed at the edges of her thoughts, tangled up with the sting of him running off again. She didn’t doubt his sincerity, but the uncertainty—the lingering questions she couldn’t ask—made it harder to shake the ache. With a soft sigh, she adjusted the jacket again, her fingers brushing over the plaid fabric as she tried to quiet her mind.
She let out a low sigh, her pace picking up as she turned down her street, the familiar glow of her apartment building drawing closer. Even as she unlocked her door and stepped inside, her thoughts continued to swirl, tugging at her like a tide she couldn’t quite escape.
Pulling Peter’s jacket off her shoulders, she paused, holding it for a moment longer than necessary. She really wished he could tell her—just something. Anything to help her understand why he kept running off, leaving her in the dark time after time. It wasn’t anger she felt, not really, but the ache of always being left with questions she couldn’t ask, the quiet frustration of never fully being let in. “Next time,” she murmured, her voice tinged with hope rather than bitterness. How many next times were there going to be?
She exhaled softly, tossing the jacket down onto the couch with a little more force than she’d intended. It landed in a heap, and with it, a small metallic sound echoed faintly in the room. A marble-sized metal ball slipped unnoticed from the pocket, rolling quietly under the couch to hide in the shadows.
The tiny ball glinted faintly in the dim light, an unassuming object that seemed strangely deliberate in its presence, as though waiting patiently to be found. Above it, [Name] moved about, unaware of the small yet curious piece of Peter’s world now resting beneath her couch.
Tugging at the sleeves of her sweater, she wandered toward the kitchen, shaking her head in an attempt to clear her thoughts. The weight of the evening clung to her, but she pushed it aside, focusing instead on anything but the gnawing questions left unanswered.
______________________________________________________
Peter stepped into MJ’s apartment, slightly out of breath and still brushing his hand through his hair. “Alright, I’m here,” he said, his voice carrying a sharp edge of frustration. “What couldn’t wait?”
Ned was perched on the edge of the couch, practically vibrating with excitement. “Oh, it’s good, trust me—it couldn’t wait,” he said, the words tumbling out almost faster than Peter could process. “Okay, so F.R.I.D.A.Y and I have been poring over grid reports, electrical output logs, and system maps—literally all the boring but crucial stuff. And guess what? We might’ve cracked the code!”
Peter paused, his irritation giving way to cautious interest. “You’re serious? What kind of code?”
“Well,” Ned continued, his words spilling out in a rush, “Blackout’s not attacking randomly—he’s following a trail of high-output electrical systems. Every one of his targets is tied to a site with recently upgraded tech. It’s all in the grid reports—fluctuations, power surges—you name it. Friday even ran diagnostics on the affected systems, and it lines up perfectly with his previous patterns.”
MJ, sitting back with her arms crossed, chimed in, her voice steady. “There’s a substation near Lexington and 47th. It’s a major upgrade site, and it’s showing signs of unusual activity. If we’re right, that’s his next move.”
Peter ran a hand over his face, exhaling slowly as he processed the information. Part of him wanted to stay annoyed—this had pulled him away from something he didn’t want to end—but the urgency of the situation outweighed his frustration. This wasn’t just important; it could be a game-changer.
“Alright,” he said, his voice levelling out. “If this pattern holds, and that substation’s next, we need to move fast. Did F.R.I.D.A.Y give us anything else—timelines, movements?”
Ned leaned forward eagerly. “She said there’s been some unusual power fluctuations near the site. Nothing major yet, but it lines up with Blackout’s usual prep moves before an attack. If we’re lucky, we’ve got maybe a few hours before he makes his move.”
Peter nodded, his focus sharpening as his mind raced to form a plan. MJ stood, her sharp gaze fixed on him. “What’s the play, Parker?”
--------------------------------------------------------------------
The Lexington substation hummed quietly under the glow of the streetlights, its usual stillness undisturbed as Peter perched on a rooftop across the street. He leaned back against a steel ventilation unit, his mask pulled up halfway as he crunched on a granola bar, trying to stay patient. Hours had passed, the city’s buzz carrying on below him, and still no sign of Blackout. The tension was starting to grate on him.
Peter exhaled sharply, pulling his mask back down and muttering, “This is useless.” He shifted to his feet, stretching his back, just as his phone buzzed. Ned’s name flashed on the screen, and Peter answered without hesitation.
“Please tell me you’ve got something,” he said, his voice carrying a mix of hope and frustration.
Ned’s voice came rushing through the line, his usual enthusiasm tempered by urgency. “Okay, listen—Lexington might’ve been a bust, but I think I’ve got it this time. F.R.I.D.A.Y. and I went through more grid diagnostics—power surges, fluctuations—and there’s been another spike. Other side of the city. Like completely opposite.”
As if on cue, F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s cool, modulated voice filled Peter’s HUD. “Correction: I have detected a second surge approximately ten miles east of your position. Energy readings suggest an escalation consistent with Blackout’s modus operandi. Advise immediate departure.”
Peter froze, letting out a sharp breath as he processed the information. “Wait, so… there are two spikes?”
“Looks like it,” Ned said quickly. “But this second one—it’s way bigger. If I were betting, I’d say that’s our guy.”
Peter nodded, already moving toward the edge of the rooftop. “Alright. Send me the coordinates, F.R.I.D.A.Y.”
“Coordinates uploaded to the suit interface,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. confirmed smoothly. “Power levels increasing exponentially. Suggest acceleration of travel speed.”
Peter didn’t need to hear more. Launching himself from the rooftop, he swung into the night, the city blurring past in flashes of neon and shadow. As much as the wasted hours annoyed him, the new lead sent adrenaline coursing through him. Blackout was playing games, but Peter was done waiting—this time, he wasn’t going to let him slip away.
The city rushed past in a blur of light and shadow as Peter swung through the streets, his grip tightening on the webline as F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s calm, clinical voice rang in his ears. “Alert: Another power surge has been detected. Energy spike at 34th and Park. Adjusting course.”
Peter gritted his teeth, shifting direction mid-swing, his thoughts racing almost as fast as he was. “How is he moving this fast? It’s like he’s everywhere.”
Before F.R.I.D.A.Y. could respond, her voice cut back in, firm and direct. “Correction: Stronger spike detected at 12th and Broadway. Redirecting now. Energy levels surpass prior readings.”
“Again?” Peter muttered, his frustration bubbling up as he shifted course yet again, his webline cutting through the brisk night air. His chest tightened as the realization began to sink in—there wasn’t just one surge. There were multiple. Too many. “F.R.I.D.A.Y., what the hell is he doing? This doesn’t make sense.”
“Analysing patterns. No definitive explanation yet.” There was a brief pause before F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s tone turned urgent. “Additional spike detected. Highest energy reading so far. Location: East Side Docks.”
Peter came to an abrupt halt, perched on the side of a skyscraper as he sucked in a sharp breath. He clung to the wall, his thoughts spinning out of control. “I can’t—” he began, his voice cracking slightly. “I can’t be in all these places at once. What the hell is Blackout even trying to do?”
His heartbeat thundered in his ears, the weight of the impossible situation pressing down on him. Blackout wasn’t just targeting one location—he was scattering his activity across the city, throwing Peter off at every turn. And it was working.
Taking a steadying breath, Peter forced himself back into action, his mind zeroing in on the strongest spike. “F.R.I.D.A.Y., keep me locked on the East Side Docks,” he said, his voice steadier now, though frustration lingered. “If this one’s the strongest, it’s gotta be him.”
“Confirmed. Energy signature remains stable. Advise immediate arrival.”
Peter swung toward the docks with everything he had, his focus narrowing as adrenaline coursed through him. But as he landed on the empty lot overlooking the water, his stomach dropped. The area was deserted. No Blackout. No thugs. No sign of an attack.
He stepped forward cautiously, his eyes scanning the quiet docks as the faint sound of waves lapping against the pier filled the air. “No, no, no,” he muttered under his breath, the frustration bleeding into his tone. “This doesn’t make any sense. Where is he?”
The silence around him was deafening, only amplifying the questions swirling in his head. Blackout wasn’t here—at least not yet. But Peter couldn’t shake the feeling that he was being played, the puzzle pieces deliberately scrambled to keep him guessing.
Peter crouched low behind a stack of shipping containers, his body tense as F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice filled his HUD. “Surge localized to the fourth container in row C. Energy readings stabilized. Unlikely to escalate further.”
Peter frowned, his grip tightening on the edge of the container he was pressed against. “You mean it’s in there?”
“Affirmative.”
He exhaled slowly, his pulse steadying as he shifted into motion. This had to be it—the strongest spike, the culmination of Blackout’s chaos. Moving with practiced ease, Peter slipped between the towering rows of containers, his steps light and deliberate. The quiet of the docks amplified every sound—the faint rustle of the wind, the soft hum of distant machinery. Every muscle in his body was wound tight.
When he reached the container, he paused, studying it carefully. It looked ordinary enough, but the faint hum of energy coming from within told him otherwise. He pressed his hand against the door, hesitating for just a second before pulling it open.
The interior was dimly lit, empty except for a small box sitting on the floor. He stepped inside cautiously, his senses on high alert as he knelt down to examine it. The box looked almost harmless, but as he opened the lid, his stomach dropped.
Inside was a simple, folded note. He picked it up, the paper crinkling slightly in his gloved hand as he unfolded it. The scrawled writing was bold and mocking:
“Too slow. Better luck next time.” —Blackout
Peter let out a sharp breath, his frustration boiling over as he crumpled the note in his hand. “You’ve got to be kidding me.” Blackout wasn’t just toying with him—he was making a point. And it was infuriating.
Before Peter could dwell on it further, F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s calm, modulated voice filled his HUD with an uncharacteristic urgency. “Warning: Detecting a high-energy spike approximately eight miles west of your current position. Escalation imminent.”
Peter’s eyes widened, his muscles tensing as he processed her words. “Escalation? What kind of escalation?”
“Seismic activity consistent with an explosion,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. responded, her tone clipped. “Impact area: residential zone. Immediate response advised.”
Before she even finished, a blinding flash lit up the night sky, followed by a deafening roar that rattled the very air around him. Peter staggered slightly, his head snapping toward the distant city skyline as a plume of fire and smoke erupted into the sky. The glow painted the buildings in eerie shades of orange and red, the sheer scale of the destruction making his breath hitch.
“Oh, no,” he whispered, his voice barely audible as the horror sank in.
F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice broke through his daze. “Authorities are en route. Casualty risk estimated to be high unless immediate action is taken. Suggested course of action: prioritize rescue and containment.”
Peter was already moving, launching himself from the container with a burst of webbing, his frustration giving way to raw determination. He swung toward the chaos with everything he had, his heart pounding as the distant wail of sirens began to rise. Whatever Blackout’s game was, Peter knew one thing for sure—this wasn’t a game he could afford to lose.
The city was a blur of streaking lights and shadows as Peter swung through the streets, his heart pounding in sync with the adrenaline coursing through his veins. The plume of smoke and fire on the horizon grew larger with every webline he shot, a stark and ominous beacon against the night sky.
F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice broke through his focus, steady but urgent. “Approaching impact site. Structural stability compromised. Recommend prioritizing evacuation and containment.”
Peter swallowed hard, shaking his head to clear it as he pushed himself to move faster. The devastation loomed closer, and as he swung around the final corner, the scene hit him like a punch to the gut.
The building was chaos incarnate—windows shattered, debris scattered across the street, and flames licking up the far side as smoke billowed into the air. People crowded just beyond the caution tape hastily thrown up by first responders, their panicked cries blending with the wail of sirens. But it was the sound from the building itself that made Peter’s breath catch—the low, ominous groaning of metal buckling under the strain. The entire structure shuddered, threatening to collapse at any moment.
“F.R.I.D.A.Y., how bad is it?” Peter asked, his voice tense as he landed on a nearby lamppost, his eyes scanning the scene below.
“Structural integrity is critically low. Data indicates the foundation has shifted. Collapse is imminent.”
Peter gritted his teeth, already leaping toward the building. “Not if I can help it.”
He landed on the roof of a nearby structure, crouching low as he fired his first webline. The sticky strand shot out with precision, anchoring securely to the top corner of the crumbling building. From there,
Peter moved swiftly, almost instinctively—firing webs in rapid succession and weaving them into a thick, reinforced lattice. Each webline connected the unstable building to its sturdier neighbours, forming a makeshift support system.
The building groaned again, louder this time, and Peter’s stomach tightened. He could feel the clock ticking, every second crucial. He swung closer, landing on the crumbling structure’s façade, his hands working faster now as he anchored more weblines. His mind raced alongside his actions, thinking of every possible way to buy just a little more time.
“C’mon, c’mon,” he muttered to himself, his breathing heavy as he pulled each line taut, reinforcing the webbing around the building.
The framework glimmered in the glow of the fire, a fragile yet determined effort to hold everything together. Below him, he could see movement—people still trapped inside, banging on windows, their desperate cries barely audible over the chaos.
“F.R.I.D.A.Y., how much time do I have?” Peter asked, his voice strained as he fired another webline to stabilize the collapsing structure. “Projection indicates collapse within four minutes. Stability is deteriorating. Recommend immediate action.”
Peter nodded sharply, his jaw tightening as he secured the final strand. “Alright, the web’s in place. Let’s hope it holds.” Without hesitation, he swung toward the nearest window, smashing through the glass and landing in the smoky, chaotic interior of the building.
The heat hit him first, suffocating and relentless, as smoke curled around him, making it hard to see. Peter coughed lightly, switching his mask’s filters to compensate as he scanned the room. “F.R.I.D.A.Y., give me a layout.”
“Interior blueprint retrieved. Two potential clusters of occupants detected—first, on the 8th floor west corridor, and second, near the stairwell on the 7th floor.”
Peter launched himself into action, shooting a web to the nearest staircase and hauling himself upward. As he reached the 8th floor, the groaning of the structure grew louder, metal twisting and concrete cracking under the strain. The floor beneath his feet buckled slightly, and Peter gritted his teeth. “Hang on, I’m coming!” he called, his voice cutting through the chaos.
He darted down the west corridor, his enhanced hearing picking up faint coughing and cries for help. Turning a corner, he spotted a group of three—a young couple huddled around a child, all covered in soot and visibly shaken. Relief flashed across their faces as they saw him.
“It’s okay, I’ve got you,” Peter reassured them, shooting a web to create a protective sling. “Hold on tight!” He swung them gently back toward the stairwell, lowering them carefully to safety on the 7th floor landing. “Stay here and keep low,” he instructed. “Help is on the way.”
As he turned back toward the second cluster of occupants, F.R.I.D.A.Y. interrupted. “Structure nearing critical failure. Collapse expected in approximately two minutes. Warning: staircase to the 7th floor is obstructed.”
“Noted,” Peter muttered, veering toward another route. He fired a webline to swing across the broken floor, landing near the stairwell. Through the thick smoke, he spotted more people—a group of five, huddled together near a collapsed beam that was cutting off their escape.
“Everyone stay calm!” Peter called, lifting the beam with a strained grunt as his muscles protested. “Go, now—move!” The group scrambled through the newly cleared path, their coughs and cries a stark reminder of the danger all around them.
He didn’t stop to catch his breath. “F.R.I.D.A.Y., status on the building?”
“Structural integrity is below 10%. Collapse imminent within one minute.”
Peter’s heart pounded as he shot a thick web across the weakened beam for additional support. The groaning of the building grew louder, the entire structure leaning precariously as if on the verge of giving up. He swung toward the nearest exit, his voice sharp with urgency. “Anyone else inside?”
“Thermal scans indicate one additional occupant,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. responded, her tone clipped. “Correction: two. A child and an adult. Location: southeast corner, ground floor. Collapse imminent in sixty seconds.”
Peter froze for a split second, his stomach twisting. “What? Where?” he demanded, already swinging toward the southeast corner. “Guiding you now. Fifty seconds.”
As he neared the corner, a faint, heart-wrenching cry reached his ears. “Mama! Mama!” The voice was small, desperate, and choked with sobs. Peter’s chest tightened as he landed, his eyes scanning through the smoke and debris. A young boy, no older than three, was crouched near a collapsed beam, his face streaked with soot and tears. He was reaching out toward a figure on the ground—a heavily pregnant woman, unconscious and barely breathing.
Peter’s breath hitched. “Oh no,” he muttered, rushing forward. “Hey, buddy, I’m here,” he said, his voice softening as he crouched down beside the boy. “I’m gonna get you and your mom out of here, okay?”
The boy looked up at him, his wide, tear-filled eyes filled with fear and hope. Peter didn’t waste a second. He shot a webline, securing the boy gently to his back. “Hold on tight, kid,” he said, his voice steady despite the chaos around them.
“Thirty seconds,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. warned, her tone urgent.
Peter turned to the mother, carefully lifting her into his arms. She was limp, her breathing shallow, but she was alive. “Alright, let’s do this,” he muttered, firing a webline toward the nearest exit. The building groaned again, louder this time, as if protesting his every move.
With the boy secured to his back and the mother cradled in his arms, Peter leapt from the collapsing structure, twisting mid-air into a headlong dive. The ground rushed toward them at a terrifying speed, the wind whipping past his mask as debris rained down in a chaotic cascade. For a split second, it felt like gravity might win, the weight of the moment pressing against every fiber of his being.
At the last possible second, Peter fired a webline toward a nearby building, the sharp thwip cutting through the chaos. The line went taut, yanking them out of their headlong plunge and swinging them in a graceful arc. The force of the manoeuvre flipped them upright just as they neared the ground, Peter’s feet skidding to a controlled landing amidst the gasps and cheers of the crowd, the sound almost overwhelming as Peter gently set the mother down on a stretcher being rushed over by paramedics.
A man broke through the crowd, his face streaked with tears as he ran toward them. “Sarah! Ethan!” he cried, dropping to his knees beside them. He looked up at Peter, his voice breaking. “Thank you. Thank you—they’re my world. I don’t know how to—thank you.”
Peter gave him a small, reassuring nod, his voice light but steady. “Hey, that’s what friendly neighbourhood Spider-Men are for,” he said, his trademark humour cutting through the tension. He turned, firing a webline to the nearest building as the crowd continued to cheer. “Take care of them,” he called over his shoulder before swinging off into the night.
_____________________________________________________
The soft hum of a quiet program played in the background of [Name]'s apartment, its soothing tones a welcome reprieve from the whirlwind of thoughts swirling in her mind. She sat curled up on her couch, Peter’s jacket still draped over the chair nearby, though she’d hardly glanced at it since throwing it down earlier. The flicker of the TV screen cast a gentle glow across the room, her focus only half on the show she’d chosen to tune out the world.
But then, the program was abruptly interrupted. The screen flashed to live footage, the stark image of flames licking up the side of a building, thick smoke curling into the night sky. [Name] sat up straighter, her brows furrowing as a news reporter’s voice crackled through the speakers.
“This is breaking news,” the reporter announced, their tone urgent and grim. “A massive explosion has caused critical structural damage to a residential building on the East Side. Emergency responders are on site, but the situation remains unstable, and there’s a high risk of injuries. Evacuation efforts are underway…”
[Name] sucked in a sharp breath, her gaze fixed on the screen as the footage panned to the chaos—fire trucks lining the street, paramedics rushing toward the scene, and civilians being guided away from the area. The reporter’s words faded into background noise as her attention was drawn to movement in the smoke.
A sudden whoosh of motion caught her eye, and the camera focused on a figure swinging into action—the unmistakable silhouette of Spider-Man. [Name] felt her pulse quicken, her hand instinctively covering her mouth as she leaned forward.
The broadcast followed him as he darted through the chaos, webbing his way around the crumbling building. He moved quickly, weaving strands of webbing to reinforce the structure, anchoring it to surrounding buildings in a desperate bid to hold it together. The reporter’s voice rose in urgency, barely able to keep up with the intensity of the scene.
“…Spider-Man now assisting in stabilization efforts, attempting to buy time for the evacuation…”
The building let out a loud, ominous groan, the sound sending chills down [Name]’s spine as she watched. The footage zoomed in on him, capturing every agonizing moment as he swung toward the structure, agonizing minutes past by while everyone held their breath. The reporter gasped audibly over the feed, their voice catching. “He’s—he’s carrying someone…”
[Name] couldn’t take her eyes off the screen. Spider-Man’s figure emerged, the child clinging to his back and the pregnant woman cradled in his arms. The camera caught every agonizing beat as he dived head first towards the ground twisted mid-air, firing a webline to flip their trajectory at the last second. He landed solidly on the street below, his movements sure even as the building behind him gave way with a thunderous roar, collapsing into a cloud of debris and smoke.
The sound of cheers and applause erupted in the footage, the crowd rushing forward as a man pushed through the paramedics, his cries audible even over the reporter. “Sarah! Ethan! Oh my God—thank you! Thank you—they’re my world!”
[Name] let out a soft gasp, her hand still covering her mouth as tears stung the corners of her eyes. The camera lingered on Spider-Man for a moment longer, his confident nod to the crowd captured before he swung away, disappearing into the night.
She let out a shaky breath, lowering her hand from her mouth as her gaze lingered on the screen. “You’re incredible,” she whispered softly to herself, the words more awe than anything else.
---------------------------------------------------
The bathroom was quiet, save for the soft hum of the extractor fan and the gentle splashing of water as [Name] rinsed her face. She moved through her bedtime routine on autopilot—removing her makeup with practiced swipes, brushing her teeth, and tying her hair back in a loose bun. Her reflection stared back at her, tired but pensive, as the events of the evening lingered stubbornly in her mind.
With a quiet sigh, she switched off the bathroom light and padded barefoot into the living room, the warmth of her apartment a welcome contrast to the cool tiles she’d just left behind. She was halfway to her bedroom when she paused, her steps faltering as her gaze caught on something draped over the back of a chair—Peter’s plaid jacket.
She stood there for a moment, her head tilting slightly as a thought bubbled up unbidden. Would it be weird…?
She shook her head, huffing a soft laugh at herself as she turned and started toward her bedroom. But her feet slowed again, her gaze sliding back to the jacket. Something about it tugged at her, like it carried the weight of more than just borrowed fabric. After a beat, she pivoted, taking a few measured steps back to the chair. She picked the jacket up gently, her fingers brushing over the soft, worn plaid.
Lifting it closer, she caught the faintest trace of Peter’s scent—a mix of something warm and familiar, uniquely him. It was oddly comforting, wrapping around her like a quiet reassurance she hadn’t realized she needed.
Without giving herself time to second-guess, she hugged the jacket close and turned toward her bedroom. The covers felt cooler than usual as she slipped beneath them, the jacket clutched loosely in her arms. It wasn’t much, but it was enough. Enough to make the thoughts swirling in her mind seem a little less loud, enough to bring the hint of a smile to her lips as her eyelids grew heavier.
---------------------------------------------------
The soft morning light filtered through the curtains as [Name] stirred awake, her hand instinctively reaching for her phone on the nightstand. She blinked against the brightness of the screen, her thumb swiping through notifications until her eyes landed on a new message from Megan.
“You are not going to mope another day longer! I told you if he didn’t get his shit together, I was gonna take you out and get you laid!”
[Name] let out a small laugh, shaking her head as she typed back a quick reply. “Meg. I just want to go out and enjoy ourselves. No boys, no drama, just us!”
Satisfied with her response, she hit send and swiped back to her messages. Her thumb hovered over her chat with Peter, the familiar thread pulling at her like a loose thread on a sweater. She tapped it, her heart sinking slightly as her last message stared back at her, unanswered.
It had been over a week since she’d sent it—a simple, lighthearted text meant to keep the conversation going after their kiss. But the radio silence that followed had been deafening. She’d told herself not to overthink it, not to read too much into it. But now, staring at the empty space where his reply should’ve been, the hurt crept in, uninvited.
She sighed, locking her phone and setting it down on the bed beside her. Maybe she’d misread things. Maybe that kiss hadn’t meant as much to him as it had to her. Either way, the lack of response was a message in itself—one she couldn’t ignore.
The soft clink of the spoon echoed in the quiet kitchen as [Name] stirred her tea, watching the warm tendrils of steam curl upward before setting the mug down. She shuffled into the living room, still wearing her sleep shorts and an oversized hoodie, and sank onto the couch. Her laptop was already waiting for her, and she pulled it onto her lap with practiced ease, her fingers tapping rhythmically as the screen lit up.
Work emails came first—a handful of quick responses to tie up loose ends before the weekend. She fired them off efficiently, barely glancing twice before moving on. Once the inbox was clear, she clicked into a few news tabs to skim the headlines.
Her attention froze on one story, though, her lips pressing into a line as she read. The image of a crumbling building filled the screen, alongside headlines detailing Spider-Man’s recent rescues. Another building collapse… a power grid battle that plunged part of the city into darkness… each story painted the same picture: chaos, danger, and Spider-Man swinging into action just in time. The headlines felt heavier than usual, especially after the live footage she’d watched only days ago.
With a quiet sigh, she minimized the news tab and opened a document she and Megan had been working on for weeks. It was a messy project born from curiosity—and maybe a little obsession—attempting to track Spider-Man’s movements and pinpoint Blackout’s possible next steps. She stared at the digital mini-map embedded in the file, the red pins marking previous incidents scattered across the city like drops of blood.
Everything felt maddeningly random. Despite their efforts to connect the dots, there was no discernible pattern in Blackout’s attacks. But [Name] wasn’t ready to give up. She added new pins for the latest incidents, watching as the map grew more cluttered with chaos. Her brows furrowed, frustration creeping in as she zoomed out, hoping for some new angle, some fresh perspective that would make the picture clearer.
Nothing yet. But Spider-Man’s relentless fight—and Blackout’s destructive spree—was becoming harder to ignore. She leaned back against the cushions, the mug of tea growing lukewarm beside her, and stared at the screen. Whatever Blackout had planned left a bad feeling in her gut.
The light knock at the door barely registered over the low hum of the kettle in the kitchen. [Name] frowned, glancing toward the clock—it was still early. Padding to the door, she peeked through the peephole before opening it to reveal Ned, holding a medium-sized parcel with both hands, looking slightly sheepish.
“Ned?” she said, blinking in surprise. “What are you doing here?”
“Hey!” Ned greeted her with a bright smile. He held up the parcel. “This came for you yesterday, but you weren’t home when I first knocked, so… I thought I’d try again this morning.”
[Name] furrowed her brows, looking down at the package as she opened the door wider. “I didn’t order anything.”
“Well, it’s got your name on it,” Ned said, stepping inside as she gestured him in. He glanced around, taking in her apartment with wide eyes. “Whoa, this place is really nice. Like… magazine-spread nice. Do you have, like, a secret interior design side hustle or something?”
She laughed lightly, closing the door behind him. “Thanks, Ned. I’ll let you know if I decide to start charging people for couch-placement advice. Can I get you some tea or coffee?”
He held up a hand, shaking his head. “Nah, I’m good. Thanks, though. I’ll just, uh, supervise the unboxing,” he added, giving her a grin as he nodded toward the parcel.
[Name] chuckled and grabbed the package, bringing it to the couch. She sat down and began peeling away the packaging while Ned stood nearby, rocking on the balls of his feet. Inside, nestled carefully between layers of tissue paper, was… a dress. A sleek black one at that—backless, with a plunging neckline that swept daringly low, held up by a single delicate strap.
She froze for a second, holding it up with an incredulous expression. Ned’s eyes went comically wide as a flush crept up his cheeks. “Whoa! That’s, uh—wow. That’s, um…” He cleared his throat, looking anywhere but at the dress. “Is it hot in here? Or is that just… that dress?”
[Name] let out an exasperated laugh, dropping the garment back into the box. “I didn’t buy it!” she declared, shaking her head. “I have no idea why—wait, are you sure this was addressed to me?” Ned raised his hands, his face still red. “I swear! It had your name on it! Maybe someone has secret plans for your next party or something?”
She gave him a pointed look, crossing her arms. “Do I look like someone who plans parties with surprise backless dresses?”
“Well, now you look like someone who owns one,” he shot back quickly, though his voice was tinged with nervous laughter.
[Name] shook her head, snorting despite herself. “Okay, okay. Very funny. I’ll… figure out this little mystery later.”
Ned, still looking mildly flustered, glanced at his watch. “Alright, I should probably head out. Got some errands to run.” As he moved toward the door, he caught a glimpse of her laptop screen on the coffee table—the mini-map littered with pins marking Blackout’s attacks. His expression flickered briefly, but he said nothing, instead giving her a quick wave. “Uh, let me know if another surprise dress shows up, okay?”
She rolled her eyes but smiled, following him to the door. “I’ll keep you updated, Dress Patrol.”
As she shut the door behind him, [Name] shook her head and looked back at the sleek black dress still lying innocently in the box. “Who on earth…?” she murmured, her mind already racing.
As [Name] sat cross-legged on the couch, sipping the last of her now-cold tea, her phone buzzed with an incoming call. She glanced at the screen and smiled faintly—it was Megan. Swiping to answer, she brought the phone to her ear.
“Hey, Meg,” she said, leaning back against the cushions.
“Hey, babe,” Megan replied, her tone light and playful. “Just checking in to make sure you’re not gonna flake on me tonight. Moonlight Lounge. Eight-thirty. Don’t pretend you forgot.”
“I didn’t forget,” [Name] assured her, rolling her eyes with a small laugh. “I’ll be there. Just, uh, trying to figure out what to wear.”
“Oh, please,” Megan said, a mischievous edge creeping into her voice. “I already solved that problem for you. You did get the dress, right?”
[Name] blinked, sitting up straighter. “Wait—that was you? Megan, how did you even know my size?”
“Uh, hello? I went through your wardrobe, obviously,” Megan replied, her tone casual but teasing. “What, you thought I’d just guess? Babe, I’ve been paying attention. I know what looks good on you, trust me.”
[Name] groaned, burying her face in her free hand. “Megan! That’s… that’s an invasion of privacy!”
“Oh, calm down,” Megan said, laughing. “You’re welcome, by the way. That dress is killer. You’re gonna look hot enough to melt ice cubes, and you know it.”
[Name] sighed, torn between exasperation and reluctant gratitude. “Fine. I’ll wear it. But only because you’ve made me curious now.”
“Atta girl,” Megan said smugly. “Eight-thirty. Moonlight Lounge. No excuses, babe. We’re gonna have fun, and you’re gonna look amazing.”
[Name] shook her head, a small smile creeping onto her face. “Yeah, yeah, I’ll be there. Just don’t expect me to buy you a drink after this wardrobe stunt.”
“Deal,” Megan replied breezily. “See you tonight!”
-----------------------------------------------------------
The soft glow of the vanity lights bathed [Name] in a warm, flattering hue as she leaned closer to the mirror, her steady hand applying the final swipe of cherry-toned lip gloss. Her hair cascaded in loose, flowing curls, framing her face and catching the light with every subtle movement. Her eye makeup was flawless, the smoky tones and precise liner making her eyes pop with an intensity that even she couldn’t ignore.
She reached for her gold dangly earrings, the delicate chains swaying gently as she fastened them in place. Next came the necklace—a simple yet striking piece with an arrow pendant pointing downward, resting just above her collarbone. It was understated but elegant, the perfect finishing touch.
Standing, she crossed the room to where the dress lay draped over the back of a chair. She ran her fingers over the sleek black fabric, a small smile tugging at her lips as she picked it up. Slipping it on, she let the cool material glide over her skin, the plunging neckline and backless design fitting her like a glove. She reached behind her neck to fasten the thin strap, then stepped back to take in her reflection.
For a moment, she simply stared. The woman in the mirror looked confident, radiant, and undeniably stunning. She tilted her head slightly, a soft laugh escaping her lips. “I’ll have to remind myself to thank Megan,” she murmured. “Because… damn.”
Grabbing her vanilla-scented body mist, she spritzed it lightly over her neck and wrists, the sweet, warm fragrance wrapping around her like a comforting embrace. She slipped on her black lace-up heels, the delicate straps winding up her calves, adding just the right amount of edge to her look.
Finally, she reached for her little clutch bag, double-checking its contents: phone, keys and lip gloss. Everything she needed for the night ahead. Taking one last glance in the mirror, she straightened her posture, her lips curving into a small, confident smile.
She was ready.
The heels of [Name]’s black lace-up shoes clicked against the stairwell as she descended, her clutch bag tucked securely under her arm. It was just past 8 p.m., and the evening air beyond the apartment complex promised excitement and freedom—exactly what she needed. After being ghosted by Peter, tonight wasn’t about him, or any boy for that matter. It was about shaking off the frustration and reclaiming her joy. She felt it in her step—a little faster, a little lighter, as though her mood had finally caught up to the rhythm of her heels.
She reached the bottom of the stairs and could already hear the sound of laughter spilling through the complex’s main entrance. Her lips curved into a small smile, the noise sparking a sense of curiosity as she approached the door. With a gentle push, she stepped outside—and immediately her eyes landed on a trio gathered just a few feet away.
There was Ned, his signature grin lighting up his round face, chatting animatedly with a woman who looked effortlessly cool with her auburn hair tied up in a messy bun. Beside them stood a guy, laughing as he looked down at the ground—shoulders relaxed, his stance casual yet familiar.
[Name]’s smile widened as she started to call out to Ned, lifting her hand slightly in greeting. But before she could speak, Ned beat her to it, his voice booming with warmth. “Hey! [Name]! Guys, this is my neighbor—the one I was telling you about!”
She opened her mouth to introduce herself, her gaze shifting to Ned’s friends. The woman offered a friendly smile, but it was the guy’s reaction that froze her in place. The moment his laughter died down and he looked up, her breath caught in her throat.
It was Peter.
His eyes widened as his head tilted upward, his shock evident and unmistakable. “Wait—[Name]?” he called out, his voice carrying a mix of disbelief and… something else.
[Name]’s smile faltered the moment his voice cut through the air, her expression dimming like a light switch flipped off. Her gaze shifted to the side, pointedly avoiding him as she straightened her posture and clutched her bag a little tighter.
“[Name]?” Peter tried again, his tone a little softer, tinged with something that might have been guilt or desperation. He took a step forward, but her lack of acknowledgment stopped him in his tracks.
Ned blinked, his expression torn between confusion and curiosity as he glanced back and forth between Peter and [Name]. “Wait, wait—hold up. How do you know [Name], Peter?” he asked, his voice rising slightly as he tried to make sense of the sudden tension hanging in the air.
Before Peter could answer, MJ stepped closer, her sharp eyes glinting with realization. She crossed her arms, a smirk playing on her lips as she tilted her head toward Peter. “Oh, I get it,” she said, dragging out the words in a teasing tone. “This is the girl you’ve been talking about, Peter?” She whistled low, her smirk widening slightly. “Okay, wow. You were not kidding.”
At her words, [Name] finally turned, her gaze snapping to MJ with an arched brow and a flicker of surprise. But her reaction was brief; her posture remained stiff, and she refused to look directly at Peter, even as she could feel his eyes locked on her.
“What are the chances?” Ned said, his voice edged with disbelief as he glanced between the three of them. His grin wavered as he took another look at [Name,] his gaze catching on the way her sleek black dress hugged her frame and how her curled hair fell perfectly over her shoulders. “Wow, uh—wow,” he stammered, his cheeks flushing bright red. “You—you look… I mean, amazing. Just… amazing.”
MJ snorted softly beside him, raising her brow. “You okay there, Ned? You look like you’re about to faint.”
“Wha—no! I’m fine. Totally fine,” Ned replied quickly, though his voice cracked slightly as he cleared his throat. He rubbed the back of his neck, suddenly very aware of how much quieter Peter had gotten.
Peter tried again, his tone gentler now, almost pleading. “[Name], can we just—please, can we talk?”
This time, [Name] stopped, her gaze snapping to meet his. Her lips pressed into a tight line, and her voice came out steady, though there was a clear edge to it. “What is there to talk about, Peter?”
The question hung in the air like a challenge, and Peter faltered, his mouth opening and closing as if searching for the right words. His face betrayed his frustration at being caught off guard, the usual confidence replaced by hesitation.
She sighed sharply, brushing a curl away from her face as she shifted her clutch to her other hand. “I got the message loud and clear, Peter.”
“What message?” he asked, his brow furrowing as he took a hesitant step toward her. There was something in his voice—genuine confusion mixed with the beginnings of panic.
Her expression softened slightly, though her sigh carried the weight of her bottled-up emotions. “I can’t go into this with your friends standing right here,” she said quietly, her gaze flicking briefly to MJ and Ned, who were hanging back but clearly invested in the unfolding exchange.
MJ, true to her style, raised a brow as she leaned slightly closer to Ned. “So, uh, is this what they meant by ‘awkward tension’?” she muttered just loud enough for him to hear.
Ned, caught between fascination and discomfort, cleared his throat, his cheeks coloring slightly. “I, uh… I didn’t realize it’d be this awkward,” he whispered back, still unable to tear his eyes away from the scene unfolding before him.
Peter barely seemed to register his friends’ presence, his focus fixed entirely on [Name]. “Please, can we—can we talk somewhere?” he asked, his voice quieter now, tinged with something vulnerable.
Her gaze finally flicked up to meet his, and the world seemed to narrow into just the two of them. Peter’s deep brown eyes, soft yet piercing, locked onto hers. For a moment, she melted under the weight of his stare, her resolve breaking piece by piece. The tension hung heavy between them, words unspoken yet loud in the silence.
“I… I can’t right now,” she murmured, her voice quieter now, tinged with something fragile. She shook her head slightly, forcing herself to break away from his gaze even as her chest tightened. “I have somewhere to be.”
Peter’s eyes trailed her form for a split second, taking in the way the sleek black dress hugged her figure and how effortlessly the gold details glinted against her skin. He swallowed hard, his Adam’s apple bobbing nervously as his expression shifted—his own resolve clearly faltering. It wasn’t just surprise or hesitation now; there was something darker, deeper, in the way his gaze lingered.
His brown eyes darkened as he fought the urge to say something—anything—that might keep her from walking away. She could feel the intensity of his stare, like it held the unspoken words he couldn’t quite bring himself to say. A faint heat rose in her cheeks, her skin prickling under his scrutiny, the feeling entirely unsettling yet something she couldn’t entirely ignore.
Peter’s gaze lingered on her for a moment longer before he looked away, his hand coming up to ruffle his hair in that familiar, nervous gesture. He cleared his throat, his voice soft but sincere as he said, “You look… stunning.”
[Name] blinked, her resolve wavering slightly as her cheeks warmed. She glanced at him briefly, her voice quiet but steady. “Thank you.”
She quickly looked away, clutching her bag a little tighter. The silence that followed was short-lived, broken by MJ’s sharp, curious tone. “So, where are you headed all dressed up?” she asked, her smirk returning as she tilted her head slightly.
[Name] turned to her, her expression softening. “The Moonlight Lounge,” she replied casually, though she could feel Peter’s gaze snapping back to her at the mention of the name.
Ned’s eyes widened, his voice rising with excitement. “Wait, the open-top nightclub? That place is supposed to be amazing!”
MJ raised a brow, her smirk deepening. “Fancy. Is it a date you’re going on?” she asked, her tone teasing as she leaned slightly closer, clearly enjoying the moment.
Peter’s stomach dropped at the question, his chest tightening as he stared at [Name], waiting for her answer. The thought of her going on a date—of her being with someone else—made his heart sink in a way he hadn’t expected.
But [Name] shook her head, her voice calm and matter-of-fact. “No, it’s not a date,” she said simply, glancing briefly at MJ before looking away again.
Peter exhaled softly, the tension in his shoulders easing as relief washed over him. He didn’t say anything, but the subtle shift in his expression was impossible to miss—his eyes softening, his posture relaxing just slightly.
[Name] straightened her posture, her expression composed as she glanced at the group. Her voice was polite, even, but carried a subtle finality. “I have to go now. It was nice meeting you, MJ. See you later, Ned.”
Her gaze shifted, landing on Peter for a moment that felt longer than it actually was. Her lips pressed into a faint smile, though there was a hint of coolness in her tone as she added, “Bye, Peter.”
Before he could respond, she turned away, raising her hand to hail a cab. The taxi slowed to a stop, and she stepped inside without looking back, leaving the three of them standing there, the weight of her parting words settling in the cool evening air.
----------------------------------------------------------
The trio walked along the quiet street toward Ned’s apartment complex, their conversation weaving between theories about Blackout and Spider-Man’s latest sightings. The night air carried a crisp chill, the glow of the streetlights casting elongated shadows that danced on the pavement with each step.
“So,” Ned began, his voice picking up with excitement as he swung his arms slightly, “I think we should look at some patterns—maybe see if there’s a connection between Blackout’s attacks and, like, power grid vulnerabilities or something.”
“Power grid vulnerabilities?” MJ repeated, a skeptical brow raised. “What are you, an electrical engineer now?”
“No,” Ned replied indignantly. “I’m just saying! These villains always have a thing, you know? Like, Green Goblin had his bombs, Doc Ock had his arms. Maybe Blackout’s thing is all about electricity or infrastructure!”
Peter, walking slightly behind them, glanced up from the ground and shrugged. “He’s not wrong. Blackout’s attacks have all been centred around places with heavy power usage.”
Ned nodded enthusiastically, as if validated. “Exactly! And, uh, actually… this morning, I saw something interesting. My neighbour had this map up on her laptop—like, a mini-map with pins all over the city.”
MJ raised a brow, intrigued. “What kind of pins? Like, ‘tourist attractions’ pins, or ‘this-is-where-suspicious-stuff-is-happening’ pins?”
“Definitely the second one,” Ned said, his voice dropping slightly as though he were sharing a secret. “I didn’t get a super close look, but some of the pins were at places where Blackout’s attacked. And then there were other ones in places where I’m not sure what’s going on.”
Peter’s brow furrowed, his interest piqued despite himself. “You’re sure?” he asked, his voice sharpening slightly as he quickened his pace to match Ned’s. “Do you think your neighbour's been tracking the attacks?”
“I don’t know,” Ned admitted, scratching the back of his head. “Maybe? She’s cool, but I didn’t ask her about it. I figured that’d be weird, you know? Like, ‘Hey, are you secretly investigating supervillains in your spare time?’” He laughed nervously.
MJ smirked, shoving her hands into her jacket pockets. “Sounds like a missed opportunity to me. But honestly, if your neighbour's onto something, she might actually be useful. What do you think, Parker?”
Peter hesitated, his gaze dropping to the ground again. His thoughts were already spinning, piecing together what Ned had said with what he’d seen of Blackout’s movements. “I think… we should take a closer look. Sketch out the map if you remember it, Ned. It might help.”
“On it,” Ned said, giving a mock salute as they came to a stop at the building. “Anyway, you guys are lucky I’m such a people person. My neighbor and I are practically BFFs. She totally doesn’t think I’m weird.”
MJ snorted, following him inside. “Totally. Not weird at all.”
Peter stood just a step behind Ned and MJ, his head tilted downward as laughter bubbled from him, the kind that felt easy and unguarded for the first time in days. Ned’s familiar exuberance filled the air as he animatedly chatted about something Peter hadn’t been entirely focused on—but it was enough to keep him grounded in the moment.
The faint creak of the apartment door swinging open caught his attention, but he didn’t look up right away. He continued to laugh softly, his shoulders relaxing as he let the night settle over them.
“Hey! [Name]!” Ned’s voice boomed suddenly, sharp and bright, cutting through Peter’s laughter like a switch being flipped. “Guys, this is my neighbour—the one I was telling you about!”
Peter froze, the name ringing in his ears. He blinked, his thoughts momentarily scattered, as he processed what Ned had just said. Neighbor? [Name]? His heart seemed to skip a beat.
Slowly, as if the weight of realization were pulling him upward, Peter’s head lifted. His laughter faded entirely as his gaze landed on her. [Name], standing just a few feet away in a sleek black dress that made his throat tighten and his thoughts grind to a halt. Her curls framed her face perfectly, her lips tinted with a cherry gloss that caught the light just enough to make him forget how to breathe.
“Wait—[Name]?” he said, his voice cracking slightly as disbelief washed over him. His shock was evident, unmistakable, and it quickly morphed into something deeper—a mix of emotions he couldn’t quite place. Surprise, guilt, relief, and something that tugged painfully at his chest all at once.
She froze too, her smile faltering as their gazes locked. Peter felt the world tilt slightly, as if everything had shifted on its axis. She’s Ned’s neighbour! The thought struck him like a bolt of lightning, connecting dots he hadn’t even realized were scattered. He tried again, his voice softer this time, almost hesitant. “[Name]…”
But she didn’t acknowledge him, her posture stiffening as she clutched her bag tighter. Peter felt the weight of her silence, and for a moment, he couldn’t move.
Ned, confused and flustered, blurted, “How do you know [Name], Peter?” His words hung awkwardly, but before Peter could even attempt an answer, MJ crossed her arms and smirked knowingly.
“Oh, I get it,” she teased, dragging the words out with a whistle. “This is the girl you’ve been talking about? Wow, you weren’t kidding.”
Peter’s face burned as [Name] glanced at MJ, her brow arching slightly before turning away again, resolutely refusing to look at him.
Ned stammered something about how amazing she looked, MJ ribbed him lightly, but Peter couldn’t focus—his attention remained tethered to her.
“[Name], can we talk?” he asked finally, his voice gentle but heavy with emotion. When her gaze snapped back to his, the air seemed to shift. Her eyes were sharp, her lips pressing into a tight line as she said coolly, “What is there to talk about, Peter?”
Her words were a challenge, and Peter found himself faltering, his thoughts scattering as guilt knotted in his chest. She sighed sharply, brushing her hair away and gripping her clutch. “I got the message loud and clear,” she said.
“What message?” he asked, his confusion genuine as he took a step closer.
She softened, though her sigh carried exhaustion. “I can’t go into this with your friends standing right here,” she admitted quietly, her glance flicking briefly to MJ and Ned.
Peter’s heart sank as he watched her, feeling the space between them widen in ways he couldn’t control. “You look… stunning,” he managed, his voice sincere but nervous, like the words had escaped without permission.
She blinked, her cheeks warming briefly as she replied softly, “Thank you.” Her gaze moved away from him as she straightened.
When MJ asked where she was headed, Peter held his breath as [Name] replied, “The Moonlight Lounge.” Ned’s excitement and MJ’s teasing about whether it was a date made Peter’s stomach drop. But her simple “No, it’s not a date” sent relief flooding through him, though he couldn’t ignore the pit still lingering in his chest.
“I have to go now,” she said finally, her tone polite but resolute. She offered brief goodbyes to MJ and Ned, then her eyes fell on him one last time. “Bye, Peter.”
The words felt heavy as they hit him, like doors closing in his mind. He watched her hail a cab, slipping inside without a glance back, and the weight of everything settled over him like a slow, suffocating fog.
Peter’s new phone buzzed in his pocket, the vibration cutting through his turbulent thoughts. He hesitated before pulling it out, his heart sinking when he read the message displayed on the screen.
Tony Stark: Emergency at the tower. Get here, stat.
Peter cursed under his breath, the weight of the moment crashing down on him. He glanced up at Ned and MJ, his face etched with urgency. “I’ve gotta go,” he said quickly, shoving the phone back into his pocket.
Ned blinked, confused. “What—right now? Like, right this second?” “Yes, right this second,” Peter said, his tone sharp but not unkind. His gaze darted toward the alley as he mentally mapped out the quickest route to the tower. “It’s important.”
MJ, ever perceptive, narrowed her eyes at him. “This wouldn’t happen to be a Spider-Man-level important, would it?” she asked, her voice low enough that only the three of them could hear.
Peter didn’t respond, but the slight flicker in his expression was answer enough. MJ sighed and shook her head, crossing her arms. “Fine, go do your thing. We’ve got it covered here.”
Ned perked up suddenly, pointing a finger in the air. “Wait, we’ll go to the lounge! You know, smooth things over with [Name]. Help you get back in her good graces.”
Peter hesitated, his gaze snapping to Ned. “I—what? No, you don’t have to do that.”
“Uh, yeah, we do,” MJ said, already pulling her hair free from the bun and shaking it out. The loose waves fell around her shoulders as she tugged her jacket open, revealing a low cut top beneath. “See? We’ll blend right in. Besides, someone’s gotta clean up this mess you made.”
Peter’s lips twitched into the ghost of a smile despite himself. “Thanks, guys,” he muttered before turning on his heel and jogging toward the alley.
“Don’t mention it!” Ned called after him, cupping his hands around his mouth. “We’ll take care of it—you can count on us!”
Peter glanced back briefly, offering a grateful nod, before disappearing into the shadows of the alley. Moments later, the faint sound of web-shooters filled the air, and he swung upward into the night, heading toward the tower with his thoughts still trailing behind him.
------------------------------------------------------------
I really hope this doesn't feel rushed? Trying to lay ground work but also add different parts into the story is so hard! there's also like 2 parts in this, I made it longer then normal. next part will have the club scene, I have started to write the part already 😊 so hopefully it wont take long.
Tagged List: @elianamarie-blog
Tumblr media
15 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 3 months ago
Text
Tumblr media Tumblr media
~ A Little Taste of Heaven ~ (Peter Parker x Fem!Reader) (5/10)
Tumblr media Tumblr media
_____________________________________________________
🎵🎶Hold On Me • Kygo, Sandro Cavazza🎶🎵
_____________________________________________________
Warnings:Angst/Sad/Pain/humour/Action Summary: "Peter, MJ, and Ned discussed Blackout’s recent attacks on criminal bases linked to alien tech, brainstorming ways to uncover his motives, while Ned hyped his mysterious neighbour. Meanwhile, [Name] and Megan analyzed footage of Spider-Man’s battle with Blackout, recognizing a green energy pulse matching flashes [Name] had seen while flying to Manhattan, suspecting Blackout had practiced his attacks. Megan suggested checking public records for overlooked patterns. Later, Megan teased [Name] about her relationship with Peter, who frequently disappears for “emergencies,” leaving [Name] feeling frustrated but still wanting to be a priority."
_____________________________________________________
Peter jogged quickly through the busy streets, dodging pedestrians and muttering to himself. “Really? Of course. Everything was going great—amazing food, [Name] was smiling, and now this. Just typical.” He ducked into an alleyway, his nerves jittering as the weight of the emergency settled on his shoulders.
Glancing around, he made sure the coast was clear before yanking his backpack off and unzipping it. He groaned softly as he pulled out the Spider-Man suit. “Yup, glamorous life, right here,” he mumbled, kicking off his shoes and stuffing his regular clothes into the bag. “One day—just one day—I’ll get through dinner without something blowing up.”
Webbing the backpack securely to the wall above a dumpster, he pointed at it with a mock stern look. “Stay put, buddy. Don’t let anyone mess with you. We’ve been through too much.” He sighed, pulling the mask over his face and launching himself upward in one smooth motion.
Swinging between buildings, the rush of air hit his face as neon signs blurred below. “F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” he called, the usual adrenaline kicking in despite his frustration. “Hudson Yards—what’s the situation?”
F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice chimed calmly in his ear. “Visuals incoming, sir.”
A projection flickered in front of him, showing aerial shots of Hudson Yards. As the images zoomed in, Peter’s stomach dropped—he knew that figure. Clad in black armour with glowing highlights, the villain stood atop a building, a twisted hoverboard at his feet. It was the same guy he’d run into that morning—a chance encounter that ended in a narrow escape and the promise of “next time.”
“Well,” Peter muttered to himself, his grip tightening on his web-shooters, “looks like it’s next time. Time to kick this guy’s butt.”
The projection shifted, showing the villain hurling something high into the air. The glowing orb detonated mid-flight, scattering sparks and debris across the street below. Peter winced as people scrambled to safety. “Bombs. Really? That’s his thing? Super original.”
Adjusting his swing, he narrowed his eyes as he approached the scene. “Okay, Parker. You know the deal—black armour, hoverboard, big scary bombs. You’ve got this. Just don’t let him blow up the city. Again.”
Landing on a rooftop nearby, he crouched low, his pulse quickening as F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice chimed again. “Hudson Yards perimeter is being evacuated. NYPD response en route.”
“Good,” Peter muttered, his focus narrowing in on the villain as another energy bomb shattered a nearby billboard. “Because I’m so done with this guy.” With one last breath, he shot a web toward the chaos below, diving headfirst into the action.
Swinging high above the city, Peter couldn’t help the small sigh that escaped him. “Man, Parker, you really outdid yourself tonight,” he muttered under his breath, flipping mid-air to shoot another web. “First date—uh, dinner! Not even technically a date or was it a date?—and you still managed to blow it. Well done.”
As he soared past the glowing city skyline, he groaned, feeling the guilt twist his stomach. “And I didn’t even think she’d say yes. Like, it took all my courage just to ask, and she actually said yes—and I somehow thought I’d get the evening off from all this Spider-Man stuff. But nooooo, Mister Tall, Dark, and Hoverboard just had to show up!”
He swung lower, catching sight of the gleaming Hudson Yards buildings in the distance. The weight of the evening pressed harder as the thoughts kept coming. “Okay, new plan: I’ll make it up to her. Flowers? Do people still do flowers? Or—oh! A bear! Like one of those big, fluffy ones. Would she like that? Probably. Who doesn’t like bears?”
He let out a sigh mid-swing, twisting to avoid a billboard. “Ugh, Parker. You’re overthinking this. Just survive this first, then figure out how to not be the worst dinner companion in the world.”
F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s calm voice interrupted his spiralling thoughts. “Peter, updated visuals incoming.”
The projection reappeared in his field of view, zooming in on the villain perched menacingly atop a skyscraper. Another glowing green orb left his hand, arcing through the sky before detonating in a violent explosion. The blast lit up the night, scattering debris onto the streets below.
Peter winced, narrowing his eyes. “Okay. That’s enough showboating for one evening.” He adjusted his web-shooters, his grip tightening as he shot toward the chaos ahead. The humour in his voice was replaced with quiet determination as he muttered to himself, “Game face on, Parker.”
Landing on a nearby rooftop, Peter crouched low, gripping the edge tightly as his pulse quickened. Below, the villain launched another energy bomb, the blast rattling the glass windows of the building Peter was perched on.
“Hudson Yards perimeter evacuated. NYPD are establishing a containment zone,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. informed him.
Peter nodded, his jaw setting as his focus locked on the villain. “Good. Let’s shut this guy down before he takes out the whole block.” With a deep breath, he launched himself into the air, heading straight for the fight.
Peter landed on a rooftop just a short distance away from the black-armoured figure, the soles of his suit's boots skidding slightly against the concrete. He straightened, brushing imaginary dust off his gloves with exaggerated nonchalance. “So,” he called out, his voice echoing against the surrounding buildings, “we meet again. Let me guess—you forgot to RSVP to the hero-villain convention this morning?”
The villain didn’t turn at first, seemingly more interested in adjusting one of the glowing green energy bombs in his hand. The hum of his hoverboard filled the air as it hovered ominously beneath him. Finally, he glanced over his shoulder, his expression unreadable beneath the dark visor. “You’re so predictable,” the villain said, his tone low and unimpressed. “Swinging in at the last second, cracking jokes no one asked for. Do you ever shut up?”
Peter put his hands on his hips, tilting his head to the side. “Not really my style. I’m more of a ‘talk through my problems’ kind of guy.” He gestured toward the energy bomb the villain was holding. “Speaking of, that thing? Not exactly neighbour-friendly. You planning to return your hoverboard to the store and call it a night, or are we doing this?”
The villain turned fully now, his armour glinting menacingly in the city lights. He tilted his head, almost as if amused. And hurled the glowing green bomb high into the air. It detonated with a deafening boom, sending shockwaves through the area.
Peter stumbled slightly from the force, steadying himself as debris rained down in the distance. He clenched his fists, his usual playful tone fading into quiet determination. “Alright, game face, Parker,” he muttered to himself.
“Let’s dance.”
The villain didn’t bother with a response, simply hurling one of the glowing green bombs in Peter’s direction with a sharp flick of his wrist. Peter’s Spider-Sense tingled, and he instinctively launched a web, catching the bomb mid-arc and yanking it upward into the sky. The explosion boomed harmlessly above the rooftops, scattering sparks like fireworks.
“Whoa!” Peter called, twisting to avoid debris. “Could we maybe not? I just got this suit cleaned!”
The villain tilted his head slightly, as though mocking Peter’s effort. Then, with a sudden burst of speed, he shot forward, his hoverboard’s air compressors roaring to life. Peter barely had time to brace himself before the villain lunged, delivering a sharp kick aimed directly at Peter’s chest.
Peter crossed his arms defensively, blocking the hit and skidding back a few feet from the sheer force of it. But before he could recover, the villain flipped in mid-air, bringing his other leg down in a full-force axe kick aimed for Peter’s head.
His Spider-Sense blared like an alarm, and Peter ducked just in time, the villain’s boot slicing through the air above him. “Man, someone’s been watching too many kung fu movies!” Peter quipped, rolling to the side as the villain landed with precision.
Springing to his feet, Peter swung his leg out in a sweeping motion, aiming to catch the villain off balance. But the black-armoured fighter leapt gracefully over Peter’s attack, landing just a step away with eerie ease. The hoverboard hissed as it moved back into place, its faint hum filling the air.
Peter straightened, glancing at the board and raising an eyebrow under his mask. “Okay, first of all, that’s cheating. Second of all—seriously, do you come with an instruction manual? Because I’m gonna need a guide to keep up.”
The villain didn’t answer, simply reaching for another glowing orb, a faint chuckle emanating from his helmet. Peter crouched again, his web-shooters primed. His mind raced, every muscle tensed as he prepared for the next move.
"You can’t catch me, little spider,” the villain said, his voice distorted through the helmet, low and almost amused.
Peter narrowed his eyes under the mask, his jaw tightening. “Watch me,” he shot back, firing a web at the villain’s chest with precision. But before the web could reach, the villain surged forward, his hoverboard roaring to life as he darted through the air like a bullet.
“Whoa, whoa, WHOA!” Peter yelped as the villain slammed into him mid-swing. Peter barely had time to register the hit before the villain gripped him by the arm and dragged him downward. They careened along the side of a skyscraper, the force of the descent leaving a trail of shattered windows and twisted metal in their wake.
Peter twisted desperately in the villain’s grip, glass slicing against his suit and sending sharp jolts of pain through his ribs. “Not cool, dude! NOT COOL!” he yelled, each impact against the building leaving him more winded. “Like, did I accidentally insult your hoverboard? Is that why you’re mad?”
The villain didn’t respond, his grip vice-like as the hoverboard tilted sharply to the side, angling them closer to the ground. Peter’s mind raced as adrenaline surged through him. Spotting the corner of the building ahead, he acted fast. A quick shot of his web-shooter latched onto the edge, the line snapping taut as he yanked himself free with a forceful pull.
The sudden jerk sent Peter tumbling through the air, flipping twice before he landed hard on a rooftop nearby. He hit the concrete with a grunt, the impact sending a sharp sting through his already aching ribs. Gasping for breath, he clutched his side, his chest heaving. “Okay, okay,” he muttered, trying to push himself upright. “This is fine. Totally fine. I just need to… not die.”
Above him, the villain hovered menacingly, his black armour glinting against the city lights. A faint hum signalled the activation of another glowing green bomb. With a casual flick of his wrist, the villain sent the orb hurtling toward Peter with alarming accuracy.
Peter’s Spider-Sense flared, and he rolled instinctively, the bomb detonating just inches from where he had been. The explosion rattled the rooftop, spraying debris and shards of glass in every direction. Peter scrambled behind an AC unit for cover, wincing as small chunks of concrete struck his shoulders.
“Seriously?” he called out, his voice muffled by the mask. “Don’t you have, like, hobbies? A Netflix account? Maybe a book club? Why all this aggression, man?”
The villain chuckled lowly, the sound distorted through his helmet. “The only thing I’m interested in is crushing you, little spider.”
Peter grimaced, shaking the dust off his suit as he stood. “Yeah, well, join the club. It’s getting kinda crowded these days.” He stretched his shoulders, rolling his neck as determination replaced the exhaustion in his posture. “Let’s do this.”
The villain wasted no time, darting toward Peter with a burst of speed, the hoverboard slicing through the air. Peter shot a web toward a nearby crane, pulling himself into a high flip to dodge the attack. Twisting mid-air, he fired two more webs at the villain in quick succession, aiming for his legs.
The villain twisted effortlessly on his board, evading the strands with a sharp turn. “You’re gonna have to try harder than that,” he taunted, hurling another bomb toward Peter. Peter spun out of the way, the bomb detonating against the crane he had just used. “Okay, first off,” Peter said, landing lightly on a rooftop ledge, “rude. Second—do you buy these things in bulk, or are you just, like, ridiculously rich?”
Ignoring the comment, the villain shot forward again, this time swinging his leg in a powerful kick aimed at Peter’s chest. Peter blocked the attack with his forearm, the force of it making him skid back slightly. Before he could counter, the villain flipped smoothly, bringing his other leg down in a deadly arc.
Peter’s Spider-Sense screamed, and he ducked low just in time, the villain’s foot whizzing past his head. “Okay, Karate Kid!” Peter quipped, rolling to the side. “We get it—you’ve got moves. No need to flex!”
Springing back to his feet, Peter fired another web at a nearby light pole, using it to slingshot himself toward the villain. As he swung past, he aimed a kick at the hoverboard, narrowly missing as the villain tilted it sideways to dodge. Landing in a crouch, Peter huffed in frustration. “Alright, Parker,” he muttered to himself, adjusting his stance, “third time’s the charm. Let’s make this count.”
Peter crouched low, keeping his eyes locked on the villain. “Alright, buddy,” he muttered under his breath, a determined grin creeping onto his face beneath the mask. “Let’s see how you handle this.”
With a sharp flick of his wrist, he fired a web at the hoverboard, attaching it to the rooftop edge behind him. Then, with a deep breath, he bungeed himself forward, feet first, aiming directly for the villain. The impact hit hard. Peter’s boots slammed into the villain’s chest, knocking him off balance and launching him backward. The hoverboard wobbled violently before spinning out, crashing against the side of the building. “Yes!” Peter cheered, landing in a crouch. “How’s that for predictable?”
But his victory was short-lived. The villain twisted mid-air with unnerving grace, landing on his feet as if the ground had been expecting him. “You should know by now,” the villain said coolly, brushing off his chest plate, “I always land on my feet.”
Peter groaned. “Cool. Great. Love that for you.”
The two charged at each other, fists flying. Peter ducked under a brutal right hook, countering with a quick jab to the villain’s side. His Spider-Sense tingled as the villain swung again, and Peter twisted just in time, narrowly avoiding a direct hit. “Man,” Peter quipped, dodging another punch with ease, “you should really enter MMA. Or, like, one of those ninja obstacle course shows. You’d kill it.”
Feeling the adrenaline surge, Peter blocked another strike and managed to land a solid kick to the villain’s chest, sending him stumbling back. “This is going better than I thought,” Peter said aloud, his confidence bubbling up. He hopped lightly on his feet, throwing a playful jab into the air. “I mean, I don’t want to jinx it, but I’m kind of crushing it right now.”
But just as the words left his mouth, the villain’s armour bracer began to hum. Peter’s instincts screamed at him, but he was a second too late. The bracer pulsed open, unleashing a sudden, concussive energy blast that hit Peter square in the chest. The force was overwhelming, hurling him backward as the world tilted violently around him.
Peter’s body slammed into the edge of the rooftop, his head hitting hard against the concrete ledge. His vision blurred, black spots dancing in and out as his limbs went numb. “Ow,” he croaked weakly, his voice barely audible as the world spun.
As the spinning threatened to drag him further into the haze, Peter’s instincts kicked in. His left hand reached out blindly, fingers fumbling against the rough surface of the wall until they found purchase. With a strained effort, he clung to the wall, his breaths ragged and shallow. His ribs ached, his head throbbed, and his suit was scraped and torn in more places than he cared to count.
“Okay,” he muttered weakly, blinking through the haze clouding his vision. “That was… not my best moment.”
Above him, the villain stood on the edge of the rooftop, his silhouette framed by the flickering glow of the city lights. The hoverboard hummed softly as it hovered back into place beneath him. Peter squinted, his vision still swimming, as the villain turned his head slightly, almost as if to glance down at him.
“You’re persistent,” the villain said, his voice calm and cold. “I’ll give you that. But persistence doesn’t win wars.”
Peter groaned, fumbling to pull himself further up onto the wall. “Yeah, well, neither does being a total jerk,” he shot back, his voice strained but still laced with defiance. “Seriously, what’s your deal? Did someone steal your lunch money or something?”
The villain didn’t respond. Instead, he raised his arm, pressing a hidden panel on his bracer. A faint series of beeps echoed through the air, and Peter’s Spider-Sense flared to life, sharper and more urgent than ever before.
“Oh no,” Peter whispered, his eyes widening as he realized what was happening. From the corners of his vision, he caught sight of small, glowing devices embedded in the surrounding buildings—devices he hadn’t noticed before. One by one, they began to pulse with an ominous green light.
The villain stepped onto his hoverboard, his posture relaxed as he glanced back at Peter. “You should’ve stayed down, little spider,” he said, his tone almost mocking. “Now watch your city burn.”
With that, he pressed another button, and the explosives detonated in unison. The blasts ripped through the buildings around them, sending shockwaves that shattered windows and ignited flames. The night sky lit up with fiery explosions, thick black smoke curling into the air as debris rained down onto the streets below.
Peter’s heart sank as he watched the destruction unfold in slow motion. His body screamed in protest as he swung himself onto a nearby ledge, barely managing to avoid a falling chunk of concrete. “No, no, no!” he shouted, his voice cracking with panic. “This is bad. This is really, really bad.”
The villain’s silhouette disappeared into the smoke as he ascended on his hoverboard, the faint hum of the engine fading into the chaos. Peter tried to focus, but his head throbbed painfully, black spots blurring his vision as he stumbled forward. His foot slipped and he tumbled over, the world spinning violently around him.
As he fell, the wind rushed past him, and his mind struggled to stay conscious. His head throbbed with the impact just moments ago, and his limbs felt heavy and unresponsive. The last thing he saw before his vision flickered out was the skyline ablaze, the flames reflecting off the shattered glass like a twisted mosaic.
“Parker!” F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice cut through the haze, sharp and urgent. “Peter! Wake up! You’re falling—Peter!”
The sound jolted him just enough. His fingers twitched, and with the last ounce of strength he could muster, he fired a web toward a nearby art building. The line snapped taut, halting his descent just as the ground loomed dangerously close. The force of the swing sent him crashing into the side of 'said' building, but it was enough to stop him from falling further.
Dangling from the web, Peter gasped for air, his chest heaving as he tried to process what had just happened. The city around him was in chaos, the flames and smoke painting a grim picture against the night sky. “Okay,” he whispered hoarsely, his voice barely audible. “That… sucked.”
_____________________________________________________
The city blurred beneath him, streaks of firelight and thick smoke painting the skyline in chaotic swirls. Peter swung through the destruction, his grip on his web-shooters faltering slightly as his vision swayed. Each swing jolted his aching ribs, and the throbbing in his head made the world tilt dangerously.
“Parker,” F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice chimed in his ear, calm but firm. “You may have a concussion. I recommend immediate medical attention.”
Peter hummed weakly in response, the sound halfway between agreement and resignation. “Yeah,” he mumbled, wincing as he shot another web to keep himself moving. “No kidding, F.R.I.D.A.Y. Feels like I got hit by a hoverboard or something. Oh wait—”
The AI didn’t respond to his attempt at humour, and Peter sighed. “Okay. New plan: Ned’s place. Closer than my apartment. Less swinging. Fewer windows to crash into.”
He adjusted his trajectory, forcing himself to focus despite the spinning in his head. His chest ached with every movement, and his web-shooters felt heavier in his hands than ever before. As the familiar outline of Ned’s apartment complex came into view, Peter felt a wave of relief—quickly overshadowed by the overwhelming weight of guilt.
He landed on a lamppost a block away, crouching unsteadily as he surveyed the scene. The guilt gnawed at him, sharp and unforgiving. The explosions still echoed in his ears, the sight of burning buildings and terrified civilians burned into his memory. “All of that,” he muttered to himself, his voice hoarse, “because I couldn’t stop him. Because I got cocky.”
Shaking off the thought, he swung the last few meters to the fire escape of Ned’s building. His grip on the rail slipped as he landed with a thud, and he had to clutch the edge tightly to steady himself. Climbing up felt like moving through molasses, each step sending jolts of pain through his battered body.
“Come on, Parker,” he muttered under his breath, gritting his teeth as he pulled himself higher. “Just a few more steps. You’ve faced a vulture, a guy with drones, and now some hoverboard psycho. A fire escape shouldn’t be this hard.”
The world blurred again as he reached Ned’s window, his fingers fumbling against the frame. He knocked softly, the sound weaker than he intended. “Ned,” he called out, his voice barely above a whisper. “Please be home, buddy.”
Peter slumped against the wall, clinging to the fire escape rail for support. The distant sound of sirens echoed through the city, a reminder of the chaos he’d just left behind. “Please,” he mumbled again, his eyelids growing heavier by the second.
Peter’s grip on the fire escape railing weakened further as the exhaustion pressed heavily on him. His eyelids fluttered, the world slipping in and out of focus. The city sounds faded into muffled hums, the distant chaos of sirens and crackling flames growing fainter by the second. He mumbled something incoherent, his head dipping forward as his vision darkened.
The faint sound of a window creaking open broke through the haze. Peter barely registered the gasp that followed, sharp and filled with shock. “Peter?! Oh my—hold on, buddy!” Ned’s voice came through, frantic and loud, slicing through the fog clouding Peter’s mind.
Before Peter could respond, he felt hands tugging at him—strong but trembling. Ned leaned through the window, grabbing Peter under his arms and pulling him forward with a panicked burst of energy. “Come on, man, stay with me! You’re not doing this right now, okay? Not tonight!” Ned rambled, his voice shaking as he struggled to pull Peter fully inside.
Peter’s body felt limp, his head lolling against Ned’s shoulder as his friend dragged him onto the apartment floor. His breathing was uneven, and his suit was a mess—scraped, torn, and faintly smeared with soot and blood. Ned knelt beside him, shaking him lightly. “Hey, hey! Peter! Say something! Anything! You’re freaking me out!”
Peter blinked slowly, his vision still swimming, but the familiar warmth of Ned’s voice anchored him just enough to mumble, “…Hey, Ned.”
Ned let out a shaky laugh, his relief palpable. “Okay, okay, good. You’re alive. That’s a start. But seriously, dude, what happened to you? You look like you went three rounds with Thor and lost.”
Peter hummed faintly, his lips twitching into the barest hint of a smile. “Close enough… hoverboard guy,” he managed weakly, his voice barely audible.
Ned’s expression shifted from relief to alarm. “Hoverboard guy? What does that even mean? You—ugh, okay, doesn’t matter right now. You’re staying here, you’re not moving, and I’m getting you water. Lots of water. You look like you need an entire bathtub full of water.”
_______________________________________________________
Peter blinked against the intrusive brightness of the ceiling light, the sharpness of it cutting through the haze clouding his mind. His head throbbed relentlessly, each pulse a reminder of the concussion he hadn’t quite shaken off. Squinting, he turned his head slightly, the dull ache in his neck making the motion feel sluggish and weighted.
Every muscle in his body screamed in protest as he shifted on the bed, the sheets tangled awkwardly around his legs. Pain radiated from what felt like every inch of him—his ribs, his arms, his back. His fingers grazed over a bandage on his cheek, and he winced slightly.
“Great,” he mumbled, his voice hoarse, barely audible even to himself. “Feeling… just great.”
He closed his eyes again, trying to let the pounding in his skull subside. That’s when he heard it—soft, muffled voices coming from the other side of the closed bedroom door. One of them was unmistakably Ned’s. The other… softer, familiar.
Peter furrowed his brow, his head swimming as he tried to focus. The edges of the conversation blurred, the sound too faint to pick up the words. The voice spoke again, clear enough this time to make his chest tighten. For one surreal moment, he thought he heard her voice.
“[Name]?” he croaked breathlessly, his voice barely above a whisper. The sound came out weak, rasped by exhaustion and pain. It wasn’t loud enough to carry, not through the door or over the voices in the living room.
Peter tried to push himself up, palms pressing against the mattress, but his arms gave out almost instantly. He collapsed back down with a sharp gasp, the sudden motion sending fresh jolts of pain through his ribs. “Okay,” he muttered to himself, squeezing his eyes shut. “Sitting up? Bad idea. Great. Awesome.”
As he lay there catching his breath, the faint hum of voices cut out, replaced by the sound of the front door opening—and then closing. Silence followed, save for the faint ringing in his ears.
Summoning what little strength he had left, Peter rolled onto his side and swung his legs over the edge of the bed. His feet touched the floor, and he swayed unsteadily as he stood, clutching onto the nearest surface for balance. “You can do this, Parker,” he whispered under his breath, shuffling toward the door. “Just… don’t fall over again.”
He made it to the living room, one hand braced against the wall to steady himself. Ned was perched on the couch, scrolling through his phone, but when he looked up and saw Peter, his eyes widened in pure shock.
“Peter! Dude!” Ned exclaimed, practically leaping to his feet. “What the heck are you doing up? You’re supposed to be resting! Do you have any idea how bad you looked last night? I mean, you still look bad now, but—”
Peter waved a hand weakly, cutting him off. “I’m fine, Ned,” he lied, his voice still strained. “Just… needed to see what was going on. Heard voices. Who was that?”
Ned blinked, his concern softening into mild confusion. “What? No, that wasn’t anyone important. It was just the woman from 4A. She brought me cookies as a thanks for keeping her parcel safe.”
Peter, still clutching the wall for balance, stared at Ned as though he’d misheard him. “Cookies?” he croaked, his voice raspy from the effort of standing. Slowly, he shuffled toward the couch, letting himself collapse onto it with a heavy sigh. “Man… you’ve got… great neighbours.”
Ned stared at Peter for a moment, his alarm quickly overtaking his earlier confusion. He rushed over, leaning down with wide eyes.
“Dude. Are you okay? You look terrible. No offense, but like… you seriously need medical help. I mean, I can probably Google stuff, but—”
Peter groaned softly, waving a hand to cut Ned off. “I’m fine,” he mumbled, leaning his head back against the cushions. “Just… tired. You know, whole… falling-off-a-building thing. Really takes it out of you.”
Ned frowned, his expression a mix of disbelief and exasperation. “Tired? You have a concussion, and you’re covered in bruises! I think you’ve passed tired, like, ten exits ago.”
Peter chuckled weakly, his eyelids fluttering shut for a moment. “I’ll heal, Ned. Perks of… spider powers and all that."
Ned folded his arms, looking skeptical. “Spider powers are great and all, but you also look like you’ve been run over by, like… a semi-truck with laser cannons. You’re not moving from that couch, man. Rest. Water. No superhero-ing for at least a week.”
Peter hummed faintly in response, too drained to argue. For now, staying on the couch wasn’t the worst idea in the world.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
A few days later Peter sat on his couch, his phone balanced precariously on his knee as he adjusted the camera angle. His apartment was quiet except for the faint hum of the fridge in the background. He’d managed to recover enough to leave Ned’s place, but the bruise on his cheek and the cut on his nose were still stubbornly visible—a telltale reminder of the chaos he'd been through.
The FaceTime call connected, and [Name]’s face appeared on the screen, her expression instantly morphing into concern. “Peter!” she said, leaning closer as if she could reach through the screen to him.
“Are you okay? What happened to your face? You look—” she paused, her brow furrowing, “you look hurt.”
Peter felt the pang of guilt as her worried gaze lingered on him. “Hey! Uh, yeah. I’m fine. Totally fine,” he said quickly, though his voice lacked the convincing energy he hoped it would have. He rubbed at the bridge of his nose lightly, immediately regretting the sting it sent through his skin. “It’s nothing, really. Just a dumb accident—tripped at the tower. Floors are slippery, y’know?”
Her skepticism was evident in the slight narrowing of her eyes, but she chose not to press him. Instead, her tone softened. “If you say so… I just hope you’re okay. You scared me a little, Peter.” His heart sank at her words, but he managed a sheepish smile.
“Scared you? Nah, I’m fine. It’s just, uh, one of those days” He hesitated for a moment, rubbing the back of his neck awkwardly.
“Actually, speaking of days… I was wondering if maybe we could have a do-over on dinner? Tomorrow night?”
The concern on her face gave way to a small, tentative smile. “Dinner?” she asked, her voice laced with a hint of curiosity. “You mean, actually stay in one place and not rush off?”
Peter laughed lightly, shaking his head. “Yeah, that’s the plan. No work emergencies, no disappearing acts, just… dinner. I promise.”
She considered him for a moment, then nodded softly. “Okay, Peter. Tomorrow night it is. Just don’t trip over anything on the way there, alright?”
His grin widened, relief washing over him as he nodded eagerly. “Deal. No tripping. I’ll even wear my non-slip shoes.”
The night couldn’t have gone any better. Peter flopped onto his bed, phone in hand, the remnants of a grin still lingering on his face. Dinner had gone perfectly—for once, no sudden emergencies or hasty goodbyes. It had been… nice. Normal, even. He was still recovering from the chaos of the past few weeks, but tonight felt like a rare moment of calm.
The familiar FaceTime ringtone broke through his thoughts, and Peter quickly hit accept. [Name]’s face appeared on the screen, her smile warm as she adjusted her phone. “Hey,” she said softly, “made it home okay?”
Peter nodded, shifting slightly so the camera didn’t catch the faint bruise on his cheek or the cut on the bridge of his nose. “Hey. Yeah, I did. No trips or falls this time!” he joked, giving her a playful smirk. “How about you? Home safe?”
She laughed softly, her voice easing some of the lingering tension he hadn’t realized was still in his chest. “Yeah, no disasters for me either. Tonight was really nice, Peter. I had a great time.”
Peter’s grin widened, warmth blooming in his chest. “Me too. It was just… it was kind of perfect, honestly.” He leaned back a little, his tone softening. “I’m really glad we got to do this.”
Her smile softened in response. “Me too,” she said, her sincerity clear. “But… are you sure you’re okay?"
Peter hesitated for a moment, but his smile didn’t waver. “I’m fine, really. It’s just been one of those weeks, you know? Nothing I can’t handle.” He rubbed the back of his neck lightly, glancing at her with a slightly sheepish expression. “But tonight made everything feel better.”
She studied him for a moment before nodding, her concern giving way to a warm, understanding smile. “Alright. Just make sure you’re taking care of yourself, okay?”
Peter chuckled, the tension in his shoulders easing as he let her reassurance settle over him. “I will. I promise. And thanks—for tonight. It really was great.”
“Goodnight,” she said gently.
“Goodnight,” he replied, watching as the call ended. He set his phone down and exhaled deeply, staring up at the ceiling. For the first time in weeks, things felt… steady. And for now, that was enough.
________________________________
Peter felt the irony hit him like a brick wall, as if the universe itself had overheard his moment of optimism and decided to mess with him. Saying there would be no more interruptions had to be the jinx of the century. The following week was a blur of high hopes, low apologies, and more chaos than he'd care to admit. Out of the five dinner dates he’d planned with [Name], only two had gone uninterrupted.
The other three? Well, those ended with hurried excuses about "work emergencies," sheepish smiles, and him disappearing before dessert. Blackout wasn’t just a media sensation; he was quickly becoming Peter’s personal arch-nemesis. Every time Peter thought he had a moment to himself, F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice chimed in with another alert: Blackout activity reported. And every time, Peter knew he couldn’t ignore it—no matter how much he wanted to stay.
It didn’t help that the press was eating up Blackout’s antics, dubbing him the “Voltage Void.” Headlines splashed with photos of smouldering buildings and grim accounts of his precision strikes weighed heavily on Peter’s mind. Blackout wasn’t just a typical villain.
He was calculated, deliberate, and impossible to pin down. Every encounter ended with the same result: Peter walking away bruised and battered, while Blackout vanished into the night without a trace.
Peter couldn’t help but feel the guilt creeping in. Every time he saw the flicker of disappointment in [Name]’s eyes when he rushed off, it twisted the knife a little deeper. She never questioned his vague excuses—always said she understood—but he could tell the constant interruptions were starting to wear thin.
One night, after another missed dinner and another gruelling fight with Blackout, Peter sat on the edge of his bed, his phone clutched tightly in his hand. His fingers hovered over her number, debating whether to call. He wanted to explain—really explain—but the words felt impossible. How could he tell her the truth when it put her in danger? How could he keep this balancing act going without losing everything in the process?
His thumb tapped the screen, pulling up their recent messages. She’d texted him after dinner: It’s okay, Peter. We’ll figure this out. Simple, kind, and full of the understanding he probably didn’t deserve.
Peter let out a heavy sigh, tossing his phone onto the bed beside him. The city wasn’t going to save itself, and as much as he wanted to believe things would get easier, Blackout had proven otherwise. The real question was how long he could keep juggling Spider-Man, [Name], and the chaos without everything coming crashing down.
-------------------------------------------------------------
Peter sat cross-legged on the floor of his apartment, still in sweats and an old t-shirt that he probably should’ve retired years ago. He leaned against the couch, a pillow hugged tightly to his chest. Ned was sprawled on the couch above him, munching on a handful of chips, while MJ sat perched on the armrest, scrolling through something on her phone with her usual nonchalant expression.
"Okay," MJ started, breaking the comfortable silence, "we need to talk about this Blackout guy. Like, seriously. Because, no offense, but you look like a punching bag that fought back."
Peter sighed, glancing down at the faint bruise still visible on his forearm. "I’m fine, okay? It’s just… he’s tough. And the disappearing act thing? Really not helping."
"Not helping you stay in one piece, that’s for sure," Ned chimed in, tossing a chip into his mouth. "Every time you come back, it’s like… ‘Hey, guys, I fought Blackout again, and oh, look!, here’s another bruise for the collection.’"
Peter frowned, though there was no real sting to Ned’s teasing. “It’s not like I enjoy getting tossed around, okay? The guy’s good. And that suit of his? It’s insane.”
MJ leaned forward slightly, her usual deadpan expression softening with concern. “Pete, it’s not just that you’re bruised up all the time. You’re exhausted. You look like you haven’t slept in, I don’t know, ever?”
Peter opened his mouth to respond, but before he could, his phone buzzed loudly on the coffee table. The sound cut through the conversation like a knife, and both MJ and Ned immediately looked at him, eyebrows raised.
“Uh…” Peter reached for the phone, fumbling slightly before glancing at the screen. “It’s just a quick call,” he said, standing up and backing toward the kitchen. “Be right back.”
“Sure,” MJ said dryly, exchanging a glance with Ned. “Just a quick call. Super casual. Totally not suspicious.”
Peter ignored the comment as he answered the call, keeping his voice low and disappearing around the corner. Ned and MJ stayed behind, sharing a look.
"You think it’s about Blackout?” Ned whispered, leaning closer.
MJ shrugged, though her gaze lingered on the spot where Peter had stood. “I don’t know, but I’m guessing he won’t tell us unless we press him. Which, for the record, we should.”
When Peter finally returned a couple of minutes later, they pounced.
“Alright, spill,” MJ said, crossing her arms and fixing him with an expectant look. “Who was that?”
Peter blinked, glancing between the two of them before awkwardly rubbing the back of his neck. “Oh, uh… yeah, about that… I, uh, kinda forgot to mention something,” he said sheepishly, his voice trailing off.
MJ raised an eyebrow. “Forgot to mention what, exactly?”
Peter sighed, running a hand down his face. “You guys remember a couple of weeks ago, when I um.. webbedthatgirltothewall-”
Ned’s eyes went wide, a mix of disbelief and excitement lighting up his expression. “-No way. You found her?”
Peter sighed, running a hand down his face. “Yeah, well remember where I had a moan about it.. then I had to bail on our hangout because Tony messaged me to head to the tower?”
Ned paused mid-chip, raising an eyebrow. “Yeah, of course."
Burying his face in his hands. “Okay, well… on the way there, I kinda—ran into someone. Literally. Like, full-on bumped into her because I wasn’t paying attention.”
Ned perked up, already sensing where this was going. “Wait, wait, hold on. Are you saying that... The same person you bumped into is the same woman you WEBBED to the wall!?”
Peter sighed, rubbing the back of his neck as he glanced down at the floor. “Yeah. That’s her. We’ve kind of, uh…” He coughed awkwardly, his cheeks flushing slightly. “Had a few dinner… dates.”
MJ quirked an eyebrow, her smirk bordering on mischievous. “Dates, Parker? You’re actually managing dates in between getting tossed around by Blackout? That’s ambitious.”
Peter groaned, dragging a hand down his face
“Don’t make it sound like I’m juggling circus acts, okay? She’s nice. I really like her. But every time we’re actually having a good time, F.R.I.D.A.Y. decides to chime in with Blackout activity. And then I have to leave. It’s like clockwork!” He flopped back onto the couch, staring at the ceiling. “I mean, what am I supposed to say? ‘Sorry, gotta go deal with… my work emergency.’ It’s the worst.”
Ned leaned forward, frowning slightly. “And you feel guilty about it? Like… you think she’s gonna stop saying yes?”
Peter nodded, his frustration clear. “Yeah, obviously. I mean, she says she understands, but I can see it, you know? That look. The one that says, ‘Why do you keep doing this?’ She’s never said it, but I know it’s there. And I don’t blame her. I mean, who wants to go out with the guy who keeps bailing during dessert?”
MJ crossed her arms, her tone leveling out as she gave Peter a pointed look. “Okay, here’s the thing. Either you figure out how to juggle this better—without ditching her half the time—or you’re gonna have to be upfront with her about why you keep disappearing. Not the whole truth, obviously. But enough that she doesn’t think you’re running off to, like, join an underground poker game.”
Peter stared at her, wide-eyed. “What do you mean, be upfront? Like… give her details? That’s… I can’t. You guys know I can’t.”
Ned shrugged, trying to balance sympathy with practicality. “MJ’s got a point, man. If she’s sticking around after all these interruptions, she probably likes you enough to want answers. And you don’t have to tell her the Spider-Man part. Just… come up with something semi-believable.”
Peter groaned, sinking deeper into the couch. “Like what? What even sounds semi-believable?”
MJ smirked faintly. “Anything’s better than ‘work emergency.’ Seriously, Pete. You’ve used that excuse like a hundred times. At this point, she probably thinks you’re secretly in the mafia.” Peter snorted despite himself, glancing between the two of them.
“Thanks for the help, guys. Really. You’re making me feel so much better.”
Ned grinned, nudging MJ lightly. “Hey, we’re just saying—you’ve got options. Just don’t overthink it. She likes you enough to keep showing up, right? That’s gotta count for something.”
Peter sighed, his expression softening as he nodded slightly. “Yeah. You’re right. She does.”
MJ gave him a small, reassuring smile. “Then don’t let Blackout mess this up for you. Figure it out. That’s kind of your thing.”
Ned perked up, sitting up straighter on the couch. “Hey, you know what might help? Flowers. Like, big gesture, totally classic. Everyone loves flowers.”
Peter raised an eyebrow, his lips quirking into a faint smile despite his frustration. “Flowers, huh? You think that’ll make up for me running off three times in the middle of dinner?”
MJ shrugged, smirking. “It’s a start. You’ve got this charming, awkward thing going on, Parker. Pair that with flowers, and it might buy you some goodwill.”
Peter laughed softly, shaking his head. “Alright, I’ll think about it. Thanks, guys. You’re oddly invested in my love life.”
“Of course we are,” Ned said enthusiastically. “You’re living out the rom-com none of us knew we needed.”
Peter groaned, burying his face in his hands. He was about to change the subject when MJ turned to Ned with an inquisitive look. “By the way, how’s everything going with your cool neighbour? You’ve mentioned her, like, twice now.”
Peter perked up, lowering his hands. “Wait, the one that leaves you baked goods?"
Ned nodded, grinning widely. “Yeah, that’s her! She’s awesome. Like, super clever. She wants to be a journalist, and she totally gets all my geeky jokes. Honestly, you guys have to meet her one day. I’ll organize a games night or something—you’ll love her.”
MJ raised an eyebrow, her intrigue growing. “A future journalist who laughs at your jokes? Sounds like she’s got the patience of a saint.”
Peter chuckled, leaning back against the couch. “Sounds like you’ve got the best neighbour, Ned. Definitely beats mine. My neighbour just complains about my music being too loud.”
As laughter echoed between them, Peter’s phone buzzed sharply, cutting through the light-hearted moment like a cold knife. He froze mid-chuckle, his stomach twisting instinctively at the sound. Before he could reach for the device, F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s calm voice filled the room. “Alert: News headline regarding Blackout activity detected. Showing details.”
Peter’s phone screen lit up as a notification popped up, the headline stark and urgent: “Voltage Void Strikes Again—Third Target in String of Mysterious Attacks”
MJ and Ned leaned forward, their expressions shifting from amused to serious as the headline caught their attention.
“Voltage Void?” MJ echoed, her brow furrowing. “Seriously, who picks a name like that? Not exactly subtle.”
Peter sighed, his tone weighted with frustration as he scrolled through the article. “The media’s going with it because he’s leaving places in the dark—literally. But this is the third place he’s hit, and no one knows why. It’s too scattered to figure out a pattern.”
Ned frowned, leaning closer to the screen. “Three places already? And these aren’t just random spots, right? What’s his deal?”
F.R.I.D.A.Y. responded evenly, her tone crisp and professional. “The three locations targeted so far have been identified as bases operated by criminal entities. These groups are believed to be trafficking alien technology abandoned after the Chitauri invasion, as well as other unregistered tech.”
MJ crossed her arms, her expression sharp. “Wait, alien tech? That’s not your everyday street crime. This guy’s got a goal—something specific. He’s not just blowing through these places for fun.”
Peter nodded, his jaw tightening. “Exactly. He’s looking for something, but I can’t figure out what. Whatever it is, he’s doing everything in his power to get it.”
Ned leaned forward, excitement battling with concern. “Okay, okay, so if we know where he’s been, we can maybe figure out where he’s going next. Like, triangulate or something. What kind of tech was being trafficked at these places? That might give us a clue.”
Peter rubbed the back of his neck, his mind racing. “I don’t know. It’s all rumors—Chitauri tech, bits and pieces of who-knows-what. F.R.I.D.A.Y., is there any intel on this?”
“Reports indicate that the bases were believed to house various alien artifacts, alongside unconfirmed mentions of older Stark technology,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. replied.
MJ raised an eyebrow, her skepticism flashing. “Older Stark tech? That’s… interesting. But it still doesn’t explain what he’s after or why.”
Peter let out a frustrated sigh, shaking his head. “I need to dig into this more. Maybe if I can figure out what tech was being moved through these places, I can piece together what he’s looking for. Right now, the locations are too random.”
Ned grinned faintly, his enthusiasm unshaken. “You’ve got this, dude. If anyone can figure it out, it’s you.”
MJ smirked, though her tone carried an undercurrent of concern. “Just don’t forget you’ve got backup, Parker. You don’t have to face this guy on your own.”
Peter glanced between them, a small, grateful smile crossing his face. The stakes were growing, and Blackout—or Voltage Void, as the papers were now dubbing him—was still one step ahead. But with Ned and MJ in his corner, Peter felt a flicker of hope.
_________________________________________________________
The soft glow of warm lighting illuminated [Name]’s cozy apartment, where the coffee table was strewn with papers, clippings, and a well-worn notebook. Two glasses of wine sat amidst the organized chaos, one in Megan’s hand as she reclined in the armchair, the other next to [Name], who was cross-legged on the couch.
Megan plucked a new stack of clippings from her bag with a triumphant flourish. “Alright, you’re gonna love this—I dug up some fresh intel for the Spider-Man file.”
[Name] arched an eyebrow, taking a sip of her wine. “Oh boy. More of your ‘in-depth investigative reporting’? Let’s see what you’ve got.”
With a smirk, Megan leaned forward, spreading out the clippings on the table. “Mock me all you want, but look at this—new reports from his recent battles. This guy, Voltage Void—or Blackout, whatever they’re calling him—has been giving Spider-Man serious trouble.”
[Name] frowned slightly, picking up one of the articles. “He’s hit three places already? That’s new. And these are… gang hideouts?”
“Apparently,” Megan said, swirling her wine thoughtfully. “The media doesn’t have much to go on yet, but Spider-Man’s involved every time. This Blackout guy seems like bad news, though. He’s methodical."
[Name] set the clipping down and shifted to her laptop, which was already open on the coffee table. Various tabs were running, ranging from news articles to conspiracy forums. She clicked on one, her expression thoughtful as she scrolled. “If Spider-Man’s crossing paths with him so much, then it’s not just random. Blackout isn’t just stirring up trouble—he’s looking for something.”
Megan tilted her head, raising an eyebrow. “Looking for what? Like, some kind of treasure hunt for villains?”
[Name] shook her head slowly, her fingers drumming against her glass. “No, it’s more deliberate than that. Three bases hit—three criminal groups taken out—and no clear connection between them. He’s tearing through them like he’s searching for… something specific.”
Megan leaned back, sipping her wine thoughtfully. “Something specific, but what? Weapons? Money? Giant glowing space rocks?”
[Name] cracked a faint smile but didn’t look away from her laptop. “It’s hard to say. But if these bases had alien tech, like the articles are saying, then it’s got to be connected to that somehow. No one risks this much for nothing.”
Megan gestured to the screen. “Okay, so say you’re right. How does Spider-Man fit into it? You think he’s just trying to stop Blackout from wrecking everything?”
“Maybe,” [Name] said softly, her gaze fixed on a freeze-frame of Spider-Man from one of the recent battles. “Or maybe he’s trying to figure it out, just like we are.”
[Name] pushed herself up from the couch, the weight of the conversation lingering as she began to pace the length of her apartment. Her hand gripped her wine glass loosely, her gaze distant, like she was sifting through fragments of memories that refused to slot into place.
Megan, still lounging in the armchair, raised an eyebrow as she watched her. “You okay over there? You’re starting to pace like one of those cops in a detective show.”
“I’m fine,” [Name] muttered, more to herself than to Megan. She stopped mid-stride, staring out the window with furrowed brows. Her voice was quieter now, contemplative. “It’s just… I remember something.”
Megan tilted her head, curious. “From what?”
“That morning a few weeks ago,” [Name] said slowly, turning to look at her. “When I ran into all that chaos on the way to work. Blackout was there… throwing those bombs around.”
Megan straightened slightly, her interest piqued. “Wait, you never told me you were actually there for that! What happened?”
[Name] resumed pacing, her words coming more as muttered fragments. “The bombs weren’t… normal. I mean, they were loud and destructive, but when they went off, there was this green pulse. It wasn’t just light—it felt wrong, like it didn’t belong. I’ve seen that pulse before, but… I can’t remember where.”
Megan’s eyes narrowed thoughtfully. “Green pulse? That’s weird. Maybe it’s part of that alien tech everyone keeps whispering about?”
[Name] shook her head, frustration crossing her features. “I don’t know. But if I’ve seen it before, then it’s out there somewhere. Maybe there’s footage… something I missed.”
Setting her glass down, she grabbed her laptop from the coffee table and linked it to the TV. The screen flickered as YouTube loaded, rows of thumbnails displaying conspiracy videos and news coverage of Spider-Man’s battles. Scrolling quickly, her eyes landed on a video of J. Jonah Jameson, the title obnoxiously screaming: “Spider-Man FAILS AGAIN—Blackout Bests the Webhead!”
“Great,” [Name] muttered with a mix of sarcasm and annoyance as she clicked on the video. “Just what we need—Jameson’s two cents.”
The screen filled with Jameson’s animated gestures and grating voice, his commentary cutting through the room with its usual bombast. “…And look at this, folks! Your so-called hero, Spider-Man, getting tossed around like a rag doll! Courtesy of this new menace, Blackout—who, I might add, seems to have more brains and brawn than Spidey here could ever dream of!”
The clip showed Spider-Man mid-fight, narrowly dodging an attack before being flung back by a powerful blast of energy. [Name] ignored Jameson’s relentless ranting and paused the video, her finger hovering over the playback controls.
“There,” [Name] said, leaning forward as Megan inched closer to the screen. Her hand hovered over the trackpad as she slowed the video down further, frame by frame. The energy blast rippled out, vivid green pulses cutting through the smoke, lighting up the debris before Spider-Man was violently flung backward into a crumbling ledge.
Megan’s eyes widened as she pointed at the screen. “That’s the pulse, isn’t it? The same one you saw with the bombs?”
[Name] nodded slowly, her voice hushed. “Yeah… exactly the same. But this one—this one’s different. It’s stronger. Look at the way it shifts through the smoke—it’s almost… amplified.”
She replayed the moment again, her finger dragging the playback slider over and over as both women focused on the eerie green pulse. The room was quiet, save for the faint, distorted sound of the slowed footage echoing from the TV speakers.
Megan frowned, her brow knitting as she studied the image. “Stronger how? You think he’s testing something new?”
[Name] didn’t respond immediately. Her gaze remained locked on the screen, her mind racing, fragments of memory flickering like static.
The way the light from the blast danced through the smoke—sharp, vivid flashes of green. It tugged at something buried in her thoughts, something she’d seen before but couldn’t quite place. Until suddenly, it hit her.
Her breath caught, and she shot upright, her heart hammering. “Wait. I’ve seen this before.”
Megan blinked, startled by the sudden shift. “What? Where?”
[Name] barely heard her. She was already rushing to grab her phone from the coffee table, swiping frantically through her gallery. “When I was flying to Manhattan—when I was moving here. There were these… flashes outside the plane window. Green, just like this. I thought it was lightning at the time, but now…”
She found the video she’d taken, her fingers trembling slightly as she mirrored her phone to the TV. The screen lit up with grainy footage, the faint hum of the airplane audible beneath her voice narrating in the background. The shaky camera focused on storm clouds outside, but as the video played, the flashes of green light became unmistakable. Pulses, eerily similar to the ones in Blackout had, illuminated the sky for brief, haunting moments.
“There!” [Name] said, her voice breathless with realization. She paused the video on one of the brightest flashes, pointing to the screen. “Look! It’s the same. The same kind of pulse.”
Megan leaned closer, her eyes wide. “Oh my God. You’re right."
Her breath hitched as the realization hit her. “Wait. If he did this 2 months ago—over Manhattan—then maybe he’s practiced at other times too. What if no one’s connected the dots before?”
Megan sat up, her interest fully piqued. “Practicing? Like, he’s been testing whatever this is for months? That’s… actually really creepy. But if he’s done it before, there has to be something we missed, right?”
[Name] grabbed her glass from the table, her gaze shifting back to Megan. “That’s what I’m thinking. If he’s been doing this for a while, there might be a record of it—reports, sightings, even odd weather patterns.”
Megan’s eyes lit up with determination, and she leaned forward, setting her own glass aside. “Public records! If he’s been practicing, maybe there’s something buried in reports somewhere—complaints, power surges, weird sightings. We just need to dig through it.”
[Name] exhaled, the hint of a grin tugging at her lips despite the tension. “Alright, then. Let’s dig.”
Megan leaned back into the armchair, an amused smile dancing on her lips as she picked up [Name]’s near-empty wine glass. “Okay, detective, before you dive headfirst into a conspiracy deep-dive, let me at least refill this for you. You’re gonna need it.”
[Name] glanced up, momentarily pulled from her thoughts, and handed over the glass with a small, distracted smile. “Thanks, Meg.”
As Megan poured, she leaned slightly to the side, studying her friend with curious eyes. “So… I’ve gotta ask. What’s going on with you and the mystery guy up to these days? I feel like we haven’t had an update in, like, forever.”
[Name] sighed, running a hand through her hair before flopping onto the couch. “Oh! Where do I even start?”
"Uh-oh,” Megan said, her tone teasing as she handed back the full glass. “That’s not a great start. Is this about the ‘emergencies’ he’s always running off to?” She even threw in dramatic air quotes for emphasis.
[Name] let out a dry laugh, taking a long sip of her wine. “Ding, ding, ding! You guessed it. It’s just… frustrating, you know? I really like him—like, really like him. We FaceTime, we call, and when we’re actually together, it’s amazing. But then he always disappears, like clockwork, because of these ‘emergencies.’ And I get it, life happens, but…”
“But you want to be a priority,” Megan finished, nodding sympathetically. “Makes total sense.”
“Exactly,” [Name] said, setting her glass down with a faint clink. “It’s not even like I’m asking for much. I just want to feel like I’m worth staying for—just once.”
Megan gave her an encouraging nudge on the shoulder. “Hey, don’t sell yourself short. If he doesn’t wobble that head of his and realize how lucky he is, we’re going out, and I’m getting you laid. No arguments.”
[Name] burst out laughing, shaking her head as she tried to compose herself. “Oh my God, Megan. Subtle as ever.”
“What can I say?” Megan said with a smirk, raising her glass in a mock toast. “I’m a woman of action.”
_________________________________________________
Hey! Sorry this took so long to post! I hit a bit of a block because I knew where I wanted to take it, but I ended up rewriting it twice. It went in a completely different direction than I originally planned. Also, I didn’t mean to hurt Peter—it wasn’t intentional! Let me know what you think!
Also let me know if you want to be tagged!
Tag List: @elianamarie-blog @melgolbach
Tumblr media
10 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 3 months ago
Text
Tumblr media Tumblr media Tumblr media
~ A Little Taste of Heaven ~ (Peter Parker x Fem!Reader) (4/10)
Tumblr media Tumblr media
____________________________________________
🎵🎶Too Sweet by Hozier 🎶🎵
____________________________________________
Warnings: Explosions and danger/Mild peril and action/Emotional tension/Fluff
Summery: 'After saving a child during an explosion, [Name] crosses paths with Spider-Man, who saves the day. Later, unaware of his secret identity, she agrees to a date with Peter Parker. Their connection deepens over dinner at a cozy Chinese restaurant, filled with playful banter and warm moments—until duty calls, pulling Peter away.'
_________________________________________
It was a lovely afternoon in Manhattan, the kind that felt alive with possibility. The streets buzzed with energy—yellow cabs honking, food carts lining the sidewalks, and clusters of people laughing as they hurried past. [Name] adjusted the strap of her messenger bag as she waited at the crossing, balancing a to-go coffee cup in her other hand. Her outfit—smart-casual, sharp but comfortable—reflected her readiness for whatever the day might bring. She checked the time on her phone as the light stubbornly stayed red.
Suddenly, a deafening BOOM! ripped through the air, shaking the ground beneath her feet. The sound hit before she even processed the flash of light, the explosion so close it left her ears ringing. The shock jolted her hands, the coffee cup slipping from her grasp and hitting the pavement with a muted splatter.
Around her, the once-busy street descended into chaos. People screamed, some running in every direction, while others ducked behind cars and newspaper stands for cover. [Name] stood frozen for a moment, her heart pounding, before instinct kicked in. She crouched low, shielding herself as best she could, the acrid smell of smoke and burnt concrete stinging her nose.
Overhead, a shadow zipped past, its sleek shape cutting through the smoke-filled air. She glanced up, her eyes wide with alarm, and saw him—a figure clad in dark armour, mounted on a high-tech hoverboard that emitted a low, menacing hum. He let out a sharp, grating laugh as he hurled a spherical device into the street below. The bomb landed with a clang, exploding into a blinding flash that sent a wave of heat and light across the block.
[Name] scrambled to her feet, trying to find cover behind a mailbox as her breath came in short, panicked bursts. She clutched her bag tightly, her mind racing. The hoverboard-wielding villain swooped low, surveying the destruction with a cruel grin.
Through the thick haze of smoke, she caught a flash of red and blue moving impossibly fast. Her heart leapt as Spider-Man appeared, swinging between the buildings with practiced precision. He fired a web line, dodging one of the villain’s bombs mid-air before flipping out of the way of another. The explosions left trails of fire and smoke in their wake, but Spider-Man was relentless, twisting and somersaulting with agility that seemed almost effortless.
“Hey, hoverboard guy!” Spider-Man’s voice carried over the chaos, his tone almost flippant despite the danger. “Is this your audition for worst neighbour of the year? Because you’re really nailing it.”
The villain snarled, turning sharply on his board to hurl another explosive Spider-Man’s way. [Name] ducked again as another flash of light and heat roared just a few feet away. She clung to her makeshift cover, her heart pounding as she watched the battle unfold above her.
Spider-Man swung low, gaining ground on the villain as they zipped between the buildings. His webs snapped out with precision, sticking to the hoverboard’s underside as he yanked hard, nearly throwing the armoured figure off balance.
“Not so fancy now, huh?” Spidey quipped, flipping mid-swing to dodge another incoming bomb. “Seriously, where’d you get that thing—Discount Death Gliders R Us?”
The villain snarled in frustration, swerving sharply to shake him off. But Spider-Man was relentless, his movements a blur as he closed the gap, firing another web line to tangle the hoverboard’s thrusters. The machine sputtered, briefly losing stability, and the villain cursed as he reached for another bomb.
With a flick of his wrist, the villain hurled the explosive—not at him, but toward the street below. Peter twisted mid-air, narrowly dodging the bomb as it sailed past him. It struck a parked car with a metallic clang, the device embedding itself in the hood. A high-pitched beeping began, sharp and insistent, cutting through the chaos.
[Name], crouched behind her cover, froze as the sound reached her ears. She glanced around, her heart pounding, trying to locate the source of the noise. Her eyes landed on the car just as the bomb detonated, the force of the explosion ripping through the air. The car was hurled upward, flipping violently end over end.
The blast sent debris scattering across the street, and through the smoke and chaos, [Name] spotted movement—a small child, no older than five, wandering into the road. The child’s wide, tear-filled eyes darted around, searching desperately for their parents. In the distance, a woman’s scream pierced the air, frantic and filled with terror.
Without thinking, [Name] bolted from her hiding spot. Her legs moved before her brain could catch up, sheer instinct and adrenaline driving her forward. She reached the child, scooping them into her arms as the car’s shadow loomed closer, flipping toward them with terrifying speed.
In that split second, she made her choice. [Name] turned her back to the oncoming car, wrapping her arms tightly around the child to shield them with her body. Her heart pounded in her chest, fear coursing through her veins, but she held firm, bracing for the inevitable impact. The thought barely crossed her mind—it didn’t matter what happened to her, as long as the child was safe.
“Move!” Spider-Man’s voice rang out, sharp and urgent, but there was no time. The car was too close, the weight of it bearing down on them like a tidal wave.
Just as the crushing weight seemed certain to hit, a red-and-blue blur streaked into view. Spider-Man landed in front of them, his movements impossibly fast. Planting his feet on the asphalt, he caught the car mid-flip, his arms straining as he held the massive weight overhead.
“Okay, okay—definitely heavy!” Peter groaned, his voice cracking slightly as he adjusted his grip. He glanced down at [Name], who was clutching the child tightly, her face pale but determined. “You guys good? Please tell me you’re good, because I’m kind of having a moment here!”
[Name] nodded quickly, her voice shaky. “We’re—we’re fine!” Adjusted her grip on the child, her arms trembling slightly as she backed up a few steps to give Spider-Man room. She tried to keep her breathing steady, but adrenaline still coursed through her veins as she glanced at the masked hero holding up the car.
“Great, awesome,” Spider-Man said, his tone light despite the strain in his voice. “Now, uh, if you could scoot out of the way, that’d be fantastic. No pressure, just… gravity.”
She did as he asked, moving quickly but carefully, her focus still on the child she had cradled tightly. Only once she was a few feet away did she look back, just in time to see him lower the car to the ground with a heavy thud. He straightened up with a quick roll of his shoulders, but something about the way he froze when their eyes met—well, his lenses and her eyes—made her pause.
Peter’s heart stuttered for the briefest moment. Her… The realization hit him like a jolt. She’d run into danger—a metaphorical fire—to save a child, without hesitation or a second thought. As much as the idea of her rushing headlong into chaos made his stomach twist with panic, there was another emotion that pushed its way forward: respect.
He couldn’t help it. She’d done something so undeniably brave, so instinctively selfless, that it caught him off guard. And despite the wreckage around them, the smoke still hanging in the air, and the distant shouts of chaos, for a fleeting moment, he couldn’t focus on anything else. She didn’t have powers. She wasn’t wearing a mask. And yet, she’d done what even some heroes struggled to do.
Before he could say anything, [Name] gave him a hard look. Not quite hostile, but there was something undeniably sharp in her expression. A scowl of sorts, almost as if she were daring him to say something. The tension in the air was palpable.
“You okay?” he asked, his voice a touch quieter now as he took a step closer. He kept his usual light tone, but there was an undercurrent of something else—concern, maybe, or guilt.
“Fine,” she replied sharply, her jaw tight. She adjusted the child on her hip, not meeting his gaze directly.
Peter hesitated for a split second. The way she snapped at him, the edge in her voice—it wasn’t just the adrenaline talking. He knew that tone.
“Hey, uh…” he started, rubbing the back of his neck reflexively even though she couldn’t see the sheepish expression beneath his mask. “I mean, I’m sorry. For, y’know… Last time.”
Her brow furrowed slightly, her lips pressing into a thin line. She didn’t reply, but her expression said plenty.
Spider-Man hesitated for a beat before stepping a little closer. Lowering his voice so only she could hear, he said, “For leaving you webbed to the wall. I came back—I really did—but you were gone."
There was a note of sincerity in his voice, an almost vulnerable edge that made the words linger between them. As he spoke, he slowly extended a hand, hesitating for a moment before gently reaching out, his intent clear—to check her over, to make sure she was okay.
Her reaction was immediate. She recoiled slightly, pulling herself up straighter as a flicker of irritation crossed her face. “Shouldn’t you get back to the issue at hand?” she snapped, her voice sharp but steady.
Peter blinked behind the mask, momentarily taken aback by her tone. He pulled his hand back, nodding slightly as he let out a small, awkward laugh, trying to diffuse the tension. “Yeah, right. The whole ‘flying maniac with bombs’ situation. Totally. I’ve got it covered.”
With a small shrug that masked the ache in his chest, he took a step back, his usual playful confidence slipping back into place like armour. “Stay safe, alright? And, uh, we’ll call this a rain check on the apology thing.”
And with that, he was gone, swinging into the chaos above. The distant cheers of the crowd rippled through the smoky air, their relief and gratitude palpable. “Spider-Man!” someone shouted, and soon the chant took hold, voices rising in unison as people clapped and hollered for their hero. Peter didn’t linger to take it in—there were still lives to save—but the sound followed him, faintly warming the ache in his chest.
Back on the street, the tension shifted, the echoes of the crowd’s cheers mixing with quieter, more intimate cries of relief. The mother of the child bolted from where she’d been frozen moments before, her face streaked with tears as she ran to [Name]. She practically collapsed, her hands trembling as she reached for the child, who clung tightly to [Name].
“Oh my God, oh my God,” the woman sobbed, clutching her child as though afraid they might vanish. “Thank you. Thank you so much,” she choked out, her words barely coherent through the flood of emotion. “You saved them. You saved my baby.”
[Name], still shaken, managed a small, reassuring smile. “It’s okay,” she said softly, though her voice trembled. “They’re okay. That’s all that matters.”
The woman nodded frantically, her gratitude overflowing as she turned her gaze upward. “And Spider-Man,” she added, her voice rising toward the red-and-blue figure swinging into the distance. “Thank you, Spider-Man!”
_________________________________________
The rhythmic tapping of her shoes against the pavement was drowned out by the persistent ringing of her phone. [Name] sighed, juggling her bag as she fished the device out of her pocket, the name “Mr. Caldwell” flashing on the screen. Perfect, she thought, already bracing for the tirade. Swiping to answer, she brought the phone to her ear.
“You’re late,” Mr. Caldwell barked, not even bothering with pleasantries. “I needed you in the office twenty minutes ago, post haste! Care to explain?”
“There was an incident on my way,” she replied, keeping her voice as steady as possible. “An explosion—Spider-Man was there. I got caught up in the chaos.”
There was a brief pause, followed by a dismissive “Hmph.”
“Well, I don’t pay you to get caught up in chaos, do I? I pay you to be here, at your desk, doing your job. Hurry up—I need those reports on my desk yesterday!” His tone was sharp, each word chewing into her already thinning patience.
“Yes, sir,” she said curtly, biting back any retort that might only make things worse. Before she could add anything else, the call cut off with an abrupt click, leaving her staring at the screen in frustration.
She let out a breath and was about to put the phone away when a notification popped up—a text from Peter. She blinked, surprised for a moment, before her lips curved into a small, unintentional smile.
Peter: 'Hey, how’s your morning going?'
She paused, glancing around to make sure she wasn’t about to walk into anyone. Her fingers flew over the keyboard as she replied:
[Name]: 'Let’s see. Explosion, Spider-Man, yelling boss. So, just a normal morning. How about you?'
His response came almost immediately.
Peter: 'Wow, sounds… intense. Did you at least get Spider-Man’s autograph, or was he too busy dodging explosions to notice you?'
[Name]: 'I don’t want his autograph. He could shove it up his butt for all I care.'
There was a noticeable pause before Peter’s response came through, and she could almost hear the faint “uhhh” of his hesitation as he typed.
Peter: 'Whoa. That’s, uh… that’s a strong stance on Spider-Man. Did he, like, cut you off in traffic or something? I mean, sure, he’s not perfect, but still. That’s kind of harsh, no?'
Her fingers hovered over the keyboard for a moment, her lips pressing into a thin line. Finally, she typed back.
[Name]: 'Let’s just say I’ve got some beef with him. And no, I’m not going into it.'
The three little dots of Peter’s typing indicator flashed on and off a few times before his reply finally appeared.
Peter: 'Beef? Like… actual beef? Or, like, metaphorical beef? Because if it’s metaphorical, then, yeah, totally fair. But if it’s actual beef, we might need to have a serious talk about your diet.'
She rolled her eyes, the faintest flicker of amusement breaking through her annoyance despite herself.
[Name]: 'Metaphorical. Obviously. And don’t try to joke your way out of this.'
Peter: 'Noted. No jokes. But I mean, hey, whatever it is, maybe give him a break? Saving the city’s gotta be, like, super stressful. Not that I’d know or anything, but… you know.'
The reply made her pause, a small frown tugging at her brow. Something about his tone—however awkwardly phrased—made it feel like he was trying to smooth over some invisible crack. But she wasn’t about to entertain it. Not yet, anyway.
[Name]: 'I’ll keep that in mind the next time he webs me to a wall.'
Another pause, longer this time, and she could almost picture Peter nervously laughing under his breath as he read her text. When his reply finally came through, it was predictably awkward but undeniably Peter.
Peter: 'Okay, yeah, I can see how that’d be a sticky situation. Literally. I mean, not that it was… Anyway, uh, let’s just say I hear you. Loud and clear. Moving on.'
She shook her head at the message, tucking her phone back into her bag as she finally reached her office building. Her mood was still sour, but as ridiculous as Peter’s messages were, they somehow made the morning feel a little less unbearable.
__________________________________________
[Name] sat at her desk, the rhythmic clatter of her fingers on the keyboard punctuating the otherwise quiet hum of the office. Her screen glared back at her, overflowing with emails, memos, and reports—all the tasks Mr. Caldwell had graciously deemed “beneath” him. She let out a quiet sigh, her gaze flickering to the stack of papers beside her. She understood the pressure he was under, trying to keep the paper afloat in a competitive market, but it didn’t make it any easier to swallow. She could be doing so much more than running his schedule and typing up his notes. She wanted to be a journalist—to chase stories, uncover truths, make a difference. But for now, here she was, tethered to her desk by a mountain of "important but trivial" work.
Her thoughts were interrupted by the sound of approaching footsteps. Megan appeared, a wide grin on her face and a takeout container in hand. “I come bearing gifts,” she announced, setting the container on [Name]’s desk with a flourish.
[Name] raised an eyebrow, her expression softening as she eyed the familiar label. “Is that…?"
“Banoffee cheesecake,” Megan confirmed with a smirk. “As promised. Consider it payment for bailing me out last week.”
[Name] smiled, leaning back in her chair as she took a moment to appreciate the gesture. “You’re too good to me. Seriously.”
“Don’t mention it. But speaking of bailing out,” Megan said, pulling up a chair and dropping into it with an exaggerated sigh, “I need your help. Again.”
[Name] glanced at her curiously, pushing her keyboard aside. “What’s up?”
Megan groaned, rubbing her temples. “This piece I’m working on—it’s driving me insane. Caldwell wants it airtight, but the angle’s just not clicking, and I’m about two hours away from ripping my hair out.”
[Name] tilted her head, intrigued. “What’s the story?”
Megan hesitated for a moment, her expression shifting from frustration to something more conspiratorial. “Okay, don’t laugh, but… I’ve been trying to figure out who Spider-Man is.”
[Name] blinked, taken aback. “Spider-Man?”
“Yeah,” Megan said, leaning in slightly as though sharing a secret.
“There are so many rumours floating around—some say he’s a college kid, others think he’s a billionaire in disguise. I’ve even heard he might be, like, an alien or something. I just… I don’t know. He’s fascinating, you know? And I keep thinking, if I could crack who he is, it’d be huge.”
[Name] pursed her lips, her gaze narrowing slightly. “Megan, don’t you think there’s a reason it’s a secret? He probably doesn’t want people to know for, I don’t know, safety reasons. Or privacy.”
Megan shrugged, clearly undeterred. “I get that, but come on—doesn’t it make you curious? Like, who he really is under the mask? What kind of person does what he does?"
[Name] leaned back in her chair, crossing her arms. “Curious? Sure. But it’s not our business. He’s out there saving people, and I think that’s enough. Besides, do you really think Caldwell would run with a piece like that? He’s not exactly the ‘superhero scoop’ kind of guy.”
Megan sighed dramatically, slumping further into her chair. “You’re probably right. As usual. But still, I can’t help wondering…”
[Name] shook her head, a small smile tugging at her lips despite herself. “You’re incorrigible, you know that?”
Megan grinned, grabbing a plastic fork and nudging the cheesecake container closer to [Name]. “Maybe. But that’s why you like me. Now, eat some cheesecake and tell me my story doesn’t completely suck."
Megan leaned forward, propping her chin in her hand. “You know what’s weird? We know nearly all of the Avengers’ identities, right? Like, Tony Stark held an entire press conference to announce he was Iron Man. Steve Rogers—everyone knew Captain America’s story. Even Black Widow wasn’t exactly undercover by the time she joined up. But Spider-Man? He was introduced already in the suit. We’ve got no idea who he really is.”
[Name] glanced at her, quirking a brow. “And you find that weird?"
“Well, yeah!” Megan said, gesturing animatedly. “Think about it—when the Avengers had that big press release to welcome him, it was all about the suit and the powers. No name, no backstory, nothing. He just swung in, waved at the cameras, and that was it. Doesn’t that make you curious?”
[Name] shrugged, though she couldn’t help but glance briefly at her own screen as if trying to look busy. “Maybe. But it makes sense, doesn’t it? Keeping his identity a secret probably keeps him and the people he cares about safe.”
Megan sighed dramatically. “Yeah, yeah, I know. ‘It’s for safety!’ But come on—it’s Spider-Man. Who wouldn’t want to know who’s under the mask?”
[Name] rolled her eyes, but her lips twitched into a faint smile. “Well, it’s not like you’re going to crack the mystery over lunch, Megan. But…” She leaned forward slightly, the teasing edge in her tone giving way to a bit of genuine curiosity. “Show me what you’ve got so far. I’ll take a look—if you promise to give me credit for helping.”
Megan’s eyes lit up, and she grinned. “Deal. You’re the best, you know that?”
“Yeah, yeah,” [Name] said, waving her hand dismissively. “Now, let’s see what kind of conspiracy board you’ve got hidden in that brain of yours.”
Megan laughed as she slid her tablet across the desk. “You’re going to love this. Or maybe think I’ve completely lost it. Either way, I’ll take what I can get.”
Later that evening, as the office quieted down and the glow of her monitor became the only source of light at her desk, [Name] leaned back in her chair, stretching out her arms with a groan. It had been a long day, and she was more than ready to call it quits. But just as she reached for her bag, her inbox chimed with a new email.
From: Megan Subject: Spider-Man Intel (aka my soon-to-be Pulitzer)
[Name] rolled her eyes, a faint smile tugging at her lips as she clicked the email open. Megan’s enthusiasm practically leapt off the screen. Attached was a folder labelled “Spider-Research,” and beneath it, a quick note in Megan’s usual casual tone:
Thought you’d want to take a look. It’s not perfect yet, but I’m getting closer! Honestly, some of this stuff blows my mind. Think you’ll love the Stark/Spider-Man connection. Let me know what you think—and don’t forget, I expect my name in lights when we crack this! ;) – M.
[Name] hesitated for a moment before clicking into the folder. Inside were several files: articles, snippets of footage, and what appeared to be Megan’s pieced-together timeline of Spider-Man’s known activities. She scrolled through quickly, catching familiar headlines like “Ferry Disaster Narrowly Averted by Local Hero” and “Spider-Man Teams Up with Iron Man in Berlin Airport Incident.”
It was the deeper connections that caught her attention, though—Megan had outlined Spider-Man’s presence during Tony Stark’s public appearances and even highlighted the now-famous press conference where Stark had named him an Avenger. Guess they didn’t include the part where Spider-Man turned it down, [Name] thought with a small, amused huff, remembering the controversy that had surrounded that revelation.
As [Name] scrolled through the folder Megan had sent, she skimmed over headlines and notes until something caught her eye—a passing mention of Stark’s internship program. Megan had jotted down a quick thought, wondering if Spider-Man could’ve been involved in some way, but there wasn’t much detail beyond that.
[Name] paused for a moment, her brow furrowing. It was… plausible, she supposed. Stark was eccentric enough to pull something like that. But with no solid evidence to back it up, and plenty of other notes and theories cluttering the folder, she quickly moved on, dismissing the thought as just another interesting possibility.
[Name] packed up her things, sliding her notebook and phone into her bag before looping it over her shoulder. The office was quiet now, the hum of the fluorescent lights overhead the only thing breaking the silence. After the chaos of the day, she was ready to head home and sink into her couch for a good few hours of nothing. Just as she reached for the elevator button, her phone buzzed in her bag. Fishing it out, she glanced at the screen, Peter’s name lighting up the notification.
Peter: Hey! So, uh, random thought—what if we grabbed some food after work? You know, assuming your boss isn’t still screaming at you.
She couldn’t help but smile as she typed back, her fingers moving quickly over the screen.
[Name]: That sounds nice. Where were you thinking?
His response popped up almost immediately, as if he’d been waiting by his phone.
Peter: Anywhere! I’m not picky. Where do you work? I could swing by and pick you up.
She hesitated for a moment before replying.
[Name]: I’m at the New York Bulletin. Meet me out front?
There was a pause before the three little typing dots appeared again.
Peter: The Bulletin? Fancy! Okay, yeah, I’ll be there. I mean, obviously, I’ll be there. Not like I’d suggest grabbing food and then not show up. That’d be weird. Anyway, uh, see you soon!
[Name] chuckled softly at his rambling message, slipping her phone back into her bag as the elevator doors opened. There was something endearingly awkward about Peter that she couldn’t quite put her finger on, but it made the idea of seeing him again after such a long day surprisingly appealing.
_________________________________________
The hoverboard swerved violently, forcing Peter to fire a web at the nearest lamppost to swing himself out of its trajectory. "Okay, buddy, could you maybe not destroy all of Midtown while you make your getaway? Some of us are trying to keep the city intact here!" he shouted, though he doubted the villain could hear him over the roar of the board’s engines.
He flipped mid-swing, landing briefly on the side of a building before leaping off again to close the distance. The guy was fast—faster than Peter liked. But Spider-Man was persistent, if nothing else.
"F.R.I.D.A.Y, any chance you’ve got a way to slow him down? Maybe a hoverboard-killer app?" he asked, launching another webline toward the retreating criminal.
"Unfortunately, Peter, hoverboard neutralization software is not currently in the database," F.R.I.D.A.Y responded, her tone as dry as ever.
"Figures," Peter muttered before ducking under a metal sign the villain had toppled onto the street below. His muscles burned, but adrenaline kept him moving. It was moments like these where the city seemed so much bigger than it actually was.
Still, his mind drifted. [Name.] The thought of her brief but pointed glare from earlier that day crept into his brain. She wasn’t exactly thrilled with Spider-Man right now. He couldn’t blame her. But Peter? Peter she liked—or at least, he hoped she still did.
"F.R.I.D.A.Y," he called, panting slightly as he swung around a water tower, "can you send a text to [Name]? Ask her how her morning’s going. Keep it simple."
"Simple text composed: ‘Hey, how’s your morning going?’. " F.R.I.D.A.Y confirmed.
Peter released a breath he hadn’t realized he was holding, gripping the webline tighter as he turned his attention back to the pursuit. If Spider-Man had managed to tank her good graces, maybe Peter could still salvage things. He wasn’t ready to entertain the thought of her not liking either of him.
A moment later, Friday’s voice chimed back in. "Reply received: ‘Let’s see. Explosion, Spider-Man, yelling boss. So, just a normal morning. How about you?’"
Peter groaned softly, flipping over a billboard as he thought a quick response mid-air. "F.R.I.D.A.Y, dictate: ‘Wow, sounds… intense. Did you at least get Spider-Man’s autograph, or was he too busy dodging explosions to notice you?’"
As F.R.I.D.A.Y sent the reply, he couldn’t help but grin at his own awkward humour. It was short-lived, though, as the hoverboard shot straight up into the skyline. "Oh, come on!" Peter muttered, following suit.
Another notification pinged in his ear. "Response from [Name]: ‘I don’t want his autograph. He could shove it up his butt for all I care.’"
Peter nearly missed his next webline, the response throwing him for a loop. "Whoa," he muttered, steadying himself. "F.R.I.D.A.Y, compose: ‘Whoa. That’s, uh… that’s a strong stance on Spider-Man. Did he, like, cut you off in traffic or something? I mean, sure, he’s not perfect, but still. That’s kind of harsh, no?’"
Peter couldn’t help but wince. Yikes. She really doesn’t like Spider-Man right now. His chest tightened slightly, the chase temporarily taking a backseat to his racing thoughts. What did he even say to that?
Friday interrupted his spiral. "Incoming reply: ‘Let’s just say I’ve got some beef with him. And no, I’m not going into it.’"
Peter fired another webline, his brain working overtime to come up with something that wouldn’t make things worse. "Okay, F.R.I.D.A.Y, let’s try: ‘Beef? Like… actual beef? Or, like, metaphorical beef? Because if it’s metaphorical, then, yeah, totally fair. But if it’s actual beef, we might need to have a serious talk about your diet.’"
He cringed after F.R.I.D.A.Y sent it, Classic Parker. When in doubt, go for awkward humour. Real smooth.
Her reply came back just as the hoverboard veered into a construction zone, forcing Peter to focus on dodging beams and girders. "Message reads: ‘Metaphorical. Obviously. And don’t try to joke your way out of this.’"
"Noted," Peter muttered, sighing as he gripped the webline tighter.
"Friday, tell her: ‘Noted. No jokes. But I mean, hey, whatever it is, maybe give him a break? Saving the city’s gotta be, like, super stressful. Not that I’d know or anything, but… you know.’"
As he sent it, Peter launched himself toward the hoverboard, finally close enough to snag one of its engines with his web. "Gotcha!" he exclaimed, yanking hard.
The pursuit came to an abrupt halt as the villain angled sharply upward, his hoverboard propellers whining against the wind before he landed with a heavy thunk on the rooftop of a high-rise building. Peter landed a beat later, his feet skidding slightly across the gravel as he straightened, his muscles taut with anticipation.
"Okay, buddy," Peter said, his voice laced with mock irritation as he adjusted his stance. "We’ve done the whole ‘cat-and-mouse’ thing, but I’m really more of a dog person. How about we wrap this up?"
The villain didn’t respond—not verbally, anyway. Instead, the faint hum of his dark, angular armour filled the air as the small propellers embedded in his back and arms whirred to life. Before Peter could react, the villain shot forward with a burst of force, slamming into him hard enough to send him stumbling back.
"Whoa—okay! Someone’s been hitting the gym!" Peter quipped, barely dodging another lunge as the villain swung a heavy, gauntleted fist at him. The swing missed by inches, the displaced air whistling past Peter’s head.
The rooftop trembled beneath their feet as another bomb exploded several buildings away, the distant flash of orange lighting up the sky. Peter winced, momentarily distracted by the chaos unfolding below. The brief lapse in focus cost him—a sharp jab landed against his ribs, and though the armour in his suit absorbed most of the impact, the force still sent him staggering.
"Right, focus!" Peter muttered to himself, ducking under the next strike. "Eyes on the bad guy, Parker!"
He steadied himself, catching the villain’s next punch mid-swing. For a split second, he had him—grip firm, momentum halted. "Gotcha," Peter said, a triumphant grin tugging at his lips beneath the mask. But the villain only chuckled—a low, mechanical sound that sent a chill up Peter’s spine. "You’re predictable, Spider-Man," the villain sneered, his free hand suddenly snapping up to release a canister from his gauntlet.
Before Peter could react, the rooftop erupted in thick, choking smoke. "Oh, come on!" he groaned, instinctively letting go and stumbling backward as the dense cloud consumed him. His lenses adjusted to the new conditions, but even the enhanced vision didn’t help much. He swung blindly, hoping to catch something—anything—but his fists connected only with air.
The whir of propellers cut through the smoke, growing fainter with each passing second. "No, no, no—you’re not getting away!" Peter shouted, coughing as he tried to chase after the sound. But the smoke was too thick, and by the time it cleared, the villain was gone.
Peter let out a frustrated sigh, resting his hands on his knees as he caught his breath. "Great," he muttered. "Just another day in the life of your friendly neighbourhood Spider-Man. Loser edition." He stood up straight, scanning the horizon for any sign of the hoverboard before pulling out his phone. No new messages from [Name.]
Peter swung through the city, his muscles burning but his focus sharp as he scanned the streets below for any sign of the hoverboard.
“Come on, where are you hiding?” he muttered, firing another webline to propel himself across the skyline. The air carried the faint echo of sirens and chaos, but the villain himself was nowhere to be seen.
“F.R.I.D.A.Y, any luck tracking him?” Peter asked, landing briefly on a rooftop to catch his breath.
“Accessing local CCTV feeds now,” F.R.I.D.A.Y replied, her tone calm and efficient. “Traffic cameras in Midtown show no sign of hoverboard activity. Checking surrounding boroughs.”
Peter groaned softly, crouching on the edge of the rooftop as he kept his eyes trained on the streets below. “I’m starting to think this guy’s got teleportation powers or something. Hoverboards shouldn’t just disappear, right?”
“Unlikely,” F.R.I.D.A.Y said. “However, the density of the smoke released during the encounter may have provided sufficient cover for evasion. Suggest recalibrating search parameters to account for potential underground movement.”
“Underground?” Peter repeated, tilting his head slightly. “You think he ditched the board and went into the subway or something?”
“It is a possibility. Multiple access points in the area you last encountered him could facilitate such movement,” F.R.I.D.A.Y explained.
Peter stood up straight, launching himself off the rooftop with another webline. “Great. Guess I’ll add playing mole to my skillset. Keep checking those cameras, though—just in case he pops back up.”
“Understood,” F.R.I.D.A.Y replied, the soft hum of her data processing filling the silence as Peter swung lower, skimming close to the streets in hopes of catching any trace of the villain’s path. But as the minutes ticked by, the city revealed nothing. No hoverboard, no dark armour—just the faint remnants of smoke and debris left behind.
Eventually, Peter slowed to a halt, perching on the edge of a water tower as the frustration settled in. “Well, that’s just perfect. Great job, Spidey—save the day, lose the bad guy,” he muttered to himself.
F.R.I.D.A.Y interrupted his thoughts. “Search results inconclusive, Peter. No significant matches detected across available feeds.”
“Yeah, I figured as much,” he sighed, rubbing the back of his neck. He looked out at the sprawling city, his grip tightening slightly on the edge of the tower. “Alright. Guess it’s back to damage control. Let me know if anything pops up.”
"Of course, Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y replied as he fired off another webline, diving back into the chaos below.
______________________________________________________
The city stretched out before him, a sea of twinkling lights and restless energy. Perched on the edge of a rooftop, Peter drew his knees up to his chest, the wind tugging lightly at his hair. He’d been here for a while now, his gaze skimming the streets below as he tried to convince himself he wasn’t just stalling. Swinging through the city always gave him clarity, but tonight it hadn’t worked. The knot in his stomach stubbornly refused to loosen.
His phone buzzed in the pocket of his suit, and he sighed as he fished it out. The glowing screen lit up his face beneath the mask as he stared at the message thread with [Name.] He hadn’t heard from her in a bit—not since earlier.
“Alright, Parker,” he muttered to himself, running a gloved hand through his hair. “You can do this. Just a text. Super simple. Totally no big deal.”
He tapped out the message quickly, rereading it about five times before pressing send.
Peter: Hey! So, uh, random thought—what if we grabbed some food after work? You know, assuming your boss isn’t still screaming at you.
He sat there for a moment, frozen, his heart hammering against his ribs. Why did I word it like that? Too awkward? Should I have added a joke? His mind raced, the city below completely forgotten as the typing indicator popped up on the screen.
[Name]: That sounds nice. Where were you thinking?
Peter blinked, staring at the message as though it might vanish if he looked away. “Wait… she said yes?” he muttered, his voice rising slightly in disbelief. He scrambled to type a reply but hesitated again. Play it cool, Parker. You got this.
Peter: Uh, awesome! Where should I pick you up?
The response came back almost immediately.
[Name]: I’m at the New York Bulletin. Meet me out front?
Peter exhaled a soft laugh, tucking his phone back into his pocket as a grin spread across his face. “The Bulletin. Okay, cool. Very cool. You’ve got this.” With that, he stood, stretching briefly before firing a webline and swinging into the night.
It didn’t take him long to reach the area—a handful of web swings, tops—but instead of heading straight to the building, he dropped down a few blocks away, slipping into the shadow of a dumpster in a quiet alley. “Alright, time to de-Spider,” he murmured, peeling off his suit and shoving it into the backpack he kept stashed nearby. He slipped into a pair of jeans, a simple geeky shirt, and a jacket, zipping it up just enough to keep warm in the brisk evening air.
As he adjusted his jacket and ran a hand through his hair, his nerves started to creep back in. Swinging through the city? Easy. Facing down supervillains? No problem. But dinner with [Name.]? That felt like a whole different kind of challenge.
The city lights cast a soft glow as Peter rounded the corner of the New York Bulletin, his steps slowing the moment his eyes landed on her. She was standing near the entrance, scrolling through her phone, completely unaware of the way the city seemed to fade in Peter’s view. His gaze softened as he took her in—the casual confidence in her posture, the faint flicker of a smile playing on her lips. For a moment, the world felt a little quieter.
“Okay, Parker,” he muttered under his breath, tugging at the hem of his jacket. “You’ve got this. Be cool. Cool-ish. Just… don’t trip over your own feet.”
Taking a breath, he stepped forward, his nerves bubbling beneath his attempt at casual confidence. “Hey!” he called, his voice slightly higher than he intended. Clearing his throat quickly, he continued, “Hey, uh—[Name.]”
She glanced up at the sound, her brows furrowing for a split second before her gaze landed on him. Recognition sparked in her eyes, and almost immediately, a wide smile spread across her face.
“Peter!” she said, her voice warm and inviting. Her smile grew as she tucked her phone away and turned fully toward him. For a moment, she just took him in—the messy hair, the geeky shirt peeking out beneath his jacket, and the way he seemed both nervous and confident all at once. There was something so endearingly Peter about him that it was impossible not to admire.
Peter stopped a few steps away, rubbing the back of his neck as his lips quirked into a lopsided grin. “So, uh, you survived your boss, huh? He didn’t, like, spontaneously combust or anything?”
She laughed softly, shaking her head. “Not yet, but there’s still time.”
That laugh. It settled something in Peter’s chest, even as his nerves refused to completely quiet. “Well, lucky for me you didn’t call it a day early. Otherwise, I’d be standing here talking to myself like a total weirdo.”
“Oh~, I wouldn’t want you to suffer through that,” she teased, tilting her head as her smile lingered. “You look good, Peter.”
Peter blinked, momentarily caught off guard. “Oh, uh, thanks! You look... Pr-Pretty!” He scratched the back of his neck, his grin turning a little sheepish. “Anyway, where should we head? I mean, if you’re still up for grabbing food.”
Her smile widened as she motioned toward the street. “Wherever you want, Peter. Lead the way.”
Peter straightened slightly, his confidence growing as he gestured dramatically toward the street. “Alright then. Prepare to be wowed by my totally average taste in food.”
__________________________________________
Ned jogged up the steps to his apartment complex, his bag slung over one shoulder and his brain still buzzing from the brainstorming session with MJ. They’d made some solid progress—or at least, that’s what he told himself. Peter would be grateful… eventually.
As he reached the front entrance, his foot nudged something. He glanced down to find a small parcel sitting on the step, unattended. Frowning, he bent to pick it up, flipping it over in his hands to check the shipping label. “Let’s see…” he muttered, squinting at the address in the dim light. “Oh, hey, it’s for someone in the building.”
Ned straightened, balancing the parcel in one hand as he unlocked the door with the other. The shipping address caught his eye again—Apartment 4B. His brow lifted. “That’s… literally across the hall from me,” he said to himself, stepping inside and letting the door swing shut behind him.
The elevator was broken again (no surprise there), so he took the stairs two at a time, the parcel tucked snugly under his arm. As he reached his floor and made his way to his door, he glanced across at 4B. He’d never met whoever lived there, which was weird, considering how often their paths probably crossed. Maybe this was a good opportunity to make an impression—or at least do something nice.
Pausing in front of his door, he looked back at the parcel, then at 4B, then back at the parcel. “I’ll just… leave a note or something,” he decided out loud, nodding to himself. “Yeah. Nice guy move. Totally non-creepy.”
Ned unlocked his door, stepping into his apartment with the parcel tucked under his arm. “Alright,” he said to himself, kicking off his sneakers and setting the box down on his small kitchen table. “I’ll just hold onto this until they come looking for it. Way better than leaving it outside.”
He pulled his bag off his shoulder, tossing it onto the couch before grabbing a sticky note from the stack he kept near the fridge. Scribbling quickly, he wrote: Hi! Found this on the steps. I’ve got it in 4A—just knock! He added a little smiley face for good measure, nodding to himself as if to approve his own work.
Peeling the note from the stack, he headed back to his front door. Stepping into the hallway, he stuck the note carefully onto his neighbour's door at 4B, smoothing it down so it wouldn’t fall off.
“There,” he murmured. “Good deed of the day, check.” Returning to his apartment, he glanced at the parcel sitting innocently on the table. “Now,” he said, heading toward the kitchen and opening the fridge. “Pizza time."
________________________________________
The restaurant was tucked into the corner of a quiet street, its rustic charm illuminated by soft, warm lighting that spilled out onto the sidewalk. Peter stepped ahead, holding the door open for [Name.] as the faint scent of soy sauce and ginger greeted them.
“This place looks nice,” [Name.] said, her gaze flickering over the cozy décor. The wooden tables, mismatched chairs, and faint hum of conversation gave it a welcoming vibe.
“Yeah, it’s one of my favourites,” Peter replied, running a hand through his hair as he approached the lady at the front desk. “Uh, hi—table for two?” His smile was slightly sheepish, but endearing all the same.
The lady behind the counter nodded, grabbing two menus before gesturing toward a small table near the window. Peter followed her lead, pulling out a chair for [Name.] as they sat down. The faint glow of the hanging lanterns overhead added a warm intimacy to the space.
“So,” Peter started, fiddling with the edge of the menu, “how was the rest of your day? You didn’t run into any more explosions, did you?”
[Name.] laughed softly, shaking her head. “No, thankfully. Just the usual chaos at work. Though I think my boss might be running on coffee fumes at this point.”
Peter chuckled, leaning forward slightly. “Sounds intense. You’re handling it way better than I would. I’d probably be hiding under a desk.”
“You? Under a desk? I don’t buy it,” [Name.] teased, her smile widening. “You’ve got more confidence than you think, Peter.”
Peter felt his cheeks warm, a small laugh escaping him as he scratched the back of his neck. “Maybe. Or I’m just really good at pretending.”
Their conversation paused briefly as a waitress approached to take their drink orders. Peter ordered jasmine tea, and [Name.] opted for something fruity.
As the waitress left, [Name.] glanced around the restaurant again, her smile softening. “This place is cute. How’d you find it?”
“Honestly? Accident,” Peter admitted, gesturing vaguely toward the door. “I was starving one night, and it was pouring rain. Ducking in here was probably the best decision I made that week.”
“Well, good decision,” [Name.] said, resting her chin lightly in her hand. “It feels… comforting.”
Peter smiled, watching her for a moment before realizing he was staring. He quickly shifted his gaze back to the menu, fiddling with the corner again. “Uh, yeah. Definitely comforting. So, uh, what’re you thinking? Kung Pao? Fried rice? The dumplings here are, like, legendary.”
“Well, if they’re that legendary, we’ll have to get the dumplings,” [Name.] replied with a playful smile, resting her menu flat on the table. “And some fried rice. Can’t go wrong with fried rice, right?”
“Solid choice,” Peter nodded enthusiastically, flipping the menu over in his hands. “I’m definitely getting dumplings too. And, uh, the Kung Pao chicken—it’s kind of my go-to.”
“Oh, branching out, are we?” she teased lightly, her eyes glinting with humor.
Peter laughed, leaning back in his chair. “What can I say? I’m a creature of habit. You’ll thank me, though—the Kung Pao here is ridiculously good.”
As they finalized their orders and the waitress disappeared to pass them to the kitchen, the conversation shifted naturally. Peter glanced across the table, his fingers drumming lightly against the edge. “So, uh, enough about your yelling boss and Spider-Man explosions,” he started, his tone light. “What about you? Like… what do you do when you’re not dodging chaos at work?”
She tilted her head, her smile softening as she considered the question. "What do I do? Hmm… try to survive, mostly," she said with a small laugh. "But when I'm not fending off chaos? I read. A lot, actually. And, uh, I sketch sometimes—nothing serious, though."
Peter’s eyebrows rose with interest. "Sketch, huh? Like… buildings, people, or random Spider-Man sightings?" he joked, his grin widening.
She laughed, shaking her head. "Definitely not Spider-Man sightings. It’s more… people, I guess. Faces, mostly. Sometimes I see someone on the subway, and I just feel like I need to capture whatever it is about them that stands out. You know?"
Peter nodded, leaning in slightly. "That's actually really cool. I mean, you’re like, immortalizing moments of people’s lives. Way more impressive than my 'doodle on the edges of tech manuals during troubleshooting' level."
She rolled her eyes playfully. "Something tells me you aced physics anyway. But yeah, it’s a hobby. Helps me slow down when everything feels too much, you know?"
Peter smiled thoughtfully, and for a moment, the table felt quieter. "I get that," he said softly, his voice carrying a rare seriousness. "Sometimes, when everything’s spinning out of control, you just need… something to ground you."
She studied him for a moment, curious about the shift in his tone.
“That makes sense,” she said, lightly tracing the rim of her glass. “So, who’s your grounding force? Family? Friends?”
Peter perked up, his grin returning as if the serious moment had passed. “Oh, yeah, totally. I mean, there’s Ned—he’s been my guy forever, you know? He’s like my go-to for everything. And MJ—she’s kind of this brilliant, sarcastic genius who never lets me get away with anything. She keeps me in check.”
“MJ,” she repeated, raising an eyebrow with a teasing smile. “Is she your girlfriend?”
Peter blinked, caught off guard. “What? No. No, no, no, no,” he said quickly, waving his hands for emphasis, the words tumbling out in true Parker fashion. “She’s not—it’s not like that. I mean, she’s amazing, but she’s, uh, not my girlfriend. Nope. Just friends. Great friends. Totally great friends.”
She tilted her head, clearly amused. “Okay, okay, I believe you,” she said, holding back a laugh. “You don’t have to over-explain, you know.”
Peter let out a breath, scratching the back of his neck with a sheepish grin. “Yeah, well, over-explaining is kind of my thing. But seriously, it’s not like that. Just friends.” His gaze flicked back to her, and for a moment, his usual easy-going confidence returned. “Why? You jealous or something?” he asked, a mischievous glint in his eye.
Her laugh bubbled up, and she shook her head. “Nice try, Parker.”
_________________________________________
Peter gave her a quick grin, the kind that made his eyes crinkle at the corners, as he ran a hand through his hair—a gesture so effortlessly endearing it caught her off guard. She felt her heart skip a beat, heat creeping up her neck before she could reel herself back in.
Peter noticed the faint shift in her expression and froze, his grin faltering ever so slightly. “Wait, do I have something on my face?” he asked, his voice tinged with alarm as his fingers instinctively went to his chin, then his cheeks, searching for an imaginary smudge.
“No, no, you’re fine,” she said, biting her lip to stifle the laugh threatening to escape. She shook her head, her shoulders trembling as the laugh finally broke free, soft and unbidden.
Peter tilted his head, narrowing his eyes in mock suspicion. “You sure? Because you’re laughing, and now I’m convinced there’s, like, sauce or rice stuck somewhere.”
Her laughter bubbled up again, and she waved him off, brushing a strand of hair behind her ear. “I promise, you’re good. You’re just…” She trailed off, cheeks warming under his curious gaze. “Never mind.” Peter raised an eyebrow, his grin returning with a touch of mischief.
“Wait, hold on, you can’t just ‘never mind’ me like that. I’m officially invested now.”
She huffed a small laugh, rolling her eyes. “Let it go, Parker.”
“Not a chance,” he teased, leaning forward slightly, his usual confidence creeping back into his voice. “You’ve got me all paranoid now.”
Peter grinned, running a hand through his hair in that casual, endearing way, and leaned back in his chair. “So, no sauce on my face, right? Or rice? We’re good?” he joked, gesturing lightly to the table cluttered with nearly empty plates and a few stray grains of rice.
She shook her head, smiling as she speared the last bite of her fried rice with her fork. “You’re good, Parker. No rogue food particles. I promise.”
He sighed dramatically, feigning relief. “Okay, great. I was worried for a sec—”
His phone buzzed on the table, interrupting him mid-sentence. He glanced at it quickly and then ignored it, reaching for his drink instead. When it buzzed again, then a third time in quick succession, he froze, his fingers tapping nervously on the edge of the glass.
“It might be important,” she said, setting her fork down and giving him a gentle nudge to check.
Peter hesitated, chewing the inside of his cheek. “Uh, yeah, okay…”
Reluctantly, he picked up the phone. His eyes scanned the screen, and his heart sank as F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s alert flashed in bold: Incident at Hudson Yards. Immediate action required.
“Oh no,” he muttered, his voice barely audible. Looking up, guilt already written all over his face, he started scrambling to grab his wallet. “I’m so sorry—I have to go. It’s an emergency.”
She raised her hands to stop him. “Peter, it’s fine. Seriously, don’t worry about it.”
“No, no, the food’s on me,” he insisted, fumbling through his wallet and tossing some cash onto the table. “Order dessert, get it boxed up—whatever. I feel really bad about leaving like this.”
She stood as he got to his feet, brushing her hair over her shoulder.
“It’s okay, really. Go take care of whatever it is you need to do.”
Peter paused, his wallet still clutched in his hand. “I’ll make it up to you, I promise,” he said, his voice as earnest as ever. “Like, next time—more food, extra dumplings, the whole thing.”
She laughed softly, adjusting her bag. “Just text me when you’re done, okay? I’ll let you know when I’m home.”
His face softened, and he gave her a quick smile, the kind that made her heart skip for just a second too long. “Thanks,” he said, his voice warm and genuine. Then, with that classic mix of clumsiness and urgency, he nodded and hurried toward the door, pausing just long enough to glance back at her before disappearing.
_________________________________________
The city night had fallen into a peaceful hum by the time she reached her apartment building. As she climbed the stairs, the memory of Peter’s hurried exit lingered. She didn’t blame him—emergencies happened—but it didn’t stop the small pang of disappointment from settling in her chest. She pulled out her phone as she reached the third floor, her thumb swiping across the screen. No messages from him yet. She exhaled softly, tucking it back into her pocket as her steps carried her upward.
By the time she reached the fourth floor, the yellow post-it on her door caught her attention immediately. Peeling it off, she read the message: Hi! Found this on the steps. I’ve got it in 4A—just knock! Intrigued, she glanced at the apartment across the hall—4A—and made her way over, rapping lightly on the door.
There was a brief pause, and then chaos seemed to erupt on the other side. A loud crash, followed by a muffled “Oh, shoot—wait! Wait, hang on!” and what sounded like a chair being hurriedly shoved aside. She frowned, taking half a step back out of reflex, until the door finally opened.
Standing there, slightly out of breath, was a familiar-looking guy with wide eyes, round glasses slightly askew, and the unmistakable energy of someone trying to pull it together.
“Hi!” he said, his voice a touch higher than usual. He glanced at her, then at the post-it she held, connecting the dots. “Oh! 4B, right? Hey, uh—sorry about that. I was… reorganizing my desk,” he explained, motioning vaguely to the apartment behind him, where a chair lay tipped over, and a few scattered action figures were visible on a shelf. “You know, uh, feng shui. Anyway, I’m Ned.”
She raised an eyebrow, her lips twitching into a small smile. “Hi, Ned. I got your note…?”
“Oh, right!” He snapped his fingers, backing into the doorway and pointing over his shoulder toward the kitchen counter. “Yeah, I found your—wait, uh, what was it again? Oh! Yeah, it’s here!” He shuffled over to grab whatever he’d picked up earlier, his movements quick and slightly clumsy. “I didn’t want to just leave it out there, you know? Could’ve been stolen or, like, blown away or something.”
He turned back, holding her item out with a triumphant grin.
“Thanks for keeping this safe for me,” she said with a warm smile, reaching out to take her parcel from his hands.
Ned grinned, rocking slightly on his heels. “Oh, no problem! Always happy to help. You know, neighborly stuff!” His eyes flicked down, catching sight of the to-go box she was holding. “Oh man, is that from Yang’s on 7th? That place has, like, the best dumplings. And the Kung Pao chicken? It’s, like, life-changing. Did you get the Kung Pao? Wait—no, that’s probably fried rice, right? Oh! Or the dumplings? Definitely dumplings. Or both?”
She blinked, surprised by his sudden enthusiasm before laughing softly. “Uh, yeah, the fried rice was great. I had dumplings too,” she added, balancing the box in her hands. “The food was amazing.”
Ned nodded vigorously, clearly thrilled. “Right?! Me and my friends go there all the time—it’s, like, undefeated. Honestly, the sweet and sour pork? A sleeper hit. You’ve gotta try it next time. Just saying inc-” He stopped himself, his eyes widening slightly as if realizing he was on the verge of rambling. He laughed awkwardly, scratching the back of his neck. “Sorry, uh, sometimes I just… food’s kind of my thing, I guess.”
She laughed again, shaking her head. “It’s okay. You’re, uh… really passionate about good food, I get it. And thanks again for keeping this safe for me.”
Ned straightened up, giving her an overly dramatic salute. “Anytime! That’s what neighbours are for.”
As she turned to head back to her door, she couldn’t help but smile to herself. Ned’s slightly awkward, sweet demeanour felt familiar—just different enough to remind her of someone else she knew. Someone with a knack for rushing off into emergencies but always leaving an impression.
_________________________________________
Hi! the more I get into this story, the more I seem to add this was supposed to be a 2 part thing and even I don't know where its going but I am having so much fun!
Tumblr media
12 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 3 months ago
Text
Tumblr media Tumblr media Tumblr media
~ A Little Taste of Heaven ~ (Peter Parker x Fem!Reader) (3/10)
Tumblr media Tumblr media Tumblr media
____________________________________________________
🎵🎶Magnet (639Hz) - by Able Heart🎶🎵
____________________________________________________
Warnings :Fluff / Squintforslightsmut? / TonybeingTony /Peterbeingacutey / humour Summery "After an intimate encounter with Spider-Man, [name] finds herself left webbed to the wall—a moment that stings with both hurt and resolve. Refusing to let the abandonment define her, she decides to take control of her own path. In her journey to move forward, she crosses paths with Peter Parker, unaware that the charming stranger is, in fact, the very man she’s trying to forget." __________________________________________________
Time blurred into a frustrating haze, each moment stretching uncomfortably as she remained stuck to the wall. The webbing held fast around her wrist, its unyielding grip making every attempt to shift her weight an exercise in futility. She wasn’t inebriated, not quite—but the drinks she’d had earlier left a pleasant buzz humming faintly through her veins, dulling some of her sharper instincts.
Her legs ached, bent awkwardly in her attempts to make herself comfortable. The cool concrete beneath her dug into her knees and back, adding to the growing discomfort. Her free hand gripped the brick wall for balance, the rough surface a poor substitute for relief. Still, she refused to let it break her composure.
What stung more than the physical strain was the way he had left. No explanation, no reassurance—just a sharp departure into the night, leaving her pinned here, tangled in a mess he’d created. She frowned, her jaw tightening as the thought struck a nerve. What did she expect? A goodbye? An apology? It wasn’t like they were anything to each other.
And yet, something about the way he’d touched her, the way he’d looked at her—it had felt real in a way she couldn’t quite ignore. She had kissed him, yes, but the moment between them wasn’t just hers. It was theirs, he had his damn mouth on her core for crying out loud!
Her stomach twisted despite her best efforts to shove the thought aside. It wasn’t heartache—no, she wasn’t going to let herself feel that. But the lack of closure gnawed at her, an annoyance she couldn’t quite shake. She pressed her lips into a firm line, glancing around the alley as if it could offer her some distraction. All she found was the faint residue of the web on the wall, mocking her with its stubborn presence.
She shifted her position again, a soft grunt escaping as her knees scraped against the concrete. Every adjustment brought only temporary relief, but she refused to let frustration take hold. She’d deal with the ache, just like she’d deal with this whole stupid night, and then she’d move on.
Because she would move on. Spider-Man could vanish into the city’s skyline and take whatever she thought she felt with him. She’d shake it off—so what if he’d left her here without a word? If anything, it only confirmed what she already knew: heroes weren’t infallible. And she didn’t need one to save her.
The faint sound of traffic filtered in from the street beyond the alley, a reminder of the world still spinning outside her small pocket of frustration. She straightened her shoulders, testing the web’s grip one more time with a sharp tug. When it didn’t give, she exhaled sharply, muttering under her breath, “Typical.”
She could wait a little longer, but she wouldn’t waste another second thinking about him. Or at least, she’d try not to.
________________________________________________________
The web finally gave way, loosening its sticky grip on her wrist just enough for her to wiggle it free. It wasn’t a clean escape—she had to twist and yank, muttering a string of curses under her breath—but when her hand finally broke free, she staggered back from the wall, clutching her wrist triumphantly.
“Oh, finally!” she groaned, exasperation clear in her tone. “Stupid web... stupid Spider-Man... stupid everything!”
Flexing her sore wrist, she glared at the wall as if it had been the one holding her prisoner. Her palm was sticky from residue, and she rubbed it against the side of her left thigh, grimacing at the faint tackiness that wouldn’t come off. She shook her head, brushing her dishevelled hair out of her face as she straightened up, determined to leave this miserable alley and its humiliations behind.
Her eyes darted around until she spotted her bag, discarded a few feet away. She darted toward it, scooping it up off the ground and slinging it over her shoulder with a huff. That’s when she caught sight of the screen on her phone, glowing faintly inside the bag’s open pocket. Thirty minutes. She’d been stuck there for thirty freaking minutes.
The realization hit her like a slap. Thirty minutes. Her cheeks flushed hot with a mixture of humiliation and rage as the seconds stretched out in her mind. It wasn’t just that he’d left—he’d left her pinned there, helpless and exposed, like a damn nuisance he couldn’t be bothered to untangle.
“Oh, I am so done with this!” she snapped, her voice echoing faintly in the empty alley. She stormed toward the mouth of the alleyway, her strides quick and purposeful, her heels clicking sharply against the pavement. Her pulse pounded in her ears as her frustration bubbled over. She could still feel the faint stickiness on her wrist- her cum drying on the inside of her legs, a lingering reminder of the indignity of it all.
But as she stepped out into the street, her anger faltered for just a moment. The familiar brick façade of her apartment building stared back at her from across the road. She blinked, her brow furrowing in disbelief.
“Seriously?” she muttered, glancing from her building to the alley behind her. Her apartment had been right there—right there—the whole time, and she’d been too stuck to even realize it.
She shook her head, her jaw tightening as her frustration surged back. “Unbelievable.” She adjusted the strap of her bag and marched toward the crosswalk, her chin held high and her steps as sharp as her mood.
It didn’t matter that her apartment was so close now. All that mattered was putting as much distance as she could between herself and the wall that had held her—and the man who’d left her there.
She fumbled in her bag, her fingers brushing past her phone and a half-empty pack of gum before finally finding the familiar shape of her keys. “Come on,” she muttered under her breath, the words little more than a frustrated whisper. The front door loomed in front of her, stubborn and unyielding as she juggled her bag and the keys, the strap slipping from her shoulder in the process.
Finally, after a few seconds that felt far longer than they should have, the key slid into the lock with a satisfying click. She shoved the door open with her shoulder, stepping into the small lobby and letting it swing shut behind her. The quiet hum of the building was a welcome change from the sounds of the city outside, but it did little to ease the tension in her muscles.
Her eyes flicked upward toward the stairs. Fourth floor. She sighed, adjusting the strap of her bag as she began her ascent, each step a reminder of how sore her legs were. The click of her heels against the concrete staircase echoed faintly, a rhythmic reminder of just how much she wanted to be out of them.
Reaching her door felt like a small victory. She unlocked it swiftly and pushed it open, stepping inside and letting the comforting familiarity of her apartment wash over her. The bag hit the floor with an unceremonious thud, and she kicked off her heels immediately, wincing slightly as her feet protested their sudden freedom.
She stood there for a moment, flexing her toes and savoring the relief. “Never again,” she mumbled to herself, casting a glare at the offending shoes before making her way toward the bathroom. Her body ached—her calves, her back, even her arms.
All she wanted now was the soothing steam of a hot shower to chase away the night’s discomfort. She moved briskly toward the bathroom, her fingers already reaching for the zipper at the back of her dress. With a quick tug, the fabric loosened, slipping from her shoulders and pooling at her feet. She stepped out of it carefully, draping the dress over the edge of the hamper before unhooking her bra and sliding it off with the same efficient motion. Her hands then moved to her underwear, and she slipped them off with a growl of frustration.
They were her favourite pair, the ones with the delicate lace and soft fabric, and now they were ruined - a casualty of the intense encounter with the masked hero. As she thought back to the way he had touched her, the way he had made her feel, her body began to heat up all over again, her skin prickling with remembered pleasure. But her anger and irritation quickly surged back to the forefront, overriding her arousal. Who did he think he was, anyway? Some kind of masked vigilante who could just sweep in, destroy her favourite underwear, and leave her breathless and wanting?
The cool tiles beneath her feet sent a light shiver through her as she reached for the shower controls. Twisting the knob, she let the water rush out, adjusting it until the temperature hit the perfect balance of hot and soothing. Steam began to rise almost immediately, fogging up the edges of the mirror and softening the harsh fluorescent light overhead.
She leaned against the sink for a brief moment, letting the sound of the water fill the small space. It was calming in its own way, a gentle rush that drowned out the lingering noise of the world outside. Reaching up, she swept her hair into a loose clip to keep it dry, then stepped toward the shower, ready to let the heat wash everything away. As the warm water cascaded down her skin, she closed her eyes and let out a sigh, feeling the tension in her body begin to ease. But as she reached for the soap and began to wash herself, her mind started to wander back to the events of the night. Her hands moved over her skin, cleaning away the remnants of their encounter, and she felt a shiver run down her spine as she touched her core. The soap and water washed away the cum and saliva, but it couldn't erase the memories of the way he had touched her, the way he had made her feel.
As she rinsed herself clean, she felt her body start to heat up all over again, her nipples tightening and her breasts growing heavy. She bit her lip, trying to suppress the surge of arousal that threatened to overwhelm her. But it was no use - the memories of the night's events were too vivid, too potent, and she found herself growing wet all over again, her body responding to the memories of his touch like a Pavlovian reflex. She leaned back against the shower wall, her eyes still closed, and let the water wash over her, trying to calm the storm that was brewing inside her. But as she stood there, she couldn't shake the feeling that she was far from done with the masked hero.
Stepping out of the shower, she wrapped herself in a soft towel, the heat from the steam still clinging to her skin. The aches and stiffness from earlier had eased, replaced by the comforting warmth that only a long, hot shower could provide. She ran a hand through her damp hair, pushing it back from her face as she padded into the bathroom to brush her teeth.
The rhythmic sound of the toothbrush filled the quiet apartment as she worked quickly, her eyelids already feeling heavy. Tonight had dragged on long enough, and all she wanted now was to curl up in bed and let sleep take her. Spitting out the last of the toothpaste, she rinsed her mouth, patted her face dry with a towel, and flipped off the bathroom light.
She moved to the bedroom, tugging on an old, comfortable T-shirt as she climbed into bed. The sheets felt cool against her skin, a welcome contrast to the residual warmth from her shower. Letting out a sigh of relief, she pulled the blanket up to her shoulders, adjusting her pillow until it felt just right.
The day’s chaos felt distant now, like a bad dream she could almost convince herself hadn’t happened. Her body relaxed against the mattress, and her mind, dulled by exhaustion, began to drift. Whatever tomorrow brought, she’d deal with it then. For now, all that mattered was the quiet stillness of her apartment and the promise of rest.
____________________________________________________
Peter eased open the window of his modest apartment, the cool night air following him in like an unwelcome guest. The Spider-Man suit clung to his skin, a second layer that felt heavier tonight. He set his mask down on the windowsill, running a hand through sweat-dampened curls as his mind replayed the events of the evening.
He had searched everywhere for her. Alleyways, rooftops, fire escapes—anywhere she might have gone after freeing herself from the web. But the city had swallowed her up, its labyrinth of streets giving no clues, offering no solace. He hated the idea of leaving things unresolved, of not knowing if she was safe.
A sharp ache in his side broke through his thoughts. Peter winced, hand pressing against his ribcage where the thief’s fist had landed with unrelenting force. The bruise was already forming, dark and ugly beneath the fabric. With a sigh, he peeled off the suit, the material sticking to his skin as if reluctant to let go.
Standing shirtless in front of his mirror, Peter assessed the damage. The bruise spread like a storm cloud across his side, a stark reminder of the cost of his dual life.
His reflection stared back at him, tired and a little defeated. Moments like these—alone in the silence—were when it hit him hardest. The weight of responsibility.
Tomorrow was a new day. Spider-Man would always show up. Peter Parker, though? That was the part he wasn’t so sure about.
----------------------------------------------------------------------------
MJ’s place was filled with the comforting aroma of takeout, cartons spread across the coffee table like a mini buffet. Ned plucked a dumpling from the box in front of him while MJ lounged on the armchair, one leg draped over the side, scrolling through her phone. Peter sat on the couch, a little quieter than usual, picking at the sleeve of his hoodie.
“So,” Ned started, mouth half-full, “did you ever find her? The girl from last week?”
MJ looked up from her phone, her expression softening. “Yeah, Spider-Man’s mystery girl. What happened there?”
Peter hesitated, his fingers stilling on the fabric. “No,” he admitted quietly, the word heavy. “I... I looked for hours, but... she was gone.”
The room seemed to pause for a beat, the usual easy-going air between them dipping into something more somber. MJ set her phone down, leaning forward slightly. “Well,” she said, her tone half-teasing but not unkind, “you did kinda leave her webbed to a wall.”
Ned snorted, barely swallowing his dumpling. “Yeah, dude. Not exactly a romantic exit.”
Peter sighed, his expression darkening. “It wasn’t like that... I didn’t have a choice.”
MJ’s smirk softened into something more understanding. “I know. But come on, Peter—you did make an impression. Passionate make out session-head and webbing someone to a wall? That’s not something they'd ever forget.”
Ned burst out laughing, nearly choking on his dumpling. “Yeah, dude! If I were her, I’d have a web-shaped grudge against you for life.”
Peter’s ears flushed red as he slouched further into the couch, muttering, “It’s not like I wanted to... It was just the safest option.”
MJ leaned back with a knowing smile. “Relax, I’m just saying. She probably remembers you—Spider-Man—and not in a bad way.”
Ned chimed in, ever the optimist. “Or maybe she’s like, a super-spy or something. You know, hiding in plain sight, gathering intel. Plot twist: she’s got her own secret identity!”
Peter managed a faint smile, shaking his head. “I doubt that, Ned.”
“Hey, you never know, dude. I’m just saying, if it were me, I’d be all cloak-and-dagger about it. Spy gadgets, cool code names... I’d call myself... The Nedster.”
MJ rolled her eyes, but a smirk tugged at her lips. “Please don’t.”
“Don’t knock it till you try it,” Ned retorted, popping another dumpling into his mouth.
Peter’s smile lingered for a moment before fading. “It’s not about that,” he said softly. “I just... I don’t like leaving things unresolved. It’s—”
“Unfinished,” MJ finished for him. “I get it. But you’re not exactly the poster boy for closure, Pete. You’ve got a lot on your plate.”
“You mean like dumplings?” Ned quipped, holding up the box.
MJ shot him a look. “Not now, Ned.”
“Right, sorry. Serious moment. Got it.”
Peter leaned back into the couch, his gaze fixed on a spot on the floor. “I just hope she’s okay,” he murmured. “And... I hope she doesn’t hate me.”
MJ tilted her head, studying him for a moment. “I mean... I don’t know. If it were me? Getting left stuck to a wall might not be my favourite memory,” she said with a half-smile.
Ned pointed his chopstick at Peter with renewed enthusiasm. “Yeah, dude, MJ’s right! And besides, no one could seriously hate Spider-Man. Except maybe Jameson. Oh! Or that guy who keeps graffitiing 'Bug-Menace' around Queens.”
MJ rolled her eyes but didn’t push further. Peter stayed quiet, his fingers tapping idly on the arm of the couch. “I hope so,” he said softly. “I really do.”
Peter’s phone buzzed sharply against the coffee table. He picked it up, and his expression shifted immediately as he read the notification.
“Uh-oh,” he muttered, standing so fast he nearly knocked over the bowl of noodles in front of him. “Guys, I’ve gotta go.”
MJ glanced up, her brow furrowing. “What now?”
“Tony,” Peter said hurriedly, shoving his phone into his pocket and grabbing his jacket. “He says he needs to talk. Like, now.”
Ned’s eyes widened, his chopsticks frozen mid-air. “Wait, Tony Stark? Oh man, what did you do? Did you, like, borrow one of his suits and break it? Or, ooh, did you accidentally blow up something expensive? Dude, what if it’s about that really bad landing you showed me last week—maybe it scratched one of his cars!”
Peter was already halfway to the door, fumbling with his jacket. “I didn’t do anything! At least... I don’t think I did? I don’t know—he just said it’s important.”
“Uh-huh,” Ned said, grinning. “Classic guilty guy response.”
MJ shook her head with a sigh. “Go, Peter. Save Stark’s tower, or whatever it is you do.”
Peter flashed them a quick, awkward wave before darting out the door. As it slammed shut, Ned turned to MJ, leaning closer.
“So, bets on what this is about?” he said, his voice conspiratorial. “I’m calling it—he knocked over a lab experiment. Or spilled coffee on one of those fancy holograms.”
MJ smirked, plucking a dumpling from Ned’s box. “I’m just betting he’s going to forget to update us about it. Again.”
Peter’s sneakers slapped against the pavement as he weaved through the bustling Midtown crowd, murmuring apologies when he brushed too close to a passerby. His chest tightened—not just from the brisk pace, but from the thought of keeping Tony waiting. Stark’s messages always carried a certain weight, even when they were just texts.
He could’ve swung there as Spider-Man. It would’ve been faster, easier—but not today. Today, he was just Peter Parker, rushing through the city like an ordinary guy on an extraordinarily tight schedule.
As he neared the block where Stark Tower loomed into the skyline, Peter’s focus tightened. He darted between two oncoming pedestrians, his head down, momentum propelling him—
And then it happened.
The collision was sudden, jarring. Peter stumbled back a step, wide-eyed as the woman in front of him staggered, nearly losing her balance. Instinct kicked in before his brain could catch up, his hand darting out to steady her. His arm slipped around her waist, his other hand brushing the small of her back. The force of their movements left her in a dip, the world tilting for just a moment as they froze in that precarious pose.
“I—I’m so sorry,” Peter stammered, his voice higher than usual as his cheeks flushed pink. “I wasn’t looking, I—”
Then he looked up.
His heart stopped. His grip on her waist tightened just slightly to keep her from slipping further, his breath catching in his throat.
It was her.
Peter blinked, his brain scrambling to process what his eyes were telling him. He was holding her—the girl he hadn’t stopped thinking about for a week, the girl he’d searched for as Spider-Man without any luck. And now, here she was, in his arms.
“Sh—shoot!” Peter fumbled, straightening her up quickly but awkwardly. “I—uh, you—hi?”
The word felt inadequate, and mentally smacked himself as his pulse hammered in his ears. Peter blinked, his brain scrambling to catch up with what had just happened. He was still holding onto [name], his hands hovering awkwardly after he helped her upright, as though unsure whether to steady her or let go entirely. Finally, his hands darted back to his sides, but he didn’t seem to know where to put them. They hovered, moved toward his pockets, and then he ended up running one through his curls in that nervous, habitual way of his.
“I—I’m so sorry,” he stammered, his words tripping over each other. “I didn’t see you, and then there was—well, me—and, uh, you’re—you’re not hurt, are you? Because that would be... bad. Obviously.”
[Name] tilted her head, giving him an odd look. She brushed herself off, more surprised than anything, and straightened her jacket. “I’m fine, but... are you okay?” she asked, her brow knitting slightly. “You seem... a little flustered.”
Peter let out a nervous laugh, rubbing the back of his neck. “Flustered? Me? No, no, I’m not flustered. Totally the opposite of flustered. Super un-flustered.”
Her skeptical expression didn’t budge, and Peter realized, too late, that he was still standing too close. He took a half-step back, his face burning. “Right. Uh. Sorry again. For, you know, crashing into you like a human wrecking ball.”
----------------------------[Name]----------------------------------
The morning sunlight filtered through the blinds, streaking the walls of [Name]’s apartment in soft, golden hues. She stretched lazily, savouring the rare luxury of a day off. No alarms, no urgent messages—just her and the day ahead. The kitchen hummed with warmth as she flipped a slice of bread onto the skillet, the sizzle of butter filling the air. Breakfast wasn’t much, just some toast and scrambled eggs, but she wasn’t in the mood for anything elaborate.
She had just settled onto her stool, the fork midway to her mouth, when her phone buzzed loudly on the counter. She glanced at the screen, reading Megan’s name with a slight roll of her eyes. What now? she thought, already bracing herself as she answered.
“Morning, Megan,” [Name] said, balancing the phone between her shoulder and ear. “Don’t tell me you’re working on my day off too.”
“I wouldn’t call it ‘working,’” Megan replied, her tone dangerously cheerful, which only made her more suspicious. “Listen, I need a huge favour.”
{name} groaned audibly. “You know, that’s not how you start a conversation with someone who has scrambled eggs in front of them.”
“Hey, scrambled eggs will still be there in five minutes! And this is important. Life-saving, almost.”
“Somehow I doubt that,” She muttered, though a faint smile tugged at her lips. “What do you want?”
“There’s just... one teensy thing,” Megan said, her words speeding up. “Could you drop something off at Avengers Tower for me? Please?”
{name} nearly choked on her next bite, pulling the phone away to make sure she’d heard correctly. “You want me to go where now?”
“I know, I know, it’s out of the way,” Megan barreled on, “but I’m drowning in work and you’re off today, and you’re, like, so reliable—”
“I’m regretting being reliable,” [Name] cut in flatly, already glaring at the clock on the wall.
“Okay, okay! But hear me out—if you do this for me, I’ll get you that banoffee cheesecake you keep drooling over from that bakery. You know, the one you live around the corner from. Plus, I’ll owe you a drink. Two drinks, even! Consider it a bribe.”
The mention of the cheesecake gave her pause. She’d passed that bakery countless times, staring longingly through the window, but she’d never actually gone in. It was too indulgent, too decadent for her to justify on an ordinary day. But this... this was a tempting deal.
She sighed dramatically, propping her elbow on the counter. “Fine. But if they don’t have that cheesecake, I’m never speaking to you again.”
“Deal!” Megan chirped, her relief almost palpable. “I owe you one. You’re the best, seriously.”
“Uh-huh,” [Name] said, already making a mental note to find something suitably irritating to ask Megan for in return. “Text me the details.”
After hanging up, she looked at her half-finished breakfast and sighed again. So much for a slow morning. She cleaned up quickly, grabbed her jacket, and tucked her phone into her pocket, already wondering why she hadn’t just said no.
The street buzzed with life, a constant current of people streaming past, heads down, shoulders brushing. {Name} stood still on the footpath, her phone gripped tightly in her hand as she stared down at Megan’s text. The directions weren’t adding up. Left at 34th Street? Or was it right? And when did she pass a coffee shop? She huffed, scanning the intersection for some sort of landmark, but the towering buildings only made her feel smaller, more lost.
Another pedestrian brushed past her, muttering something under their breath, and she took a small step closer to the wall, trying to make herself less of an obstacle. The city moved around her with its usual indifference, the rush of footsteps and muted chatter blending into a blur.
“Okay, Megan,” {name} murmured to herself, squinting at the screen. “I’m either really bad at this, or you’re trying to send me on some wild—”
Boom.
The collision came out of nowhere, the force of it jarring her as though the world had knocked her off its axis. Her balance wavered, the ground beneath her feet tilting as she stumbled back. For a second, she thought she might fall, the chaos of the busy street rushing around her, swallowing her up.
But then, hands caught her.
One hand pressed firmly against her waist, the other brushing the small of her back, steadying her before gravity could take over. The sensation was grounding, unexpected. She blinked, disoriented, as her movement was stopped mid-motion—only to realize she was half-dipped, the world tilting slightly off-center as they both froze in place.
For a moment, everything seemed to pause. The buzz of the street faded into the background, drowned out by the sudden closeness. Her breath caught, the feel of those hands holding her steady making her pulse jump unexpectedly.
When her gaze shifted upward, she caught sight of the boy—wide-eyed and equally startled, his curls mussed and his mouth opening and closing as if he were trying to form words but couldn’t quite catch them. He was just as stunned as she was, the tension of the moment lingering as time seemed to hang in suspension.
The word he muttered felt strangely inadequate, almost laughable, given the impact and how he’d caught her. {Name} steadied herself, still faintly off-balance from the collision, and took in the flustered boy in front of her.
His hands hovered near her as though unsure whether to linger or retreat, a mix of hesitation and awkwardness that made him seem younger than she’d first thought. Then, with a suddenness that matched the collision, his hands darted back to his sides as if burned. But he didn’t seem to know what to do with them—they shifted toward his pockets, then jerked away again before one finally slid up to rake nervously through his tousled curls.
She watched him, curiosity piqued as his movements seemed to mirror the whirlwind in his head. [Name] adjusted her balance, brushing her hands down her sides as the unexpected collision faded from her immediate concern. She glanced up at him, her brows still slightly furrowed, but the curiosity in her gaze began to grow. There was something... endearing about the stranger in front of her.
He wasn’t what she’d call traditionally intimidating. His hoodie was slightly baggy, the sleeves pushed up haphazardly as though he’d been in a rush. A rucksack hung off one shoulder, the weight pulling the strap down enough to wrinkle his jacket. His jeans had seen better days—frayed at the cuffs and faded, like they’d been through countless city treks. But it wasn’t his clothes that caught her attention.
It was his face.
Her eyes lingered on the line of his jaw, soft enough to betray his youth but with a sharpness that hinted at something quietly determined. His cheeks were faintly flushed, likely from the rush, and his lips—slightly parted as though searching for words—seemed to tremble with unspoken nerves. Then there were his eyes—warm, brown, and darting nervously as if trying to do everything except meet hers.
He shifted on his feet, looking away suddenly, rubbing the back of his neck. It made the mess of curls at the top of his head shift slightly, and he let out a nervous laugh as he muttered something incomprehensible. She caught herself smiling faintly, a little amused by the combination of clumsy charm and visible discomfort.
When his gaze finally snapped back to hers, it was like he’d caught her mid-thought. Her eyes were still on him, and his expression froze as his ears turned scarlet.
“Oh—uh,” he stammered, one hand tugging at his rucksack strap like it might shield him. “Were you... I mean, I wasn’t—uh—sorry?”
[Name] tilted her head slightly as she listened to him stumble over his words. Something about his voice tugged at the edges of her memory, a faint familiarity she couldn’t quite pin down. It wasn’t the words themselves, but the cadence, the tone—a mix of awkwardness and earnestness that felt oddly... recognizable.
“It’s okay,” she said eventually, cutting through his nervous ramble with a soft laugh. “I mean, I probably shouldn’t have just been standing there like that. Guess I was a little lost.” She tucked a strand of hair behind her ear, her smile widening. “So, I guess we’re both at fault.”
Peter blinked, momentarily caught off guard by her response. “Oh—uh, right. Yeah. Totally a mutual... thing. No harm, no foul,” he added quickly, though his tone wavered slightly. His hand darted up to tousle his hair again, a nervous habit she was starting to notice.
Her gaze lingered on him for a beat longer, studying the way he seemed to bounce between confidence and uncertainty in the span of a few words. And yet, there was something genuine about him, even in his awkwardness.
[Name] shifted her weight slightly, tucking her phone into her pocket as the noise of the city surged around them again. She took a small step to the side, giving space to the steady flow of pedestrians who were starting to glance at their static exchange. Her smile lingered as she tilted her head.
“So, what about you?” she asked lightly, breaking the momentary silence. “Are you just out here crashing into people, or were you actually going somewhere?”
Peter blinked again, his lips parting slightly as though the question caught him off guard. “Oh! Uh, yeah. I mean—no! Not crashing into people. Definitely not. I was... heading somewhere. The, uh... tower.”
Her brow furrowed slightly in curiosity. “The Avengers Tower?”
“Yep. That one,” Peter confirmed, nodding too quickly, his curls bouncing with the motion. “Big shiny building. Kinda hard to miss.”
{name} laughed softly, something in his over-eagerness catching her off guard. “Huh. That’s funny. I’m heading there too.” She paused, her lips twitching into a playful smirk. “Hopefully you don’t run into me again before we get there.”
Peter’s shoulders stiffened as his face flushed another shade of red. “I—uh, no, I don’t—well, I mean, if you wanted—wait, that came out wrong!” His hand shot up to rub the back of his neck again, and he let out a nervous laugh. “What I meant was, since I’m going that way, maybe... maybe I could, you know, walk with you? So you don’t... get lost again.”
She hesitated for a moment, studying him. There was something endearing in the way he fumbled, his words disjointed but never insincere. Finally, she nodded, her expression softening. “Sure. Why not?”
As they started walking, her steps matching his, she found herself sneaking a glance at him again. There was something oddly comforting about him, his awkwardness balancing out the intensity of the city around them. And for a reason she couldn’t quite place, she felt less lost now than she had minutes before.
As they walked, the silence between them stretched just long enough for Peter to start overthinking. Should I say something? Is it weird that I haven’t said anything? He glanced at her again, his nerves catching when he realized she was already looking at him.
“So...” she said, a small smirk tugging at the corner of her lips, “are you just going to walk me all the way there without telling me your name? Or is this like a mysterious, man-of-the-shadows kind of thing?”
Peter blinked, caught off guard. “Oh! Uh, no. Definitely not mysterious. I mean, I can be mysterious if that’s what you—wait, no, I didn’t mean—” He stopped, taking a breath. “I’m Peter. Peter Parker.”
[Name] raised an eyebrow, clearly amused by his fumbling. “Nice to meet you, Peter. I’m [Name]. You can skip the mystery act—doesn’t seem like it’s your thing.”
Peter let out a nervous laugh, scratching the back of his neck. “Yeah, not really my strong suit. I’m more of a... trip-over-my-own-words kind of guy, apparently.”
“Don’t worry,” [Name] replied, her tone teasing. “It’s working for you. Kind of... endearing.”
Peter’s face turned a shade of red that he was sure could be seen from space. “Endearing? Right. Uh, thanks. I think.”
[Name] laughed softly, tucking a strand of hair behind her ear. “So, Peter Parker, how does someone like you end up heading to the Avengers Tower? Are you secretly Tony Stark’s protégé or something?”
His brain stalled at the question, his thoughts scrambling for a believable answer. “Oh, no. Nothing like that,” he said quickly. “I, uh, just do some work with... science stuff. You know, like... projects. Boring stuff.”
“Science stuff?” she repeated, clearly skeptical but too entertained to press further. “That’s about as vague as it gets.”
“Yeah, well, it’s... top-secret,” Peter said, attempting a sheepish grin. “You know how it is.”
She gave him a sideways glance, her smirk widening. “Uh-huh. Totally.”
Peter breathed a small sigh of relief as they continued walking, though he couldn’t help but glance at her again. For now, he just hoped he didn’t embarrass himself any further before they got to the tower.
Peter walked alongside [name], his mind began to wander back to the night they had met. He couldn't help but recall the way she had tasted, the sweet scent of her skin and the musky flavour of her arousal. He remembered the way her leg had felt, thrown over his shoulder as he had his mouth on her core, the way she had trembled and moaned beneath him. It had been a week since that encounter, but the memories still felt vivid and raw.
As Peter’s thoughts started spiralling, a faint blush began to crawl up his neck and into his cheeks. He quickly looked away, shoving his hands into the pockets of his hoodie as if that might somehow ground him. He cleared his throat, trying to shake off the memory looping in his head. “So, uh,” he started, his voice cracking slightly, “nice day, huh?”
The second the words left his mouth, he cringed internally. Nice day? Seriously, Parker? Who says that? He risked a glance at [Name] out of the corner of his eye, hoping she hadn’t noticed the sheer awkwardness radiating off him. But the flush rising to his cheeks wasn’t helping. He could feel it, spreading like wildfire, and it only made him feel even more ridiculous.
He tried to focus on something else—anything else—but his mind stubbornly circled back to that night. The way she’d made him feel, the way he hadn’t been able to stop thinking about her since. It was overwhelming in a way he hadn’t expected, and definitely hadn’t prepared for. He took a deep breath, determined to calm down and act normal. Act cool, Peter. Just be cool.
And then, in true Peter Parker style, he tripped over his own feet.
“Whoa—” he stumbled, flailing for a split second before catching himself. His heart jumped into his throat, and his eyes darted toward {name}, who had stopped in her tracks, looking at him with a mix of concern and mild amusement.
“Hey, you okay?” she asked, her brow furrowing slightly as she tilted her head.
Peter nodded a little too quickly, brushing invisible dust off his hoodie like that would erase the embarrassment. “Yeah! Yep, totally fine,” he said, his words tumbling out too fast. “Just, uh, testing the pavement. You know, making sure it’s, uh, level. For, like... walking. Yeah.”
[Name] raised an eyebrow, the corner of her lips quirking upward as she tried to keep her composure. But the sheer absurdity of his explanation, combined with the look of panic on his face, broke her. A laugh bubbled out of her—loud, genuine, and completely unrestrained. She doubled over slightly, clutching her side as she tried to catch her breath.
Peter froze, his train of thought screeching to a halt. He didn’t know whether to be embarrassed or amazed—or maybe both. He watched her laugh, the way her eyes lit up and her shoulders shook, like the sound itself carried more warmth than anything he’d felt all day. For a moment, he forgot how to breathe, caught somewhere between awe and disbelief. How does someone laugh like that?
As her laughter finally subsided, she straightened up, wiping an imaginary tear from the corner of her eye. “Wow,” she said, still grinning as she looked at him. “You’re, uh... really good at your job, Mr. Sidewalk Tester. Top-tier work.”
Peter’s face burned hotter, but he couldn’t bring himself to mind. “Uh, thanks,” he managed, his voice a little quieter now. “I, uh... try my best.”
{name} chuckled again, softer this time, and started walking. Peter hesitated for half a beat before falling into step beside her, the ghost of her laugh still echoing in his ears.
______________________________________________________
The Avengers Tower came into view, its sleek lines and unmistakable logo cutting through the city skyline. Peter slowed his steps slightly, his chest tightening as they neared the entrance. It wasn’t the sight of the tower that left him conflicted—it was the thought of parting ways with [Name]. He’d just found her again. How could this be it?
As they reached the revolving doors, Peter hesitated, glancing at her. His brain scrambled for something to say, some excuse to keep her from disappearing into the crowd outside. “So, uh, I guess... this is where we part ways?” he said, his tone faltering slightly.
[Name] tilted her head, her expression softening as she noticed the flicker of uncertainty in his eyes. “Yeah, I guess so,” she said, though there was a touch of reluctance in her voice. “Thanks for, you know, helping me not get lost again.”
Peter let out a nervous laugh, scratching the back of his neck. “Yeah, no problem. I’m, uh, always happy to assist with... navigation. It’s kind of my thing.”
Before either of them could say anything more, the sliding glass doors parted with a soft whoosh, and a familiar voice echoed from inside the lobby.
“Underoos!”
Peter stiffened instantly, his face flushing as he turned toward the source of the voice. There, standing casually in the center of the lobby, was none other than Tony Stark—sunglasses perched on his nose, a smirk tugging at his lips as he gestured impatiently.
“Come on, kid, clock’s ticking. Some of us have empires to run,” Tony said, folding his arms as he leaned slightly to one side. His gaze shifted briefly to [name], one eyebrow raising as if to silently assess the situation before flicking back to Peter. “You planning on standing there all day, or are you actually gonna show up for this meeting?”
{name} froze beside Peter, her eyes wide as she took in the scene. Her hand flew to her mouth, barely suppressing a gasp. “Oh my god. Is that—”
“Tony Stark? Yeah,” Peter mumbled, his voice suddenly quieter as he looked down at his shoes. “It’s, uh, kind of a long story.”
[Name] stared at him, her expression a mix of disbelief and awe. “You know Tony Stark?”
Peter winced slightly, rubbing the back of his neck again. “I mean... yeah. He’s, uh, my... mentor. Kind of.”
Tony’s smirk widened as he stepped forward, clearly catching the tail end of the conversation. “Mentor? That’s generous, kid. More like babysitter. And speaking of babysitting, you’re late. Let’s move it.”
Peter hesitated, glancing at [Name] one last time, the tug-of-war in his chest making it hard to find the right words. “Uh, I—guess I should... go,” he said reluctantly, his voice barely above a whisper.
[Name] nodded slowly, still looking at him like she was trying to piece together a puzzle. “Yeah... sure,” she said, a faint smile tugging at her lips. “Good luck with, uh, whatever it is you do.”
As Peter turned to follow Tony toward the elevator, his thoughts raced. This couldn’t be the end—not like this. He’d just found her again, after all the wondering and what felt like an impossible coincidence. How could he let her slip away so easily? His feet dragged slightly, his mind already churning for a reason—any reason—to talk to her again. But Tony was jabbing at the elevator buttons impatiently, his voice cutting through Peter's spiralling thoughts.
“Come on, kid,” Tony drawled, tapping his watch for emphasis. “This century would be great. Some of us actually have things to do.”
Peter flinched slightly at Tony’s words, though his gaze drifted back toward the lobby. There she was, standing at the counter, exchanging a polite smile with the receptionist as she handed over the package. Her posture eased as she took a small step back, clearly relieved to be done with the errand. Now heading toward the doors. His stomach flipped. This can’t be it, he thought, panic bubbling in his chest. He’d spent a week wondering if he’d ever see her again, and now she was just going to walk out of his life for good?
Before he could think twice, Peter blurted out, “Wait!” His feet moved on their own, dashing out of the elevator area and toward the lobby. “[Name]!”
[Name] paused at the sound of her name, turning around just as Peter nearly skidded to a stop in front of her. He was out of breath, his curls slightly dishevelled from the rush, and his face was an even deeper shade of red than before.
“I, uh, I just...” He faltered, one hand shooting up to ruffle his hair nervously while the other hovered at his side, unsure of what to do. “I mean, I know we just met, and you’re probably busy, and this is totally random, but I was wondering if—uh, I mean, maybe—you know, if I could, uh... get your number?”
[Name] blinked, her brows raising slightly as she stared at him in surprise. Peter fumbled on, his words tumbling out faster.
“Not—not for anything weird!” he clarified quickly, waving his hands. “Just, you know, in case you get lost again! Or, uh, if you ever want to... talk? Or something? Totally up to you, of course. No pressure.”
He trailed off, his hand finding the back of his neck as his gaze dropped to the floor. He felt like his heart might pound right out of his chest. Why did I say that?
For a moment, there was silence—then a smile crept across {name}’s face, her eyes softening at his earnestness. “Sure,” she said, pulling out her phone. “I think I can make room in my life for the Sidewalk Tester Extraordinaire.”
Peter’s head snapped up, blinking at her in disbelief. “Wait—really?”
She laughed lightly, handing him her phone to put his number in. “Really.”
Peter fumbled with her phone, his hands shaking slightly as he typed in his number. Tony’s voice called out from the elevator area, “Parker! You’ve got about ten seconds before I leave your scrawny butt here!”
Peter handed the phone back quickly, giving [Name] a sheepish smile. “Thanks. I, uh, gotta go, but... I’ll text you. Or call. Or both. Okay, bye!”
And with that, he darted back toward the elevator, a triumphant grin creeping onto his face despite Tony’s exaggerated eye roll as the doors slid shut.
[Name] watched him go, her own smile lingering as she pocketed her phone. “Interesting day,” she murmured to herself, before stepping out into the city streets.
_____________________________________________________________
The elevator doors slid shut with a soft chime, enclosing Peter and Tony in the sleek, mirrored box as they ascended the tower. The hum of the elevator filled the silence, but Peter could feel Tony’s eyes on him. He shifted awkwardly, glancing at the floor display as if it were the most fascinating thing in the world.
“So,” Tony said after a long beat, his tone casual but laced with amusement, “you wanna tell me what that little lobby sprint was about?”
Peter’s shoulders hunched slightly as he rubbed the back of his neck. “Uh, nothing. It wasn’t—it’s not a big deal,” he mumbled, his ears turning red.
“Uh-huh,” Tony replied, clearly unconvinced. He leaned back against the elevator wall, arms folded, giving Peter a pointed look. “Kid, you were practically tripping over yourself. If I didn’t know any better, I’d say you’re smitten. Don’t worry, it happens to the best of us.”
Peter’s face flushed deeper, and he shook his head quickly. “No! I mean—well, maybe, but that’s not—it’s not like that. I was just, you know... being polite.”
Tony let out a dry laugh, shaking his head. “Polite. Sure, we’ll go with that. Polite enough to chase her down like a rom-com protagonist in the third act.”
Peter groaned softly, burying his face in his hands for a moment before peeking at Tony through his fingers. “Can we not talk about this? Please?”
Then his tone shifted, becoming more business-like. “Anyway, let’s talk about why you’re actually here. Took you so long down there, I almost thought you’d forgotten you had a meeting with me. Classic Parker.”
Peter perked up slightly, grateful for the pivot to something—anything—other than his lobby debacle. “Right. Yeah. Uh... so, what’s going on? You said it was important.”
Tony glanced at him, his expression sharpening just slightly, though a flicker of amusement still danced at the edges. “F.R.I.D.A.Y alerted me an incident that happened last week. Thought I’d get the full, unabridged Parker version."
Peter stiffened immediately, his heart leaping into his throat. “An incident?” he repeated, his voice a little higher than intended. “I—I mean, there wasn’t really, uh, anything that big… I think?” He scratched the back of his neck nervously, racking his brain for what Tony might be referring to.
But as he stood there, he couldn't shake off the flashes of memory that suddenly assaulted him - the sound of her moans, low and throaty, the way her head had thrown back in abandon, her eyes closed in ecstasy. He felt a surge of heat run through his body, and he quickly looked away, trying to compose himself. But the images lingered, and he could almost smell the scent of her skin, feel the softness of her lips. He cleared his throat, trying to push the thoughts away, but they only seemed to intensify, making his face grow hotter by the second. "I mean, what kind of incident?" he asked, trying to sound nonchalant, but his voice came out a little shaky, and he couldn't meet Tony's eye, fearing that his friend might see right through him.
Tony raised an eyebrow. “Oh, good. It’s always reassuring when the guy with superpowers is vague about incidents.” He folded his arms, giving Peter a pointed look. “Look, F.R.I.D.A.Y doesn’t flag stuff for fun. Something about, oh, I don’t know, webbing showing up in places it shouldn’t? Ringing any bells, Underoos?”
Peter’s face flushed as the realization hit him. “Oh. That,” he mumbled, suddenly very interested in the elevator buttons. “I mean, it wasn’t really a big thing... just, uh, a minor thing. Very minor. Like, almost not even a thing.”
Tony sighed, pinching the bridge of his nose. “Kid, do me a favour—don’t ever try to sell anything. You’d starve.” He glanced at the panel above the elevator door as the numbers ticked higher. “You can give me your very minor, not-a-thing report then.”
Peter shifted awkwardly, his hands shoved into his hoodie pockets as he tried to calm the sudden swarm of nerves twisting in his stomach. “Yeah. Okay. Sounds good,” he muttered, his voice just shy of confident. _____________________________________________________
The elevator doors slid open with a soft chime, revealing the sleek upper floors of the Avengers Tower. Tony stepped out first, his stride confident as always, while Peter trailed behind, feeling like he was walking into a trap he didn’t quite understand yet. His heart was already racing.
“Good afternoon, Mr. Stark. Hello, Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. greeted, her calm, precise voice filling the corridor.
“Hey, F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” Peter mumbled, shoving his hands in his hoodie pockets, his nerves eating away at him. The fact that she’d been part of his suit since Tony upgraded him was usually a comfort, but now it felt more like having a tattletale glued to his side.
“Afternoon, F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” Tony said casually, his tone light as he stepped into the corridor. "Care to tell me what happen. Parker?"
Peter’s stomach flipped. Oh no. This was it.
He turned to face Peter, his arms folding over his chest, a smirk already tugging at his lips. “Did you have a big night out you forgot to invite me to? I thought we were friends.”
Peter froze, his face heating. “Uh... I mean, I don’t... it wasn’t big, exactly,” he stammered, his words tumbling over each other. “It was just—uh—a thing. A small thing. Like, super small. Barely worth mentioning.”
Tony raised an eyebrow, his expression practically daring Peter to continue. What’s this ‘small thing’ our dear Spider-kid is trying so hard to downplay F.R.I.D.A.Y?”
“I have a report ready for you, sir,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. replied, her tone carrying the faintest hint of amusement. “However, if Peter would prefer to explain it in his own words, I’m sure it would be... enlightening.”
Peter shot a betrayed look at the ceiling. “F.R.I.D.A.Y.! I thought we were cool!”
“I am merely ensuring you have the opportunity to be honest, Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. replied smoothly.
Tony chuckled, clearly enjoying himself. “So, kid... care to enlighten me? Or do I have to review the play-by-play F.R.I.D.A.Y. so thoughtfully uploaded to the server?”
Peter groaned, covering his face with his hands. “Do I really have to say?”
Tony leaned back on his heels, his smirk growing impossibly wider. “Oh, yes you do,” he said, his tone dripping with that unmistakable Stark charm.
Peter shifted uncomfortably under Tony’s gaze, and then—like a dam bursting—words started spilling out of him in a frantic rush. “Okay, okay! So, I was out patrolling, right? You know, just doing the usual Spider-Man stuff, and then I saw this — Like, this really pretty girl, and she was kind of in danger, so I, uh, saved her.”
Tony raised an eyebrow but said nothing, his silence only adding fuel to Peter’s nervous rambling.
“And, uh, you know, she was really grateful, like... really grateful. So, she, uh...” Peter’s voice wavered, his cheeks heating up as he gestured vaguely. “She kissed me. And it was, um, really nice?"
"And it may- or may not have gone... further.."
Tony’s eyebrows shot up, his smirk instantly shifting into full-blown amusement. He leaned forward slightly, resting his elbows on his knees as if Peter had just become the most entertaining thing in the room. “Oh, Parker, you are killing me,” he said, dragging out the words with a laugh. “Further, huh? Now you’ve got my attention. Spill. What exactly is ‘further’ in Spider-kid terms? Holding hands? A second kiss? Oh wait—did she braid your web shooters?”
Peter’s face turned a violent shade of red, and he practically buried himself in his hoodie. “It’s not like that!” he squeaked, his voice cracking. “I mean, it wasn’t... it wasn’t, like, that far! Just... you know... stuff”
Tony leaned back in his chair, crossing his arms and grinning like a cat who’d just cornered a mouse. “Stuff, huh? Love the specifics. You’re really painting a picture here.”
Peter pulled his hood tighter over his head. “Why do you do this to me? I’m never going to live this down.” Groaning aloud.
"But then she tried to take my mask off, and I panicked! Because, you know, secret identity and all that! So, uh... I might’ve... webbed her wrist to the wall.”
Peter groaned, burying his face in his hands for a moment before looking back up at Tony. “And I didn’t think it was a big deal! I mean, I figured, you know, she was fine, and nobody saw, and it was totally handled. I didn’t know F.R.I.D.A.Y. was gonna rat me out!”
The words came tumbling out so fast that Peter barely had time to breathe, his curls bouncing as he gestured animatedly. By the time he finished, his face was burning, and he looked at Tony like he was waiting for the hammer to drop.
Tony chuckled, giving Peter a once-over, his smirk widening to something borderline predatory. “Relax, Parker. Webbing her to the wall? Really? Bold choice." He leaned in, a glint in his eye. "F.R.I.D.A.Y. didn't spill the beans, but I did notice you asked her to run a check on a certain someone. My curiosity was piqued, so I took a look myself. And let's just say I was very surprised, Peter."
Tony leaned back in his chair, eyebrows shooting up as he smirked. “Sounds like you had quite the dining experience, didn’t you?” His voice dripped with mock seriousness, but the mischievous glint in his eye was unmistakable.“ I didn’t watch anything. Bleach in eyes and all that,”
Peter’s face flushed a fiery red, and he buried his hands in his hoodie, his voice rising in protest. “Oh my god, can you not?!"
Tony held up his hands, though his smirk didn’t falter. “Hey, I’m just pointing out that maybe, just maybe, you’ve got some things to learn about handling these situations. Try not to dine on someone next time? That’s not a solution, kid—that’s a headline.”
Peter turned to Tony, his expression a mixture of shock and confusion. “Wait a second... You knew when you messaged me to come here? About what happened?” He gestured vaguely, still flustered. “Why did you want me to tell you if you already knew?”
Tony leaned back casually, crossing his arms and letting out a low chuckle. “Because, kid, it’s fun.” He shrugged, his smirk widening into that unmistakable Stark brand of mischief. “You have this way of tripping over your own words and digging the hole deeper. Pulling your leg a bit? It’s like a free comedy show.”
Peter groaned, running a hand down his face. “Seriously? You called me all the way here just to mess with me?”
“Messing with you is just the icing on the cake,” Tony shot back smoothly. “I mean, come on—hearing the story straight from you is way better than reading F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s report. She’s great, but she doesn’t quite capture the sheer panic in your voice.” He leaned forward, his smirk turning into a full-blown grin. “And let’s face it, Parker: you’re a terrible liar.”
Peter glared at him, his face still flushed from embarrassment. “You’re the worst, you know that?”
Tony clapped him on the shoulder, unfazed. “And yet, here you are, spilling your guts. I’m just that lovable.”
Peter shook his head, muttering under his breath as he sank into a chair. “I don’t know why I put up with this.”
Tony grinned, clearly enjoying himself. “Because deep down, you know I’m right. Now, how about we skip the dramatics and focus on what really matters—like how you’re going to make sure F.R.I.D.A.Y. doesn’t flag another ‘incident’ anytime soon.”
Peter groaned, pulling his hood tighter. “Why do you do this to me?”
“Because it’s fun,” Tony quipped, clapping Peter on the shoulder.
Peter looked up at him, his brows furrowing. “Wait, you’re not mad?”
Tony threw out an exaggerated scoff. “Nah. Not even close. But hey, you certainly showed her the real meaning of Friendly Neighbourhood Spider-Man. Very... hands-on, Parker.”
“You’re never gonna let this go, are you?”
Tony grinned, thoroughly enjoying himself. “Not a chance, Underoos. This one’s going in the Hall of Fame.”
Peter groaned again, dragging his hands down his face as if it might somehow erase the last five minutes of his life. Just as he was about to mumble another protest, his phone buzzed in his pocket.
Grateful for the distraction, he fished it out, squinting at the screen. His brows furrowed when he saw the notification: a text from an unknown number.
UNKOWN: " Hi Sidewalk Tester Extraordinaire."
The nickname was so specific, so perfectly her, that it left no doubt in his mind who had sent it.
For a moment, the embarrassment of Tony’s relentless teasing faded into the background. Maybe, just maybe, all the ribbing had been worth it. She’d texted him. That had to mean something, right?
Before he could spiral too far into his thoughts, Tony’s voice cut through the moment like a laser. “What’s got you grinning like that, Parker? Did the Queen knight you in secret, or is it something juicier?”
Peter quickly shoved the phone back into his pocket, trying and failing to mask his reaction. “It’s nothing. Just—uh—spam. Yeah, totally spam. You know how weird spam messages get.”
Tony tilted his head, his smirk widening as he narrowed his eyes at Peter. “Spam, huh? So, let me guess—this ‘spam’ wouldn’t happen to be from the girl in the lobby earlier, would it?”
Peter froze, his jaw dropping. “What? How do you—wait, girl in the lobby? What are you talking about?”
Tony rolled his eyes, crossing his arms as he leaned casually against the nearest desk. “Oh, come on, Parker. Genius, remember? I put two and two together the second you started stumbling over your words earlier. You’re bad at lying, kid. Really bad.”
Peter groaned, dragging a hand down his face as his cheeks burned. “Okay, fine! Yes, it’s her. Happy now?”
Tony grinned, clearly enjoying himself. “Absolutely. You make this way too easy, you know that?”
Peter slumped into a chair, muttering under his breath. But despite his protests, he couldn’t wipe the small, stupid smile off his face.
---------------------------------------------------------------------
I hope its alright? XD got a bit stuck at the end ahaha.
Tried to make it a little funny, I hope it flowed?
Tumblr media Tumblr media
20 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 3 months ago
Text
~ A Little Taste of Heaven ~ (Peter Parker x Fem!Reader) (2/10)
Tumblr media Tumblr media Tumblr media Tumblr media
Warnings: Action-packed violence/Injury and physical harm/Tense hostage situation/Guilt and emotional turmoil/Scenes of aggression/Superhuman conflict/Mentions of fear and panic /Destruction and property damage /Themes of redemption Summary " In the dead of night, Spider-Man faces a relentless gauntlet—hostages in peril, and the weight of a personal mistake he can’t ignore. When the final web is spun and the city begins to quiet, Peter Parker races back to East Harlem to make amends… but what he finds waiting there leaves him more shaken than any battle he's fought that night." Pt1 ________________________________________________ 🎵🎶Leave Me Lonely • Ariana Grande, Macy Gray 🎶🎵 ________________________________________________
The taste of her was still on his lips—sweet and electric, like a spark he couldn’t shake. The memory lingered, tangled up with the thrill of her touch. And then, of course, he’d gone and ruined it. He’d instinctively webbed her to the wall without an apology, and then bolted into the night.
The wind whipped past Peter’s mask as he swung between the sparkling skyscrapers of New York City, the glow of headlights and billboards painting streaks of light beneath him. Each pull of his web shot carried him farther from [Name], and the gnawing guilt settled deeper in his chest.
“Okay, so leaving her webbing the wall—not my best move,” Peter muttered under his breath. “She’s gonna kill me. If the bad guys don’t kill me first, she’s definitely gonna kill me,” Peter muttered, flipping into a sharp arc to avoid a billboard. The guilt was gnawing at him, but hey—saving people came first. Every time.
“Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice cut in, sharp and urgent. “Update. Artisan and Carat—there are now ten armed suspects and five hostages. 6 are carrying military-grade weapons.”
“Oh, c’mon! Seriously? Ten?” Peter’s voice cracked as he nearly missed his next web anchor, scrambling to regain his momentum. “That’s, like...that’s a lot of bad guys! What, is this some kind of discount villain convention?”
He pushed himself harder, the wind slicing through the fabric of his suit as the lights of Midtown blurred around him. All he could think about—aside from the hostages, the suspects, and not smashing into a building—was her. Still webbed up, still waiting, and probably so mad at him. He had to finish this fast. Lives were on the line, and, okay, he really didn’t want her to hate him forever.
“Hang on, Midtown,” Peter mumbled, his heart pounding as he swung toward the chaos. “Spider-Man’s got this. I hope.”
“Peter, you’re five seconds out,” F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice chimed in, crisp and urgent. “Patching into the store’s CCTV feeds now.”
Peter adjusted his trajectory with a quick flick of his wrist, landing gracefully on a streetlamp just outside the Artisan and Carat storefront. The glowing jewellery displays inside sparkled mockingly against the chaos unfolding within. His mask’s lenses narrowed instinctively as a cascade of live video feeds appeared in his HUD, courtesy of F.R.I.D.A.Y.
“Okay, what am I looking at?” Peter muttered, leaning forward slightly as his eyes darted across the feeds.
“Ten armed suspects. Hostages located in the central display area, surrounded on all sides,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. reported. A map of the store layout overlaid itself in his vision, with glowing red markers indicating each suspect’s position. “Two stationed near the entrance, three by the security office, one in the hallway behind the main floor, and the rest patrolling the perimeter. Routes are limited—main entry is compromised.”
“Of course it is,” Peter sighed, crouching lower on the streetlamp. “Because why would this ever be easy?”
His fingers flexed, the web shooters primed as he scanned the options F.R.I.D.A.Y. provided. Focus, Parker, he told himself. The lives of five hostages depended on him not screwing this up.
“Recommend silent entry through the ventilation system,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. added, her tone professional and measured. “Minimal risk of detection. I’ll guide you through.”
Peter exhaled, shaking out his hands. “Alright, Spidey, you’ve got this. Silent, sneaky, save the day, and then—then—I can get back to, uh…dealing with my terrible decision-making skills.”
He fired a webline upward, launching himself toward the rooftop. “Let’s do this.”
________________________________________________________
Peter shuffled forward slowly, the metallic groan of the ventilation shaft echoing beneath him. He cringed at every creak, his palms sticking lightly to the smooth steel as he crawled.
“Okay, Peter, easy does it,” he whispered under his breath. “No sudden moves, no loud noises. Just your friendly neighborhood Spider-Man sneaking through a vent like a total pro. Totally not claustrophobic or anything. Nope. Not at all.”
“Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice interrupted, hushed but urgent in his ear. “The hostages are being moved. They’re heading toward the vault at the back of the store.”
Peter’s stomach tightened. He shifted forward slightly, his mask’s lenses narrowing as a live feed appeared in his HUD. The robbers were ushering the terrified hostages through the showroom, their footsteps heavy against the marble floor. The muffled sound of voices reached Peter’s ears, but the words were foreign—sharp and guttural.
“Wait, are they speaking…Russian?” Peter murmured, tilting his head as if it would help him hear better.
“Affirmative,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. replied. “Translating now.”
The audio feed filtered into his mask, the sharp tones softening into English. “—move faster. The police will be here soon. You want to get caught? No? Then stop wasting time.”
“Well, that’s comforting,” Peter muttered, inching forward as he tried to position himself directly above the hostages. He pressed his palm lightly against the vent grate, peering down at the scene below. The armed suspects looked even more intimidating up close, their movements sharp and coordinated.
“Update two armed suspects are stationed near the hostages,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. informed him. “Three others are guarding the hallway. One is overseeing the vault preparations. The remaining four are patrolling the store perimeter.”
Peter exhaled slowly, his fingers twitching against the vent. No pressure, Parker. Just ten bad guys, military-grade weapons, five scared hostages, and you stuck in a tin can. His voice softened to a whisper, almost like a mantra. “You’ve got this, Spidey. You’ve got this.”
The Russian voices continued below as F.R.I.D.A.Y. translated. “The diamonds go first. Everything else can wait.” Another robber barked out a quick command. “Keep the hostages close. No hero moves."
Peter rolled his eyes. “Yeah, about that ‘no hero moves’ part...you’re not gonna love what happens next.”
He shifted his weight on the vent grate, the metal letting out a soft groan. The robber patrolling the floor below had no clue what was coming. Peter’s mask lenses narrowed as he tightened his grip, a subtle grin pulling at his mouth.
“Time to make this quick,” he murmured. With a flick of his wrist, a thin webline shot downward, catching silently on the vent. In one fluid motion, Peter dropped through, swinging feet-first into the unsuspecting thug. The impact was sharp and precise, knocking the man unconscious before he could even shout.
Peter landed lightly, crouching over the limp figure. “Nighty-night,” he whispered, Acting quickly, he fired several weblines, cocooning the robber and sticking him securely to the ceiling, well out of sight from anyone else. Peter’s gaze flicked upward, checking his handiwork. “There. Problem solved.”
The faint creak of footsteps echoed from the far side of the display room. Peter darted behind a glass case stacked with glittering necklaces, flattening himself against the marble floor as F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice chimed in his ear.
“Peter, two suspects from the perimeter patrol have entered the display area. Currently at your twelve and three o’clock. Both are armed.”
Peter peeked out cautiously, his mask lenses adjusting their focus. One of the men was pacing near the main entrance, glancing nervously at his surroundings. The other hovered by a corner display, his rifle slung low but ready.
“Great,” Peter whispered to himself. “Double the fun.” He ducked back down, his mind racing through options. Silent takedowns? A distraction? A burst of webbing? Whatever he did, it had to be fast, clean, and—most importantly—quiet. The hostages didn’t have time for mistakes.
The muffled wail of distant sirens began to filter in, growing louder with every second. Peter ducked lower behind the display case.
Peter peeked out cautiously. The two robbers in the room were visibly on edge now, their movements jittery as they glanced toward the entrance. One muttered something sharp in Russian, and F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s calm translation followed immediately.
“Be ready. Watch the entrance.”
“Perfect,” Peter muttered sarcastically. “Nothing like a little siren-induced panic to spice things up.”
The two men started moving closer to each other, their nervous glances sweeping the showroom. Peter’s lenses narrowed as he assessed the situation. If they stuck together, it’d be harder to pick them off quietly. He had to act now.
“Alright, Spidey,” he whispered to himself, his fingers flexing against the smooth marble floor. “Quick, clean, no screw-ups.”
In a blur of motion, Peter popped out from behind the case, firing a webline directly at the first robber’s gun. The weapon jerked from the man’s hands, clattering across the floor. Before the robber could react, Peter shot another web, pinning him securely to the large window display. The thug struggled briefly, his muffled curses barely audible over the sirens outside.
“Window shopping’s over, pal” Peter quipped, glancing at his handiwork.
The second robber shouted in alarm, his semi automatic rifle snapping up as he took aim. Peter’s spider-sense flared—a sharp, instinctive jolt that sent adrenaline coursing through his veins. Before the shot could fire, Peter launched into a series of backflips, the bullets zipping harmlessly past him and embedding into a nearby jewelry case.
“Whoa! Hey, watch it!” Peter called out mid-flip, landing nimbly on the far side of the room. “Do you know how expensive this place is? You’re gonna get a huge bill for damages.”
The robber’s face twisted in frustration as he scrambled to reload. Giving up, his hand darted to his belt, pulling out a fixed-blade knife that gleamed under the store’s overhead lights. Peter’s lenses narrowed as the man squared up, his movements sharp and deliberate.
“Oh, great. A knife. Because that’s just what this party needed,” Peter muttered, easing into a defensive stance. “Do you guys, like, have a group discount at Dangerous Stuff Emporium or something?”
Before the robber could lunge, F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s voice cut in, urgent and calm all at once. “The fourth patrolling suspect has heard the gunshots and notified the rest of the group. Two of the suspects guarding the hostages are now heading to assist the one at the vault. Peter, the hostages are on the move. Assessing their condition now… Three of them are injured—nonfatal wounds—but they’re visibly frightened."
Peter’s stomach twisted as her words hit him, the weight of the situation pressing harder than the knife-wielding thug in front of him. From the corner of the room, faint screams carried through the store, the sound rattling in his ears. His fists clenched instinctively, the need to act pulling at him like a physical force.
But first—he had to deal with the guy in front of him.
The robber lunged suddenly, the blade slicing toward Peter in a flash of silver. His spider-sense flared, and Peter dodged nimbly to the side, his movements fluid and instinctive.
“Whoa! Careful there, buddy!” Peter quipped, flipping backward as the man lunged again. “This is a jewellery store, not a sushi bar!”
“Look, buddy,” Peter quipped, dodging another strike with a nimble twist, “I’m all for bonding activities, but this? Not my idea of a good time!”
The thug growled in frustration, adjusting his grip on the knife as he closed in, slashing with deliberate, calculated strikes. Peter stayed light on his feet, weaving and ducking, his Spidey-sense keeping him just out of reach. Each swipe of the blade sent Peter twisting and pivoting like a dancer, the air between him and the blade narrowing with every move.
“Look, I get it—you’re mad,” Peter quipped, ducking low to avoid another slash. “But swinging a knife around? That’s just bad conflict resolution.”
The faintest hum from his Spidey-sense jolted Peter into action as the second thug—the one who had snuck up behind him—came barreling forward. This one was stockier, with knuckle dusters glinting ominously on his gloves, the steel edges jagged and brutal. He muttered something harsh in Russian, his tone laced with malice. F.R.I.D.A.Y.’s calm translation filtered through Peter’s HUD.
“Hold him down. Make it quick.”
“Oh, fantastic. Teamwork,” Peter muttered, twisting just in time to avoid the fist aimed straight for his head. The punch swung wide, narrowly missing him, but the force alone was enough to send a gust of air past his mask. That would’ve hurt. A lot.
Before Peter could recover, the first thug lunged again, the knife slashing upward in a clean arc. Peter bent backward sharply, the blade skimming so close he swore he felt the fabric of his suit ripple. “Whoa! Okay, okay, I get it—you really want me out of the picture. Message received!”
The two thugs spoke hurriedly in Russian, their voices low and urgent. F.R.I.D.A.Y. translated in real-time. “Stay close. Don’t let him move. We end this now.”
Peter’s mind raced as he dodged the knife and ducked under another wild swing from the knuckle dusters. He was sandwiched between them now, the threats on either side forcing him into tighter, faster movements. His Spidey-sense flared again, sharp and insistent, guiding him through the chaos.
The knife-wielder feinted left before lunging to the right, aiming for Peter’s ribs. At the same moment, the thug with the knuckle dusters swung downward in a brutal arc, aiming for Peter’s head. Peter twisted sideways, threading the narrow gap between them with a burst of adrenaline-fueled agility.
“Guys, come on,” Peter said, landing in a crouch just out of their reach. “You’re making this way harder than it has to be. I mean, I get it—you’re bad guys, it’s your whole thing—but could we maybe…not?”
The knuckle duster thug growled and lunged again, his heavy footsteps thundering against the floor as he bore down on Peter like a freight train. Peter leapt upward, twisting in mid-air as the punch sailed past beneath him. He fired a quick webline at the man’s wrist, yanking his arm backward and throwing him off balance.
The knife-wielder seized the moment, charging forward, blade gleaming under the fluorescent lights. Peter landed lightly, his feet skidding slightly across the marble as he spun to face him. His Spidey-sense whispered another warning, and Peter ducked low, the blade narrowly missing his shoulder.
Peter crouched low, his breaths coming fast and shallow as he dodged another wild swing from the knife-wielding thug. The air was thick with tension, the sharp tang of adrenaline buzzing in his veins. He shifted his weight, readying himself for the next move, when something unexpected hit him—a faint, lingering scent clinging to the inside of his mask.
It was her. The subtle, familiar trace of her, or maybe just the warmth of her skin. It was enough to pull him out of the moment for a fraction of a second, his mind flashing back to the alley, to the way she’d looked at him before he’d bolted.
That sliver of distraction was all it took.
The knuckle duster thug seized the opening, lunging forward with a brutal swing. Peter’s Spidey-sense flared too late, and the punch connected hard with his ribs. Pain exploded through his side, sharp and immediate, as the force sent him stumbling back. He gasped, clutching his ribs instinctively. That’s gonna leave a mark.
“Okay, ow,” Peter groaned, his voice tight as he straightened up, forcing himself to focus. The scent still lingered, teasing at the edges of his thoughts, but now it served as a reminder—a reason to push through. He had to finish this. Fast. Lives were on the line, and he needed to get back to her.
“Alright, big guy,” Peter muttered, his voice laced with determination as he squared up again. “You got one good hit. Don’t get used to it.”
Peter gritted his teeth, the sharp pain in his ribs flaring with every movement. There was no room for jokes now, no time for distractions. He had to end this—fast.
The knife-wielding thug lunged again, his blade slicing through the air in a deadly arc. Peter sidestepped, his movements sharp and precise despite the ache in his side. He caught the man’s wrist mid-swing, twisting it sharply. The knife clattered to the floor, and Peter followed up with a swift elbow to the thug’s jaw. The man crumpled to the ground, unconscious before he hit the floor.
Peter barely had time to catch his breath before the knuckle duster thug charged at him, fists raised and ready. Each step the man took sent a dull thud reverberating through the showroom. Peter’s ribs screamed in protest as he dodged the first swing, the jagged steel of the knuckle dusters grazing the air where his head had been a second earlier.
The thug swung again, this time aiming low. Peter leapt backward, firing a webline at the doorframe behind him. He anchored another line to the opposite side, creating a taut web across the entrance. The thug didn’t seem to notice, his focus locked on Peter as he lunged forward.
Peter planted his feet firmly, the pain in his ribs momentarily forgotten as he launched himself forward with all the force he could muster. His feet connected squarely with the thug’s chest, the impact sending the man hurtling backward. The thug crashed through the shop’s front doors, the glass shattering around him as he slammed into a fire hydrant outside. He was out cold.
The sudden cacophony of breaking glass set off the store’s alarms, their shrill wail cutting through the night. Peter landed lightly on his feet, his chest heaving as he took a moment to steady himself. The pain in his ribs was sharp and unrelenting, but he pushed it aside. There was no time to dwell on it—not with the hostages still in danger.
_____________________________________________________
The back hall was dimly lit, the fluorescent bulbs flickering sporadically, casting long, jagged shadows across the narrow space. Peter’s breathing was laboured, every sharp inhale sending a jolt of pain through his bruised ribs. The floor was scattered with debris—splintered wood from a broken door and shards of glass from a shattered overhead light.
The first one had gone down hard, his rifle now a harmless pile of twisted metal in the corner. Peter had disarmed him with a quick web yank, then sent him sprawling into the wall with a spinning kick that left a dent in the plaster. The man slumped unconscious against the base of the stairs, his weapon webbed securely out of reach.
The second had been more persistent, firing bursts of suppressive shots as Peter darted between the narrow columns that lined the hallway. His Spidey-sense had been in overdrive, guiding him through the chaos as bullets ricocheted off the walls. With a perfectly timed leap, Peter had dropped down onto the guy from above, using his momentum to knock the weapon loose before pinning him to the floor with webbing.
Peter barely had a chance to catch his breath when a low creak echoed from the stairwell. His head snapped around just in time to see the third robber emerge from below, shotgun in hand and a determined glint in his eye. This guy was bigger, calmer—more methodical than the others. As he stepped fully into the hallway, the weight of the shotgun made Peter’s ribs ache just looking at it.
The first blast came without warning, tearing through the air where Peter had just been standing. His Spidey-sense flared, guiding him as he flipped backward, the blast ripping chunks out of the wall behind him. This wasn’t a fight Peter could rush—one wrong move and that shotgun could easily end the night early.
The man stepped closer, each footfall echoing ominously as he chambered another round. Peter swung low, firing web after web to tangle his legs, but the guy shook them off with surprising strength. Another blast roared down the hallway, the force sending Peter diving behind a toppled cabinet for cover.
Peter’s mind raced as he tried to find an opening. Swinging upward, he used the flickering light to his advantage, landing silently on the ceiling above the robber. With a sudden web yank, the shotgun was ripped from the man’s hands, clattering down the stairs behind him. Before the guy could react, Peter dropped down, delivering a sharp kick that sent him tumbling back into the stairwell.
The back hall was dimly lit, the fluorescent bulbs flickering sporadically, casting long, jagged shadows across the narrow space. Peter’s breathing was labored, every sharp inhale sending a jolt of pain through his bruised ribs. The floor was scattered with debris—splintered wood from a broken door and shards of glass from a shattered overhead light.
The first robber had gone down hard, his rifle now a harmless pile of twisted metal in the corner. Peter had disarmed him with a quick web yank, then sent him sprawling into the wall with a spinning kick that left a dent in the plaster. The man slumped unconscious against the base of the stairs, his weapon webbed securely out of reach.
The second had been more persistent, firing bursts of suppressive shots as Peter darted between the narrow columns that lined the hallway. His Spidey-sense had been in overdrive, guiding him through the chaos as bullets ricocheted off the walls. With a perfectly timed leap, Peter had dropped down onto the guy from above, using his momentum to knock the weapon loose before pinning him to the floor with webbing.
Peter barely had a chance to catch his breath when a low creak echoed from the stairwell. His head snapped around just in time to see the third robber emerge from below, shotgun in hand and a determined glint in his eye. This guy was bigger, calmer—more methodical than the others. As he stepped fully into the hallway, the weight of the shotgun made Peter’s ribs ache just looking at it.
The first blast came without warning, tearing through the air where Peter had just been standing. His Spidey-sense flared, guiding him as he flipped backward, the blast ripping chunks out of the wall behind him. This wasn’t a fight Peter could rush—one wrong move and that shotgun could easily end the night early.
The man stepped closer, each footfall echoing ominously as he chambered another round. Peter swung low, firing web after web to tangle his legs, but the guy shook them off with surprising strength. Another blast roared down the hallway, the force sending Peter diving behind a toppled cabinet for cover.
Peter’s mind raced as he tried to find an opening. Swinging upward, he used the flickering light to his advantage, landing silently on the ceiling above the robber. With a sudden web yank, the shotgun was ripped from the man’s hands, clattering down the stairs behind him. Before the guy could react, Peter dropped down, delivering a sharp kick that sent him tumbling back into the stairwell.
Descending down led Peter straight to the vault room. The NYPD wouldn’t have been alerted until the alarms went off—he knew it was only a matter of time before reinforcements arrived. But time was a luxury the hostages didn’t have.
He edged closer to the door, his ribs screaming with every step, each breath a struggle. Through the faint gap in the doorframe, he caught sight of the situation inside. Two of the robbers stood in the center of the room, their weapons trained on the hostages huddled together against the far wall. There were five of them—three women and two men—shaking visibly under the weight of fear. Three were injured but conscious, clutching their wounds as they leaned against the others for support.
A third man was at the vault, crouched low as he worked furiously at the keypad. The store’s manager had been pulled from the hostages, standing stiffly beside the vault-cracker, their face pale with fear as they muttered sharp instructions in Russian. Peter’s lenses narrowed as the translation filtered through F.R.I.D.A.Y.
"It’s Spider-Man. He’s here. The police are coming, we’re running out of time. Stop shaking—focus on the lock."
Peter clenched his fists, his focus sharpening. The two gunmen in the center of the room were jittery, their movements jumpy and erratic, their fingers twitching near the triggers. Every creak of the floorboards or faint wail of the alarm outside made them flinch, and with each flinch, their aggression toward the hostages escalated. One of them barked out something harsh in Russian, his voice rising with irritation.
"Stop crying," F.R.I.D.A.Y. translated flatly. "Keep them quiet, or I’ll make them quiet."
Peter’s heart twisted as one of the women broke into soft, muffled sobs, her hands trembling as she clutched her knees. The tension in the room climbed another notch when she stammered out a desperate plea, her voice cracking under the weight of her fear.
“Please... I have a child at home. Please don’t hurt me.”
Her words hit like a gut punch. Even from the door, Peter could see the robbers stiffen, their jittery movements becoming even more erratic as they barked at her to stay quiet. The woman clamped a hand over her mouth, the other hostages pulling her closer as she shook uncontrollably.
Peter’s jaw clenched. Every instinct in his body screamed at him to move, to act, but he forced himself to stay still for another moment, taking in every detail of the room. The two gunmen with the hostages were dangerously on edge, their fingers too close to the triggers for comfort. The vault-cracker was focused but tense, muttering sharp commands to the manager while the hostages whimpered quietly in the corner.
He had to act—and fast. One wrong move could tip the balance, but every second wasted was another second the hostages stayed in danger. Peter tightened his grip on the doorframe. There was no room for hesitation now.
He burst through the door in a blur of red and blue. “Hey, guys!” Peter called out, his voice sharp but tinged with that familiar nervous energy. “I think it’s time we wrap this up, don’t you?”
The room erupted into chaos. The hostages screamed, scrambling to shield themselves as the robbers turned their attention to Peter. But it wasn’t the two gunmen who moved first—it was the man at the vault.
Peter’s eyes widened as the boss straightened up, his imposing frame casting a long shadow across the room. Without a word, the man turned and struck the store manager with a backhanded blow so powerful it sent them flying into a desk near the hostages. The crash was deafening, the desk splintering under the impact. The hostages screamed louder, their panic spilling over as they huddled closer together.
“Stay back!” one of the men shouted, his voice cracking as he tried to shield the injured hostages. “Please, don’t hurt us!”
Peter’s heart pounded as he darted forward, his web shooters primed, the boss’s cold, calculating gaze fixed on Peter, a smirk tugging at the corner of his mouth as if he relished the challenge. He turned his head slightly, barking out a sharp command in Russian, his voice like gravel as it echoed through the vault room.
"Take out the hostages," F.R.I.D.A.Y. translated in Peter’s ear, her tone flat and urgent. "I’ll deal with the pest."
Peter’s stomach dropped as the two gunmen hesitated for a split second before pivoting toward the huddled hostages. Their jittery nerves turned into something far more dangerous as they levelled their weapons at the terrified group.
“No, no, no, no!” Peter blurted, his lenses widening as he fired a webline at the nearest gunman. The web connected, yanking the man’s rifle upward just as he pulled the trigger. The shot fired harmlessly into the ceiling, sending chunks of plaster raining down, but the other gunman was already aiming at the hostages.
Peter moved fast, swinging across the room to cut off the second gunman. His Spidey-sense screamed as he dodged the rifle’s barrel by inches, firing a burst of webbing to stick the man’s gun to the far wall. The hostages screamed and ducked lower, one of the women sobbing uncontrollably as chaos erupted around them.
“Stay down!” Peter yelled, glancing back at the group. “I’ve got this, I promise! Just stay as low as you can!”
Before Peter could fully turn his attention back to the fight, the boss charged. It was like being hit by a truck—Peter barely had time to register the movement before he was slammed into the wall, the breath knocked out of him. His ribs protested violently, the earlier bruising flaring into sharp, searing pain.
The boss stepped back, his expression cool and composed as he cracked his knuckles. “You think you’re clever, Spider-Man,” he said, his thick accent wrapping around every word. “But you are nothing. Just a bug to crush.”
Peter coughed, struggling to catch his breath as he pushed himself off the wall. His mind raced, the realization settling in that this wasn’t just brute strength—this guy had power, dangerous power.
“Well,” Peter groaned, wiping at his mask as he steadied himself, “I guess I’ll just have to be extra annoying, huh?”
The boss didn’t respond, instead pivoting back toward the vault. He raised his fist and punched the metal door, the force of the blow reverberating through the room. Peter watched in alarm as cracks began to spiderweb around the outline of the vault door, the impossible strength on full display.
“Oh, come on,” Peter muttered, his voice shaky with disbelief.
The boss turned back to him, a dark smile spreading across his face as he stepped forward. Peter braced himself, every muscle coiled, ready to defend the hostages and face whatever came next.
Peter’s lenses narrowed as he quickly assessed the room. The two disarmed robbers were still dangerous—desperation had set in, and that made them unpredictable. Meanwhile, the boss was closing in, his footsteps heavy and deliberate as he advanced toward Peter, a dark grin spreading across his face.
"Alright, guys, let’s do this the hard way," Peter muttered, flipping backward to create some distance between himself, the robbers, and the hostages. His mind raced as he planned his next moves, his Spidey-sense tingling faintly as it stayed alert to every threat in the room.
One of the unarmed robbers lunged first, fists raised, trying to tackle Peter with brute force. Peter twisted sharply, sidestepping the charge and firing a webline at the man’s leg. The robber stumbled mid-stride, his momentum sending him tumbling to the floor as Peter pulled the web tight.
“Stay down, please,” Peter quipped, already turning his attention to the second robber. But before he could act, his Spidey-sense flared. He turned his head sharply to see the boss taking a threatening step toward the hostages, his towering frame casting a dark shadow over the trembling group.
“Oh no, you don’t!” Peter shouted, firing a quick webline at the boss’s arm. The web snapped taut, but the man tore through it effortlessly, his eyes narrowing as his attention shifted back to Peter.
“Hostages are off-limits,” Peter growled, his tone uncharacteristically serious. “You’ve got a problem? Deal with me.”
The distraction gave the second robber a chance to rush Peter, throwing a wide, clumsy punch. Peter ducked low, firing a burst of webbing to stick the man’s arm to his side. In one smooth movement, he spun and delivered a calculated kick to the robber’s chest, sending him crashing into the far wall.
The first robber, still tangled in Peter’s webbing, was scrambling to get back on his feet. Peter fired twin webs at the ceiling and used them to launch himself upward, flipping over the man’s head. With precise timing, he shot another web, catching the robber mid-motion and suspending him upside-down from the ceiling in a tight cocoon.
The room fell silent for a moment, save for the faint hum of alarms and the hostages’ frightened murmurs. Peter glanced over at them, relieved to see they were still unharmed, though visibly shaken.
But his relief was cut short by the boss’s low, threatening growl. The man slammed his fist into the floor, the impact leaving deep cracks in the concrete. Peter landed lightly, already bracing himself as the boss stepped forward, his focus now entirely on Peter.
“Alright, big guy,” Peter said quietly, his voice edged with determination. “Guess it’s just you and me now.”
The boss cracked his knuckles, the sound echoing ominously in the vault room. His cold, calculating eyes locked onto Peter, and for a moment, the air felt heavier, charged with the promise of violence. Peter shifted his stance, his muscles coiled and ready, his Spidey-sense humming faintly in the back of his mind.
“You’ve got guts, Spider-Man,” the boss said, his thick accent wrapping around the words like a threat. “But guts won’t save you.”
“Yeah, well,” Peter shot back, his voice steady despite the tension, “I’ve got more than guts. I’ve got... uh, webs. And cardio. Lots of cardio.”
The boss didn’t wait for another quip. He lunged forward with startling speed, his massive fist swinging in a wide arc. Peter ducked just in time, the force of the punch whistling past his head and slamming into the wall behind him. The impact left a crater in the concrete, dust and debris raining down around them.
“Okay, noted,” Peter muttered, flipping backward to create some distance. “You hit like a wrecking ball. Good to know.”
The boss didn’t let up, charging at Peter with relentless aggression. Peter leapt to the side, firing a webline at the man’s shoulder to try and slow him down. But the boss tore through the webbing with ease, his strength almost unreal. He swung again, and this time, his fist connected with Peter’s side, sending him flying into the wall.
Peter hit the concrete hard, the impact knocking the wind out of him. He gasped, his vision swimming for a moment as he struggled to regain his footing. The boss advanced, his heavy footsteps echoing like a countdown.
“Stay down,” the boss growled, his voice low and menacing. “You’re out of your league, kid.”
Peter shook his head, forcing himself to stand. “Yeah, see, that’s the thing about me,” he said, his voice strained but defiant. “I don’t know when to quit.”
The boss lunged again, but this time, Peter was ready. He ducked low, sliding between the man’s legs and firing a webline at his back. Using the momentum, Peter swung upward, planting both feet into the boss’s shoulders and sending him stumbling forward.
The boss roared in frustration, spinning around to face Peter. He grabbed a nearby desk and hurled it across the room like it weighed nothing. Peter dodged, flipping over the flying furniture and landing lightly on the other side.
“Okay, seriously,” Peter said, firing another webline to stick the boss’s arm to the wall. “Do you even lift, bro? Because this is getting ridiculous.”
The boss ripped his arm free, but Peter was already moving. He darted around the room, firing webs to slow the man down, using his agility to stay one step ahead. The boss swung wildly, each punch powerful enough to shatter concrete, but Peter’s Spidey-sense kept him just out of reach.
Finally, Peter saw his opening. He fired twin weblines at the ceiling and launched himself forward, feet-first. The force of the kick slammed into the boss’s chest, sending him crashing into the vault door. The metal groaned under the impact, but the boss didn’t get back up this time. He slumped against the door, dazed and defeated.
Peter landed lightly, his chest heaving as he caught his breath. “And that,” he said, pointing at the unconscious boss, “is why you don’t mess with Spider-Man.”
The hostages stared in stunned silence for a moment before one of them whispered, “He did it.” Relief washed over the room as Peter turned to face them, his lenses narrowing with determination.
“Alright, everyone,” he said, his voice soft but steady. “Let’s get you out of here.”
____________________________________________________
Peter swung through the city at breakneck speed, the cool night air rushing past him as he leapt from rooftop to rooftop. The wail of sirens faded behind him, replaced by the hum of traffic and the distant chatter of East Harlem. He left the robbers webbed up like party decorations in the vault room, knowing the NYPD could handle the rest.
"Peter," F.R.I.D.A.Y. cut in, her voice calm but steady, "the NYPD have secured the scene. Hostages are safe, and the suspects are in custody. You did well."
“Thanks, F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” Peter murmured, though there wasn’t much relief in his tone. His mind was already somewhere else—back in the alley where he’d left her. Guilt twisted in his chest, sharper than any punch or bruise he’d taken tonight.
Peter landed softly in the alley, his heart pounding with anticipation. The dim glow of the streetlights barely illuminated the narrow space, but his lenses adjusted, scanning every corner. He expected to see her—[name]—still where he had left her, still bound by the webbing he’d used in his panic. But the alley was empty.
His breath hitched as his gaze darted around, searching for any sign of her. The only thing left was the faint, sticky residue of the web he’d hit her wrist with, clinging to the brick wall like a ghost of his mistake. The sight of it made his stomach twist.
“F.R.I.D.A.Y.,” Peter said, his voice tight, “where is she? Can you track her?”
“I’m sorry, Peter,” F.R.I.D.A.Y. replied, her tone calm but tinged with something almost apologetic. “There’s no trace of her in the immediate vicinity. She must have freed herself and left.”
Peter’s shoulders slumped as he stepped closer to the wall, his fingers brushing against the remnants of the webbing. He’d left her here, vulnerable and alone, and now she was gone.
He took a shaky breath, his mind racing. She couldn’t have gone far—his apartment wasn’t far from here, and the streets of East Harlem were quiet at this hour. But the thought of her wandering off, hurt or angry or scared, made his chest tighten.
“I have to find her,” he muttered, more to himself than to F.R.I.D.A.Y. He turned, his movements quick and purposeful as he prepared to swing off again. The faint twinge in his ribs reminded him he wasn’t at full strength, but he ignored it. None of that mattered now. He had to make this right.
__________________________________________________
Soooooo.... This is more background for Peter. and what happens when he leave [you] to deal with the Heist happening! I promise there will be more interactions between you both, I just got carried away writing the action hahah.... I also was only thinking about this being 3 part story but I'm having so much fun that it may be a bit longer then 3 parts 😳😘
Tumblr media Tumblr media
23 notes · View notes
superwholock36 · 3 months ago
Text
Peter Parker Master List
Tumblr media
__________________________________________________________
~A Little Taste of Heaven~
"[Name] moves to Manhattan seeking a fresh start—a better job, a better life—but the city’s reality is far from what she imagined. After a dangerous encounter, she’s saved by Spider-Man, leading to an intense, intimate moment between them. But what feels like hope quickly turns to heartbreak as she believes he’s abandoned her. Unbeknownst to her, it’s all a miscommunication, and Peter Parker, weighed down with guilt, returns to find her gone. Their paths cross again, but this time, it’s not Spider-Man she meets—it’s Peter Parker, the man behind the mask."
Part 1 Part 2 Part 3 Part 4 Part 5 Part 6 Part 7 Part 8 Part 9 Part 10
29 notes · View notes